Newly translated and edited by
          ALBERT C. OUTLER, Ph.D., D.D. 
           Professor of Theology
            Perkins School of Theology 
            Southern Methodist University 
            Dallas, Texas
          First published MCMLV 
           Library of Congress Catalog Card Number: 55-5021
          This book is in the public domain.
            Scanned by Harry Plantinga, [email protected], 1994. 
            
          Introduction
           LIKE A COLOSSUS BESTRIDING TWO WORLDS, Augustine stands as the last patristic
            and the first medieval father of Western Christianity. He gathered together and
            conserved all the main motifs of Latin Christianity from Tertullian to Ambrose;
            he appropriated the heritage of Nicene orthodoxy; he was a Chalcedonian before
            Chalcedon--and he drew all this into an unsystematic synthesis which is still
            our best mirror of the heart and mind of the Christian community in the Roman
            Empire. More than this, he freely received and deliberately reconsecrated the
            religious philosophy of the Greco-Roman world to a new apologetic use in
            maintaining the intelligibility of the Christian proclamation. Yet, even in his
            role as summator of tradition, he was no mere eclectic. The center of his
  "system" is in the Holy Scriptures, as they ordered and moved his heart and
            mind. It was in Scripture that, first and last, Augustine found the focus of
            his religious authority.
           At the same time, it was this essentially conservative genius who recast the
            patristic tradition into the new pattern by which European Christianity would
            be largely shaped and who, with relatively little interest in historical
            detail, wrought out the first comprehensive "philosophy of history." Augustine
            regarded himself as much less an innovator than a summator. He was less a
            reformer of the Church than the defender of the Church's faith. His own
            self-chosen project was to save Christianity from the disruption of heresy and
            the calumnies of the pagans, and, above everything else, to renew and exalt the
            faithful hearing of the gospel of man's utter need and God's abundant grace.
            But the unforeseen result of this enterprise was to furnish the motifs of the
            Church's piety and doctrine for the next thousand years and more. Wherever one
            touches the Middle Ages, he finds the marks of Augustine's influence, powerful
            and pervasive--even Aquinas is more of an Augustinian at heart than a "proper"
            Aristotelian. In the Protestant Reformation, the evangelical elements in
            Augustine's thought were appealed to in condemnation of the corruptions of
            popular Catholicism--yet even those corruptions had a certain right of appeal
            to some of the non-evangelical aspects of Augustine's thought and life. And,
            still today, in the important theological revival of our own time, the
            influence of Augustine is obviously one of the most potent and productive
            impulses at work.
           A succinct characterization of Augustine is impossible, not only because his
            thought is so extraordinarily complex and his expository method so incurably
            digressive, but also because throughout his entire career there were lively
            tensions and massive prejudices in his heart and head. His doctrine of God
            holds the Plotinian notions of divine unity and remotion in tension with the
            Biblical emphasis upon the sovereign God's active involvement in creation and
            redemption. For all his devotion to Jesus Christ, this theology was never
            adequately Christocentric, and this reflects itself in many ways in his
            practical conception of the Christian life. He did not invent the doctrines of
            original sin and seminal transmission of guilt but he did set them as
            cornerstones in his "system," matching them with a doctrine of infant baptism
            which cancels, ex opere operato, birth sin and hereditary guilt. He
            never wearied of celebrating God's abundant mercy and grace--but he was also
            fully persuaded that the vast majority of mankind are condemned to a wholly
            just and appalling damnation. He never denied the reality of human freedom and
            never allowed the excuse of human irresponsibility before God--but against all
            detractors of the primacy of God's grace, he vigorously insisted on both double
            predestination and irresistible grace.
           For all this the Catholic Church was fully justified in giving Augustine his
            aptest title, Doctor Gratiae. The central theme in all Augustine's
            writings is the sovereign God of grace and the sovereign grace of God. Grace,
            for Augustine, is God's freedom to act without any external necessity
            whatsoever--to act in love beyond human understanding or control; to act in
            creation, judgment, and redemption; to give his Son freely as Mediator and
            Redeemer; to endue the Church with the indwelling power and guidance of the
            Holy Spirit; to shape the destinies of all creation and the ends of the two
            human societies, the "city of earth" and the "city of God." Grace is God's
            unmerited love and favor, prevenient and occurrent. It touches man's inmost
            heart and will. It guides and impels the pilgrimage of those called to be
            faithful. It draws and raises the soul to repentance, faith, and praise. It
            transforms the human will so that it is capable of doing good. It relieves
            man's religious anxiety by forgiveness and the gift of hope. It establishes the
            ground of Christian humility by abolishing the ground of human pride. God's
            grace became incarnate in Jesus Christ, and it remains immanent in the Holy
            Spirit in the Church.
           Augustine had no system--but he did have a stable and coherent Christian
            outlook. Moreover, he had an unwearied, ardent concern: man's salvation from
            his hopeless plight, through the gracious action of God's redeeming love. To
            understand and interpret this was his one endeavor, and to this task he devoted
            his entire genius.
           He was, of course, by conscious intent and profession, a Christian theologian,
            a pastor and teacher in the Christian community. And yet it has come about that
            his contributions to the larger heritage of Western civilization are hardly
            less important than his services to the Christian Church. He was far and away
            the best--if not the very first--psychologist in the ancient world. His
            observations and descriptions of human motives and emotions, his depth analyses
            of will and thought in their interaction, and his exploration of the inner
            nature of the human self--these have established one of the main traditions in
            European conceptions of human nature, even down to our own time. Augustine is
            an essential source for both contemporary depth psychology and existentialist
            philosophy. His view of the shape and process of human history has been more
            influential than any other single source in the development of the Western
            tradition which regards political order as inextricably involved in moral
            order. His conception of a societas as a community identified and held
            together by its loyalties and love has become an integral part of the general
            tradition of Christian social teaching and the Christian vision of
  "Christendom." His metaphysical explorations of the problems of being, the
            character of evil, the relation of faith and knowledge, of will and reason, of
            time and eternity, of creation and cosmic order, have not ceased to animate and
            enrich various philosophic reflections throughout the succeeding centuries. At
            the same time the hallmark of the Augustinian philosophy is its insistent
            demand that reflective thought issue in practical consequence; no contemplation
            of the end of life suffices unless it discovers the means by which men are
            brought to their proper goals. In sum, Augustine is one of the very few men who
            simply cannot be ignored or depreciated in any estimate of Western civilization
            without serious distortion and impoverishment of one's historical and religious
            understanding.
            In the space of some forty-four years, from his conversion in Milan (A.D. 386)
            to his death in Hippo Regius (A.D. 430), Augustine wrote--mostly at
            dictation--a vast sprawling library of books, sermons, and letters, the remains
            of which (in the Benedictine edition of St. Maur) fill fourteen volumes as they
            are reprinted in Migne, Patrologiae cursus completus, Series Latina
            (Vols. 32-45). In his old age, Augustine reviewed his authorship (in the Retractations) and has left us a critical review of ninety-three of his
            works he judged most important. Even a cursory glance at them shows how
            enormous was his range of interest. Yet almost everything he wrote was in
            response to a specific problem or an actual crisis in the immediate situation.
            One may mark off significant developments in his thought over this twoscore
            years, but one can hardly miss the fundamental consistency in his entire life's
            work. He was never interested in writing a systematic summa theologica, and would have been incapable of producing a balanced digest of his
            multifaceted teaching. Thus, if he is to be read wisely, he must be read
            widely--and always in context, with due attention to the specific aim in view
            in each particular treatise. 
           For the general reader who wishes to approach Augustine as directly as
            possible, however, it is a useful and fortunate thing that at the very
            beginning of his Christian ministry and then again at the very climax of it,
            Augustine set himself to focus his experience and thought into what were, for
            him, summings up. The result of the first effort is the Confessions, which is his most familiar and widely read work. The second is in the Enchiridion, written more than twenty years later. In the Confessions, he stands on the threshold of his career in the Church. In
            the Enchiridion, he stands forth as triumphant champion of orthodox
            Christianity. In these two works--the nearest equivalent to summation in the
            whole of the Augustinian corpus--we can find all his essential themes and can
            sample the characteristic flavor of his thought.
           Augustine was baptized by Ambrose at Milan during Eastertide, A.D. 387.[0]A short time later his mother, Monica, died at Ostia on the
            journey back to Africa. A year later, Augustine was back in Roman Africa living
            in a monastery at Tagaste, his native town. In 391, he was ordained presbyter
            in the church of Hippo Regius (a small coastal town nearby). Here in 395--with
            grave misgivings on his own part (cf. Sermon CCCLV, 2) and in actual
            violation of the eighth canon of Nicea (cf. Mansi, Sacrorum conciliorum, II, 671, and IV, 1167)--he was consecrated assistant bishop to the aged
            Valerius, whom he succeeded the following year. Shortly after he entered into
            his episcopal duties he began his Confessions, completing them probably
            in 398 (cf. De Labriolle, I, vi (see Bibliography), and di Capua, Miscellanea Agostiniana, II, 678).
           Augustine had a complex motive for undertaking such a self-analysis.[1 ]His pilgrimage of grace had led him to a most unexpected
            outcome. Now he felt a compelling need to retrace the crucial turnings of the
            way by which he had come. And since he was sure that it was God's grace that
            had been his prime mover on that way, it was a spontaneous expression of his
            heart that cast his self-recollection into the form of a sustained prayer to
            God.
           The Confessions are not Augustine's autobiography. They are, instead, a
            deliberate effort, in the permissive atmosphere of God's felt presence, to
            recall those crucial episodes and events in which he can now see and celebrate
            the mysterious actions of God's prevenient and provident grace. Thus he follows
            the windings of his memory as it re-presents the upheavals of his youth and the
            stages of his disorderly quest for wisdom. He omits very much indeed. Yet he
            builds his successive climaxes so skillfully that the denouement in Book VIII
            is a vivid and believable convergence of influences, reconstructed and "placed"
            with consummate dramatic skill. We see how Cicero's Hortensius first
            awakened his thirst for wisdom, how the Manicheans deluded him with their
            promise of true wisdom, and how the Academics upset his confidence in certain
            knowledge--how they loosed him from the dogmatism of the Manicheans only to
            confront him with the opposite threat that all knowledge is uncertain. He shows
            us (Bk. V, Ch. X, 19) that almost the sole cause of his intellectual perplexity
            in religion was his stubborn, materialistic prejudice that if God existed he
            had to exist in a body, and thus had to have extension, shape, and finite
            relation. He remembers how the "Platonists" rescued him from this "materialism"
            and taught him how to think of spiritual and immaterial reality--and so to
            become able to conceive of God in non-dualistic categories. We can follow him
            in his extraordinarily candid and plain report of his Plotinian ecstasy, and
            his momentary communion with the One (Book VII). The "Platonists" liberated him
            from error, but they could not loose him from the fetters of incontinence.
            Thus, with a divided will, he continues to seek a stable peace in the Christian
            faith while he stubbornly clings to his pride and appetence.
           In Book VIII, Augustine piles up a series of remembered incidents that inflamed
            his desire to imitate those who already seemed to have gained what he had so
            long been seeking. First of all, there had been Ambrose, who embodied for
            Augustine the dignity of Christian learning and the majesty of the authority of
            the Christian Scriptures. Then Simplicianus tells him the moving story of
            Victorinus (a more famous scholar than Augustine ever hoped to be), who finally
            came to the baptismal font in Milan as humbly as any other catechumen. Then,
            from Ponticianus he hears the story of Antony and about the increasing
            influence of the monastic calling. The story that stirs him most, perhaps,
            relates the dramatic conversion of the two "special agents of the imperial
            police" in the garden at Treves--two unlikely prospects snatched abruptly from
            their worldly ways to the monastic life.
            He makes it plain that these examples forced his own feelings to an intolerable
            tension. His intellectual perplexities had become resolved; the virtue of
            continence had been consciously preferred; there was a strong desire for the
            storms of his breast to be calmed; he longed to imitate these men who had done
            what he could not and who were enjoying the peace he longed for.
           But the old habits were still strong and he could not muster a full act of the
            whole will to strike them down. Then comes the scene in the Milanese garden
            which is an interesting parallel to Ponticianus' story about the garden at
            Treves. The long struggle is recapitulated in a brief moment; his will
            struggles against and within itself. The trivial distraction of a child's
            voice, chanting, "Tolle, lege," precipitates the resolution of the
            conflict. There is a radical shift in mood and will, he turns eagerly to the
            chance text in Rom. 13:13--and a new spirit rises in his heart.
           After this radical change, there was only one more past event that had to be
            relived before his personal history could be seen in its right perspective.
            This was the death of his mother and the severance of his strongest earthly
            tie. Book IX tells us this story. The climactic moment in it is, of course, the
            vision at Ostia where mother and son are uplifted in an ecstasy that
            parallels--but also differs significantly from--the Plotinian vision of Book
            VII. After this, the mother dies and the son who had loved her almost too much
            goes on alone, now upheld and led by a greater and a wiser love.
           We can observe two separate stages in Augustine's "conversion." The first was
            the dramatic striking off of the slavery of incontinence and pride which had so
            long held him from decisive commitment to the Christian faith. The second was
            the development of an adequate understanding of the Christian faith itself and
            his baptismal confession of Jesus Christ as Lord and Saviour. The former was
            achieved in the Milanese garden. The latter came more slowly and had no
  "dramatic moment." The dialogues that Augustine wrote at Cassiciacum the year
            following his conversion show few substantial signs of a theological
            understanding, decisively or distinctively Christian. But by the time of his
            ordination to the presbyterate we can see the basic lines of a comprehensive
            and orthodox theology firmly laid out. Augustine neglects to tell us (in 398)
            what had happened in his thought between 385 and 391. He had other questions,
            more interesting to him, with which to wrestle.
           One does not read far in the Confessions before he recognizes that the
            term "confess" has a double range of meaning. On the one hand, it obviously
            refers to the free acknowledgment, before God, of the truth one knows about
            oneself--and this obviously meant, for Augustine, the "confession of sins."
            But, at the same time, and more importantly, confiteri means to
            acknowledge, to God, the truth one knows about God. To confess, then, is to
            praise and glorify God; it is an exercise in self-knowledge and true humility
            in the atmosphere of grace and reconciliation.
           Thus the Confessions are by no means complete when the personal history
            is concluded at the end of Book IX. There are two more closely related problems
            to be explored: First, how does the finite self find the infinite God (or, how
            is it found of him?)? And, secondly, how may we interpret God's action in
            producing this created world in which such personal histories and revelations
            do occur? Book X, therefore, is an exploration of man's way to God, a
            way which begins in sense experience but swiftly passes beyond it, through and
            beyond the awesome mystery of memory, to the ineffable encounter between God
            and the soul in man's inmost subject-self. But such a journey is not complete
            until the process is reversed and man has looked as deeply as may be into the
            mystery of creation, on which all our history and experience depend. In Book
            XI, therefore, we discover why time is such a problem and how "In the
              beginning God created the heavens and the earth" is the basic formula of a
            massive Christian metaphysical world view. In Books XII and XIII, Augustine
            elaborates, in loving patience and with considerable allegorical license, the
            mysteries of creation--exegeting the first chapter of Genesis, verse by verse,
            until he is able to relate the whole round of creation to the point where we
            can view the drama of God's enterprise in human history on the vast stage of
            the cosmos itself. The Creator is the Redeemer! Man's end and the beginning
            meet at a single point!
           The Enchiridion is a briefer treatise on the grace of God and represents
            Augustine's fully matured theological perspective--after the magnificent
            achievements of the De Trinitate and the greater part of the De
              civitate Dei, and after the tremendous turmoil of the Pelagian controversy
            in which the doctrine of grace was the exact epicenter. Sometime in 421,
            Augustine received a request from one Laurentius, a Christian layman who was
            the brother of the tribune Dulcitius (for whom Augustine wrote the De octo
              dulcitii quaestionibus in 423-425). This Laurentius wanted a handbook (enchiridion) that would sum up the essential Christian teaching in the
            briefest possible form. Augustine dryly comments that the shortest complete
            summary of the Christian faith is that God is to be served by man in faith,
            hope, and love. Then, acknowledging that this answer might indeed be too brief, he proceeds to expand it in an essay in which he tries
            unsuccessfully to subdue his natural digressive manner by imposing on it a
            patently artificial schematism. Despite its awkward form, however, the Enchiridion is one of the most important of all of Augustine's writings,
            for it is a conscious effort of the theological magistrate of the Western
            Church to stand on final ground of testimony to the Christian truth.
           For his framework, Augustine chooses the Apostles' Creed and the Lord's Prayer.
            The treatise begins, naturally enough, with a discussion of God's work in
            creation. Augustine makes a firm distinction between the comparatively
            unimportant knowledge of nature and the supremely important acknowledgment of
            the Creator of nature. But creation lies under the shadow of sin and evil and
            Augustine reviews his famous (and borrowed!) doctrine of the privative
            character of evil. From this he digresses into an extended comment on error and
            lying as special instances of evil. He then returns to the hopeless case of
            fallen man, to which God's wholly unmerited grace has responded in the
            incarnation of the Mediator and Redeemer, Jesus Christ. The questions about the
            appropriation of God's grace lead naturally to a discussion of baptism and
            justification, and beyond these, to the Holy Spirit and the Church. Augustine
            then sets forth the benefits of redeeming grace and weighs the balance between
            faith and good works in the forgiven sinner. But redemption looks forward
            toward resurrection, and Augustine feels he must devote a good deal of energy
            and subtle speculation to the questions about the manner and mode of the life
            everlasting. From this he moves on to the problem of the destiny of the wicked
            and the mystery of predestination. Nor does he shrink from these grim topics;
            indeed, he actually expands some of his most rigid ideas of God's
            ruthless justice toward the damned. Having thus treated the Christian faith and
            Christian hope, he turns in a too-brief concluding section to the virtue of
            Christian love as the heart of the Christian life. This, then, is the
  "handbook" on faith, hope, and love which he hopes Laurence will put to use and
            not leave as "baggage on his bookshelf."
            Taken together, the Confessions and the Enchiridion give us two
            very important vantage points from which to view the Augustinian perspective as
            a whole, since they represent both his early and his mature formulation. From
            them, we can gain a competent--though by no means complete--introduction to the
            heart and mind of this great Christian saint and sage. There are important
            differences between the two works, and these ought to be noted by the careful
            reader. But all the main themes of Augustinian Christianity appear in them, and
            through them we can penetrate to its inner dynamic core.
           There is no need to justify a new English translation of these books, even
            though many good ones already exist. Every translation is, at best, only an
            approximation--and an interpretation too. There is small hope for a translation
            to end all translations. Augustine's Latin is, for the most part, comparatively
            easy to read. One feels directly the force of his constant wordplay, the artful
            balancing of his clauses, his laconic use of parataxis, and his deliberate
            involutions of thought and word order. He was always a Latin rhetor; artifice
            of style had come to be second nature with him--even though the Latin
            scriptures were powerful modifiers of his classical literary patterns. But it
            is a very tricky business to convey such a Latin style into anything like
            modern English without considerable violence one way or the other. A literal
            rendering of the text is simply not readable English. And this falsifies the
            text in another way, for Augustine's Latin is eminently readable! On the other
            side, when one resorts to the unavoidable paraphrase there is always the open
            question as to the point beyond which the thought itself is being recast. It
            has been my aim and hope that these translations will give the reader an
            accurate medium of contact with Augustine's temper and mode of argumentation.
            There has been no thought of trying to contrive an English equivalent for his
            style. If Augustine's ideas come through this translation with positive force
            and clarity, there can be no serious reproach if it is neither as eloquent nor
            as elegant as Augustine in his own language. In any case, those who will
            compare this translation with the others will get at least a faint notion of
            how complex and truly brilliant the original is!
           The sensitive reader soon recognizes that Augustine will not willingly be
            inspected from a distance or by a neutral observer. In all his writings there
            is a strong concern and moving power to involve his reader in his own process
            of inquiry and perplexity. There is a manifest eagerness to have him share in
            his own flashes of insight and his sudden glimpses of God's glory. Augustine's
            style is deeply personal; it is therefore idiomatic, and often colloquial. Even
            in his knottiest arguments, or in the labyrinthine mazes of his allegorizing
            (e.g., Confessions, Bk. XIII, or Enchiridion, XVIII), he seeks to
            maintain contact with his reader in genuine respect and openness. He is never
            content to seek and find the truth in solitude. He must enlist his fellows in
            seeing and applying the truth as given. He is never the blind fideist; even in
            the face of mystery, there is a constant reliance on the limited but real
            powers of human reason, and a constant striving for clarity and
            intelligibility. In this sense, he was a consistent follower of his own
            principle of "Christian Socratism," developed in the De Magistro and the De catechezandis rudibus.
           Even the best of Augustine's writing bears the marks of his own time and there
            is much in these old books that is of little interest to any but the
            specialist. There are many stones of stumbling in them for the modern
            secularist--and even for the modern Christian! Despite all this, it is
            impossible to read him with any attention at all without recognizing how his
            genius and his piety burst through the limitations of his times and his
            language--and even his English translations! He grips our hearts and minds and
            enlists us in the great enterprise to which his whole life was devoted: the
            search for and the celebration of God's grace and glory by which his faithful
            children are sustained and guided in their pilgrimage toward the true Light of
            us all.
           The most useful critical text of the Confessions is that of Pierre de
            Labriolle (fifth edition, Paris, 1950). I have collated this with the other
            major critical editions: Martin Skutella, S. Aureli Augustini Confessionum
              Libri Tredecim (Leipzig, 1934)--itself a recension of the Corpus
                Scriptorum ecclesiasticorum Latinorum XXXIII text of Pius Knöll
            (Vienna, 1896)--and the second edition of John Gibb and William Montgomery
            (Cambridge, 1927).
           There are two good critical texts of the Enchiridion and I have collated
            them: Otto Scheel, Augustins Enchiridion (zweite Auflage, Tübingen,
            1930), and Jean Rivière, Enchiridion in the Bibliothèque
            Augustinienne, Œuvres de S. Augustin, première série:
            Opuscules, IX: Exposés généraux de la foi (Paris,
            1947).
           It remains for me to express my appreciation to the General Editors of this
            Library for their constructive help; to Professor Hollis W. Huston, who read
            the entire manuscript and made many valuable suggestions; and to Professor
            William A. Irwin, who greatly aided with parts of the Enchiridion. These
            men share the credit for preventing many flaws, but naturally no responsibility
            for those remaining. Professors Raymond P. Morris, of the Yale Divinity School
            Library; Robert Beach, of the Union Theological Seminary Library; and Decherd
            Turner, of our Bridwell Library here at Southern Methodist University, were
            especially generous in their bibliographical assistance. Last, but not least,
            Mrs. Hollis W. Huston and my wife, between them, managed the difficult task of
            putting the results of this project into fair copy. To them all I am most
            grateful.
         
                    AUGUSTINE'S TESTIMONY CONCERNING THE CONFESSIONS
           I. THE Retractations, II, 6 (A.D. 427) 
           1. My Confessions, in thirteen books, praise the righteous and good God
            as they speak either of my evil or good, and they are meant to excite men's
            minds and affections toward him. At least as far as I am concerned, this is
            what they did for me when they were being written and they still do this when
            read. What some people think of them is their own affair [ipse
              viderint]; but I do know that they have given pleasure to many of my
            brethren and still do so. The first through the tenth books were written about
            myself; the other three about Holy Scripture, from what is written there, In
              the beginning God created the heaven and the earth,[2]even as far as the reference to the Sabbath rest.[3]
           2. In Book IV, when I confessed my soul's misery over the death of a friend and
            said that our soul had somehow been made one out of two souls, "But it may have
            been that I was afraid to die, lest he should then die wholly whom I had so
            greatly loved" (Ch. VI, 11)--this now seems to be more a trivial declamation
            than a serious confession, although this inept expression may be tempered
            somewhat by the "may have been" [forte] which I added. And in
            Book XIII what I said--"The firmament was made between the higher waters (and
            superior) and the lower (and inferior) waters"--was said without sufficient
            thought. In any case, the matter is very obscure.
           This work begins thus: "Great art thou, O Lord." 
           II. De Dono Perseverantiae, XX, 53 (A.D. 428) 
           Which of my shorter works has been more widely known or given greater pleasure
            than the [thirteen] books of my Confessions? And, although I
            published them long before the Pelagian heresy had even begun to be, it is
            plain that in them I said to my God, again and again, "Give what thou
            commandest and command what thou wilt." When these words of mine were repeated
            in Pelagius' presence at Rome by a certain brother of mine (an episcopal
            colleague), he could not bear them and contradicted him so excitedly that they
            nearly came to a quarrel. Now what, indeed, does God command, first and
            foremost, except that we believe in him? This faith, therefore, he himself
            gives; so that it is well said to him, "Give what thou commandest." Moreover,
            in those same books, concerning my account of my conversion when God turned me
            to that faith which I was laying waste with a very wretched and wild verbal
            assault,[4 ]do you not remember how the narration shows that
            I was given as a gift to the faithful and daily tears of my mother, who had
            been promised that I should not perish? I certainly declared there that God by
            his grace turns men's wills to the true faith when they are not only averse to
            it, but actually adverse. As for the other ways in which I sought God's aid in
            my growth in perseverance, you either know or can review them as you wish (PL, 45, c. 1025). 
           III. Letter to Darius (A.D. 429) 
           Thus, my son, take the books of my Confessions and use them as a good
            man should--not superficially, but as a Christian in Christian charity. Here
            see me as I am and do not praise me for more than I am. Here believe nothing
            else about me than my own testimony. Here observe what I have been in myself
            and through myself. And if something in me pleases you, here praise Him with
            me--him whom I desire to be praised on my account and not myself. "For it is he
            that hath made us and not we ourselves."[5] Indeed, we were
            ourselves quite lost; but he who made us, remade us [sed qui fecit,
              refecit]. As, then, you find me in these pages, pray for me that I shall
            not fail but that I may go on to be perfected. Pray for me, my son, pray for
            me! (Epist. CCXXXI, PL, 33, c. 1025).  
          
           The Confessions of Saint Augustine 
          
            
          BOOK ONE
           In God's searching presence, Augustine undertakes to plumb the depths of his
            memory to trace the mysterious pilgrimage of grace which his life has been--and
            to praise God for his constant and omnipotent grace. In a mood of sustained
            prayer, he recalls what he can of his infancy, his learning to speak, and his
            childhood experiences in school. He concludes with a paean of grateful praise
            to God.
          CHAPTER I
          1. "Great art thou, O Lord, and greatly to be praised; great is thy power, and
infinite is thy wisdom."[6] And man desires to praise thee,
for he is a part of thy creation; he bears his mortality about with him and
carries the evidence of his sin and the proof that thou dost resist the proud.
Still he desires to praise thee, this man who is only a small part of thy
creation. Thou hast prompted him, that he should delight to praise thee, for
thou hast made us for thyself and restless is our heart until it comes to rest
in thee. Grant me, O Lord, to know and understand whether first to invoke thee
or to praise thee; whether first to know thee or call upon thee. But who can
invoke thee, knowing thee not? For he who knows thee not may invoke thee as
another than thou art. It may be that we should invoke thee in order that we
may come to know thee. But "how shall they call on him in whom they have not
believed? Or how shall they believe without a preacher?"[7] Now, "they shall praise the Lord who seek him,"[8] for
"those who seek shall find him,"[9] and, finding him, shall
praise him. I will seek thee, O Lord, and call upon thee. I call upon thee, O
Lord, in my faith which thou hast given me, which thou hast inspired in me
through the humanity of thy Son, and through the ministry of thy preacher.[10]  CHAPTER II
2. And how shall I call upon my God--my God and my Lord? For when I call on him
I ask him to come into me. And what place is there in me into which my God can
come? How could God, the God who made both heaven and earth, come into me? Is
there anything in me, O Lord my God, that can contain thee? Do even the heaven
and the earth, which thou hast made, and in which thou didst make me, contain
thee? Is it possible that, since without thee nothing would be which does
exist, thou didst make it so that whatever exists has some capacity to receive
thee? Why, then, do I ask thee to come into me, since I also am and could not
be if thou wert not in me? For I am not, after all, in hell--and yet thou art
there too, for "if I go down into hell, thou art there."[11] Therefore I would not exist--I would simply not be at
all--unless I exist in thee, from whom and by whom and in whom all things are.
Even so, Lord; even so. Where do I call thee to, when I am already in thee? Or
from whence wouldst thou come into me? Where, beyond heaven and earth, could I
go that there my God might come to me--he who hath said, "I fill heaven and
earth"?[12] CHAPTER III
 3. Since, then, thou dost fill the heaven and earth, do they contain thee? Or,
  dost thou fill and overflow them, because they cannot contain thee? And where
  dost thou pour out what remains of thee after heaven and earth are full? Or,
  indeed, is there no need that thou, who dost contain all things, shouldst be
  contained by any, since those things which thou dost fill thou fillest by
  containing them? For the vessels which thou dost fill do
  not confine thee, since even if they were broken, thou wouldst not be poured
  out. And, when thou art poured out on us, thou art not thereby brought down;
  rather, we are uplifted. Thou art not scattered; rather, thou dost gather us
  together. But when thou dost fill all things, dost thou fill them with thy
  whole being? Or, since not even all things together could contain thee
  altogether, does any one thing contain a single part, and do all things contain
  that same part at the same time? Do singulars contain thee singly? Do greater
  things contain more of thee, and smaller things less? Or, is it not rather that
  thou art wholly present everywhere, yet in such a way that nothing contains
  thee wholly?
CHAPTER IV 
 4. What, therefore, is my God? What, I ask, but the Lord God? "For who is Lord
  but the Lord himself, or who is God besides our God?"[13] Most high, most excellent, most potent, most omnipotent; most merciful and most
  just; most secret and most truly present; most beautiful and most strong;
  stable, yet not supported; unchangeable, yet changing all things; never new,
  never old; making all things new, yet bringing old age upon the proud, and they
  know it not; always working, ever at rest; gathering, yet needing nothing;
  sustaining, pervading, and protecting; creating, nourishing, and developing;
  seeking, and yet possessing all things. Thou dost love, but without passion;
  art jealous, yet free from care; dost repent without remorse; art angry, yet
  remainest serene. Thou changest thy ways, leaving thy plans unchanged; thou
  recoverest what thou hast never really lost. Thou art never in need but still
  thou dost rejoice at thy gains; art never greedy, yet demandest dividends. Men
  pay more than is required so that thou dost become a debtor; yet who can
  possess anything at all which is not already thine? Thou owest men nothing, yet
  payest out to them as if in debt to thy creature, and when thou dost cancel
  debts thou losest nothing thereby. Yet, O my God, my life, my holy Joy, what is
  this that I have said? What can any man say when he speaks of thee? But woe to
  them that keep silence--since even those who say most are dumb. 
  
CHAPTER V
 5. Who shall bring me to rest in thee? Who will send thee into my heart so to
  overwhelm it that my sins shall be blotted out and I may embrace thee, my only
  good? What art thou to me? Have mercy that I may speak. What am I to thee that
  thou shouldst command me to love thee, and if I do it not, art angry and
  threatenest vast misery? Is it, then, a trifling sorrow not to love thee? It is
  not so to me. Tell me, by thy mercy, O Lord, my God, what thou art to me. "Say
  to my soul, I am your salvation."[14] So speak that I may
  hear. Behold, the ears of my heart are before thee, O Lord; open them and "say
  to my soul, I am your salvation." I will hasten after that voice, and I will
  lay hold upon thee. Hide not thy face from me. Even if I die, let me see thy
  face lest I die.
 6. The house of my soul is too narrow for thee to come in to me; let it be
  enlarged by thee. It is in ruins; do thou restore it. There is much about it
  which must offend thy eyes; I confess and know it. But who will cleanse it? Or,
  to whom shall I cry but to thee? "Cleanse thou me from my secret faults," O
  Lord, "and keep back thy servant from strange sins."[15] "I
  believe, and therefore do I speak."[16] But thou, O Lord,
  thou knowest. Have I not confessed my transgressions unto thee, O my God; and
  hast thou not put away the iniquity of my heart?[17] I do
  not contend in judgment with thee,[18] who art truth
  itself; and I would not deceive myself, lest my iniquity lie even to itself. I
  do not, therefore, contend in judgment with thee, for "if thou, Lord, shouldst
  mark iniquities, O Lord, who shall stand?"[19] 
 CHAPTER VI
7. Still, dust and ashes as I am, allow me to speak before thy mercy. Allow me
to speak, for, behold, it is to thy mercy that I speak and not to a man who
scorns me. Yet perhaps even thou mightest scorn me; but when thou dost turn and
attend to me, thou wilt have mercy upon me. For what do I wish to say, O Lord
my God, but that I know not whence I came hither into this life-in-death. Or
should I call it death-in-life? I do not know. And yet the consolations of thy
mercy have sustained me from the very beginning, as I have heard from my
fleshly parents, from whom and in whom thou didst form me in time--for I cannot
myself remember. Thus even though they sustained me by the consolation of
woman's milk, neither my mother nor my nurses filled their own breasts but
thou, through them, didst give me the food of infancy according to thy
ordinance and thy bounty which underlie all things. For it was thou who didst
cause me not to want more than thou gavest and it was thou who gavest to those
who nourished me the will to give me what thou didst give them. And they, by an
instinctive affection, were willing to give me what thou hadst supplied
abundantly. It was, indeed, good for them that my good should come through
them, though, in truth, it was not from them but by them. For it is from thee,
O God, that all good things come--and from my God is all my health. This is
what I have since learned, as thou hast made it abundantly clear by all that I
have seen thee give, both to me and to those around me. For even at the very
first I knew how to suck, to lie quiet when I was full, and to cry when in
pain--nothing more.
 8. Afterward I began to laugh--at first in my sleep, then when waking. For this
  I have been told about myself and I believe it--though I cannot remember
  it--for I see the same things in other infants. Then, little by little, I
  realized where I was and wished to tell my wishes to those who might satisfy
  them, but I could not! For my wants were inside me, and they were outside, and
  they could not by any power of theirs come into my soul. And so I would fling
  my arms and legs about and cry, making the few and feeble gestures that I
  could, though indeed the signs were not much like what I inwardly desired and
  when I was not satisfied--either from not being understood or because what I
  got was not good for me--I grew indignant that my elders were not subject to me
  and that those on whom I actually had no claim did not wait on me as
  slaves--and I avenged myself on them by crying. That infants are like this, I
  have myself been able to learn by watching them; and they, though they knew me
  not, have shown me better what I was like than my own nurses who knew me.
 9. And, behold, my infancy died long ago, but I am still living. But thou, O
  Lord, whose life is forever and in whom nothing dies--since before the world
  was, indeed, before all that can be called "before," thou wast, and thou art
  the God and Lord of all thy creatures; and with thee abide all the stable
  causes of all unstable things, the unchanging sources of all changeable things,
  and the eternal reasons of all non-rational and temporal things--tell me, thy
  suppliant, O God, tell me, O merciful One, in pity tell a pitiful creature
  whether my infancy followed yet an earlier age of my life that had already
  passed away before it. Was it such another age which I spent in my mother's
  womb? For something of that sort has been suggested to me, and I have myself
  seen pregnant women. But what, O God, my Joy, preceded that period of
  life? Was I, indeed, anywhere, or anybody? No one can explain these things to
  me, neither father nor mother, nor the experience of others, nor my own memory.
  Dost thou laugh at me for asking such things? Or dost thou command me to praise
  and confess unto thee only what I know?
 10. I give thanks to thee, O Lord of heaven and earth, giving praise to thee
  for that first being and my infancy of which I have no memory. For thou hast
  granted to man that he should come to self-knowledge through the knowledge of
  others, and that he should believe many things about himself on the authority
  of the womenfolk. Now, clearly, I had life and being; and, as my infancy
  closed, I was already learning signs by which my feelings could be communicated
  to others.
 Whence could such a creature come but from thee, O Lord? Is any man skillful
  enough to have fashioned himself? Or is there any other source from which being
  and life could flow into us, save this, that thou, O Lord, hast made us--thou
  with whom being and life are one, since thou thyself art supreme being and
  supreme life both together. For thou art infinite and in thee there is no
  change, nor an end to this present day--although there is a sense in which it
  ends in thee since all things are in thee and there would be no such thing as
  days passing away unless thou didst sustain them. And since "thy years shall
  have no end,"[20] thy years are an ever-present day. And
  how many of ours and our fathers' days have passed through this thy day and
  have received from it what measure and fashion of being they had? And all the
  days to come shall so receive and so pass away. "But thou art the same"![21] And all the things of tomorrow and the days yet to come,
  and all of yesterday and the days that are past, thou wilt gather into this thy
  day. What is it to me if someone does not understand this? Let him still
  rejoice and continue to ask, "What is this?" Let him also rejoice and prefer to
  seek thee, even if he fails to find an answer, rather than to seek an answer
  and not find thee! 
  
CHAPTER VII
11. "Hear me, O God! Woe to the sins of men!" When a man cries thus, thou
showest him mercy, for thou didst create the man but not the sin in him. Who
brings to remembrance the sins of my infancy? For in thy sight there is none
free from sin, not even the infant who has lived but a day upon this earth. Who
brings this to my remembrance? Does not each little one, in whom I now observe
what I no longer remember of myself? In what ways, in that time, did I sin? Was
it that I cried for the breast? If I should now so cry--not indeed for the
breast, but for food suitable to my condition--I should be most justly laughed
at and rebuked. What I did then deserved rebuke but, since I could not
understand those who rebuked me, neither custom nor common sense permitted me
to be rebuked. As we grow we root out and cast away from us such childish
habits. Yet I have not seen anyone who is wise who cast away the good when
trying to purge the bad. Nor was it good, even in that time, to strive to get
by crying what, if it had been given me, would have been hurtful; or to be
bitterly indignant at those who, because they were older--not slaves, either,
but free--and wiser than I, would not indulge my capricious desires. Was it a
good thing for me to try, by struggling as hard as I could, to harm them for
not obeying me, even when it would have done me harm to have been obeyed? Thus,
the infant's innocence lies in the weakness of his body and not in the infant
mind. I have myself observed a baby to be jealous, though it could not speak;
it was livid as it watched another infant at the breast. 
 Who is ignorant of this? Mothers and nurses tell us that they cure these things
  by I know not what remedies. But is this innocence, when the fountain of milk
  is flowing fresh and abundant, that another who needs it should not be allowed
  to share it, even though he requires such nourishment to sustain his life? Yet
  we look leniently on such things, not because they are not faults, or even
  small faults, but because they will vanish as the years pass. For, although we
  allow for such things in an infant, the same things could not be tolerated
  patiently in an adult.
 12. Therefore, O Lord my God, thou who gavest life to the infant, and a body
  which, as we see, thou hast furnished with senses, shaped with limbs,
  beautified with form, and endowed with all vital energies for its well-being
  and health--thou dost command me to praise thee for these things, to give
  thanks unto the Lord, and to sing praise unto his name, O Most High.[22] For thou art God, omnipotent and good, even if thou hadst
  done no more than these things, which no other but thou canst do--thou alone
  who madest all things fair and didst order everything according to thy law.
 I am loath to dwell on this part of my life of which, O Lord, I have no
  remembrance, about which I must trust the word of others and what I can surmise
  from observing other infants, even if such guesses are trustworthy. For it lies
  in the deep murk of my forgetfulness and thus is like the period which I passed
  in my mother's womb. But if "I was conceived in iniquity, and in sin my mother
  nourished me in her womb,"[23] where, I pray thee, O my
  God, where, O Lord, or when was I, thy servant, ever innocent? But see now, I
  pass over that period, for what have I to do with a time from which I can
  recall no memories? 
 CHAPTER VIII
 13. Did I not, then, as I grew out of infancy, come next to boyhood, or rather
  did it not come to me and succeed my infancy? My infancy did not go away (for
  where would it go?). It was simply no longer present; and I was no longer an
  infant who could not speak, but now a chattering boy. I remember this, and I
  have since observed how I learned to speak. My elders did not teach me words by
  rote, as they taught me my letters afterward. But I myself, when I was unable
  to communicate all I wished to say to whomever I wished by means of whimperings
  and grunts and various gestures of my limbs (which I used to reinforce my
  demands), I myself repeated the sounds already stored in my memory by the mind
  which thou, O my God, hadst given me. When they called some thing by name and
  pointed it out while they spoke, I saw it and realized that the thing they
  wished to indicate was called by the name they then uttered. And what they
  meant was made plain by the gestures of their bodies, by a kind of natural
  language, common to all nations, which expresses itself through changes of
  countenance, glances of the eye, gestures and intonations which indicate a
  disposition and attitude--either to seek or to possess, to reject or to avoid.
  So it was that by frequently hearing words, in different phrases, I gradually
  identified the objects which the words stood for and, having formed my mouth to
  repeat these signs, I was thereby able to express my will. Thus I exchanged
  with those about me the verbal signs by which we express our wishes and
  advanced deeper into the stormy fellowship of human life, depending all the
  while upon the authority of my parents and the behest of my elders. 
 CHAPTER IX
 14. O my God! What miseries and mockeries did I then experience when it was
  impressed on me that obedience to my teachers was proper to my boyhood estate
  if I was to flourish in this world and distinguish myself in those tricks of
  speech which would gain honor for me among men, and deceitful riches! To this
  end I was sent to school to get learning, the value of which I knew not--wretch
  that I was. Yet if I was slow to learn, I was flogged. For this was deemed
  praiseworthy by our forefathers and many had passed before us in the same
  course, and thus had built up the precedent for the sorrowful road on which we
  too were compelled to travel, multiplying labor and sorrow upon the sons of
  Adam. About this time, O Lord, I observed men praying to thee, and I learned
  from them to conceive thee--after my capacity for understanding as it was
  then--to be some great Being, who, though not visible to our senses, was able
  to hear and help us. Thus as a boy I began to pray to thee, my Help and my
  Refuge, and, in calling on thee, broke the bands of my tongue. Small as I was,
  I prayed with no slight earnestness that I might not be beaten at school. And
  when thou didst not heed me--for that would have been giving me over to my
  folly--my elders and even my parents too, who wished me no ill, treated my
  stripes as a joke, though they were then a great and grievous ill to me.
 15. Is there anyone, O Lord, with a spirit so great, who cleaves to thee with
  such steadfast affection (or is there even a kind of obtuseness that has the
  same effect)--is there any man who, by cleaving devoutly to thee, is endowed
  with so great a courage that he can regard indifferently those racks and hooks
  and other torture weapons from which men throughout the world pray so fervently
  to be spared; and can they scorn those who so greatly fear these torments, just
  as my parents were amused at the torments with which our teachers punished us
  boys? For we were no less afraid of our pains, nor did we beseech thee less to
  escape them. Yet, even so, we were sinning by writing or reading or studying
  less than our assigned lessons.
 For I did not, O Lord, lack memory or capacity, for, by thy will, I possessed
  enough for my age. However, my mind was absorbed only in play, and I was
  punished for this by those who were doing the same things themselves. But the
  idling of our elders is called business; the idling of boys, though quite like
  it, is punished by those same elders, and no one pities either the boys or the
  men. For will any common sense observer agree that I was rightly punished as a
  boy for playing ball--just because this hindered me from learning more quickly
  those lessons by means of which, as a man, I could play at more shameful games?
  And did he by whom I was beaten do anything different? When he was worsted in
  some small controversy with a fellow teacher, he was more tormented by anger
  and envy than I was when beaten by a playmate in the ball game.  
CHAPTER X
 16. And yet I sinned, O Lord my God, thou ruler and creator of all natural
  things--but of sins only the ruler--I sinned, O Lord my God, in acting against
  the precepts of my parents and of those teachers. For this learning which they
  wished me to acquire--no matter what their motives were--I might have put to
  good account afterward. I disobeyed them, not because I had chosen a better
  way, but from a sheer love of play. I loved the vanity of victory, and I loved
  to have my ears tickled with lying fables, which made them itch even more
  ardently, and a similar curiosity glowed more and more in my eyes for the shows
  and sports of my elders. Yet those who put on such shows are held in such high
  repute that almost all desire the same for their children. They are therefore
  willing to have them beaten, if their childhood games keep them from the
  studies by which their parents desire them to grow up to be able to give such
  shows. Look down on these things with mercy, O Lord, and deliver us who now
  call upon thee; deliver those also who do not call upon thee, that they may
  call upon thee, and thou mayest deliver them. 
 CHAPTER XI
 17. Even as a boy I had heard of eternal life promised to us through the
  humility of the Lord our God, who came down to visit us in our pride, and I was
  signed with the sign of his cross, and was seasoned with his salt even from the
  womb of my mother, who greatly trusted in thee. Thou didst see, O Lord, how,
  once, while I was still a child, I was suddenly seized with stomach pains and
  was at the point of death--thou didst see, O my God, for even then thou wast my
  keeper, with what agitation and with what faith I solicited from the piety of
  my mother and from thy Church (which is the mother of us all) the baptism of
  thy Christ, my Lord and my God. The mother of my flesh was much perplexed, for,
  with a heart pure in thy faith, she was always in deep travail for my eternal
  salvation. If I had not quickly recovered, she would have provided forthwith
  for my initiation and washing by thy life-giving sacraments, confessing thee, O
  Lord Jesus, for the forgiveness of sins. So my cleansing was deferred, as if it
  were inevitable that, if I should live, I would be further polluted; and,
  further, because the guilt contracted by sin after baptism would be still
  greater and more perilous.
 Thus, at that time, I "believed" along with my mother and the whole household,
  except my father. But he did not overcome the influence of my mother's piety in
  me, nor did he prevent my believing in Christ, although he had not yet believed
  in him. For it was her desire, O my God, that I should acknowledge thee as my
  Father rather than him. In this thou didst aid her to overcome her husband, to
  whom, though his superior, she yielded obedience. In this way she also yielded
  obedience to thee, who dost so command.
 18. I ask thee, O my God, for I would gladly know if it be thy will, to what
  good end my baptism was deferred at that time? Was it indeed for my good that
  the reins were slackened, as it were, to encourage me in sin? Or, were they not
  slackened? If not, then why is it still dinned into our ears on all sides, "Let
  him alone, let him do as he pleases, for he is not yet baptized"? In the matter
  of bodily health, no one says, "Let him alone; let him be worse wounded; for he
  is not yet cured"! How much better, then, would it have been for me to have
  been cured at once--and if thereafter, through the diligent care of friends and
  myself, my soul's restored health had been kept safe in thy keeping, who gave
  it in the first place! This would have been far better, in truth. But how many
  and great the waves of temptation which appeared to hang over me as I grew out
  of childhood! These were foreseen by my mother, and she preferred that the
  unformed clay should be risked to them rather than the clay molded after
  Christ's image.[24] 
 CHAPTER XII
 19. But in this time of childhood--which was far less dreaded for me than my
  adolescence--I had no love of learning, and hated to be driven to it. Yet I was
  driven to it just the same, and good was done for me, even though I did not do
  it well, for I would not have learned if I had not been forced to it. For no
  man does well against his will, even if what he does is a good thing. Neither
  did they who forced me do well, but the good that was done me came from thee,
  my God. For they did not care about the way in which I would use what they
  forced me to learn, and took it for granted that it was to satisfy the
  inordinate desires of a rich beggary and a shameful glory. But thou, Lord, by
  whom the hairs of our head are numbered, didst use for my good the error of all
  who pushed me on to study: but my error in not being willing to learn thou
  didst use for my punishment. And I--though so small a boy yet so great a
  sinner--was not punished without warrant. Thus by the instrumentality of those
  who did not do well, thou didst well for me; and by my own sin thou didst
  justly punish me. For it is even as thou hast ordained: that every inordinate
  affection brings on its own punishment. 
 CHAPTER XIII
 20. But what were the causes for my strong dislike of Greek literature, which I
  studied from my boyhood? Even to this day I have not fully understood them. For
  Latin I loved exceedingly--not just the rudiments, but what the grammarians
  teach. For those beginner's lessons in reading, writing, and reckoning, I
  considered no less a burden and pain than Greek. Yet whence came this, unless
  from the sin and vanity of this life? For I was "but flesh, a wind that passeth
  away and cometh not again."[25] Those first lessons were
  better, assuredly, because they were more certain, and through them I acquired,
  and still retain, the power of reading what I find written and of writing for
  myself what I will. In the other subjects, however, I was compelled to learn
  about the wanderings of a certain Aeneas, oblivious of my own wanderings, and
  to weep for Dido dead, who slew herself for love. And all this while I bore
  with dry eyes my own wretched self dying to thee, O God, my life, in the midst
  of these things.
 21. For what can be more wretched than the wretch who has no pity upon himself,
  who sheds tears over Dido, dead for the love of Aeneas, but who sheds no tears
  for his own death in not loving thee, O God, light of my heart, and bread of
  the inner mouth of my soul, O power that links together my mind with my inmost
  thoughts? I did not love thee, and thus committed fornication against thee.[26] Those around me, also sinning, thus cried out: "Well
  done! Well done!" The friendship of this world is fornication against thee; and
  "Well done! Well done!" is cried until one feels ashamed not to show himself a
  man in this way. For my own condition I shed no tears, though I wept for Dido,
  who "sought death at the sword's point,"[27] while I myself
  was seeking the lowest rung of thy creation, having forsaken thee; earth
  sinking back to earth again. And, if I had been forbidden to read these poems,
  I would have grieved that I was not allowed to read what grieved me. This sort
  of madness is considered more honorable and more fruitful learning than the
  beginner's course in which I learned to read and write.
 22. But now, O my God, cry unto my soul, and let thy truth say to me: "Not so,
  not so! That first learning was far better." For, obviously, I would rather
  forget the wanderings of Aeneas, and all such things, than forget how to write
  and read. Still, over the entrance of the grammar school there hangs a veil.
  This is not so much the sign of a covering for a mystery as a curtain for
  error. Let them exclaim against me--those I no longer fear--while I confess to
  thee, my God, what my soul desires, and let me find some rest, for in blaming
  my own evil ways I may come to love thy holy ways. Neither let those cry out
  against me who buy and sell the baubles of literature. For if I ask them if it
  is true, as the poet says, that Aeneas once came to Carthage, the unlearned
  will reply that they do not know and the learned will deny that it is true. But
  if I ask with what letters the name Aeneas is written, all who have ever
  learned this will answer correctly, in accordance with the conventional
  understanding men have agreed upon as to these signs. Again, if I should ask
  which would cause the greatest inconvenience in our life, if it were forgotten:
  reading and writing, or these poetical fictions, who does not see what everyone
  would answer who had not entirely lost his own memory? I erred, then, when as a
  boy I preferred those vain studies to these more profitable ones, or rather
  loved the one and hated the other. "One and one are two, two and two are four":
  this was then a truly hateful song to me. But the wooden horse full of its
  armed soldiers, and the holocaust of Troy, and the spectral image of Creusa
  were all a most delightful--and vain--show![28]
 23. But why, then, did I dislike Greek learning, which was full of such tales?
  For Homer was skillful in inventing such poetic fictions and is most sweetly
  wanton; yet when I was a boy, he was most disagreeable to me. I believe that
  Virgil would have the same effect on Greek boys as Homer did on me if they were
  forced to learn him. For the tedium of learning a foreign language mingled gall
  into the sweetness of those Grecian myths. For I did not understand a word of
  the language, and yet I was driven with threats and cruel punishments to learn
  it. There was also a time when, as an infant, I knew no Latin; but this I
  acquired without any fear or tormenting, but merely by being alert to the
  blandishments of my nurses, the jests of those who smiled on me, and the
  sportiveness of those who toyed with me. I learned all this, indeed, without
  being urged by any pressure of punishment, for my own heart urged me to bring
  forth its own fashioning, which I could not do except by learning words: not
  from those who taught me but those who talked to me, into whose ears I could
  pour forth whatever I could fashion. From this it is sufficiently clear that a
  free curiosity is more effective in learning than a discipline based on fear.
  Yet, by thy ordinance, O God, discipline is given to restrain the excesses of
  freedom; this ranges from the ferule of the schoolmaster to the trials of the
  martyr and has the effect of mingling for us a wholesome bitterness, which
  calls us back to thee from the poisonous pleasures that first drew us from thee.  
 CHAPTER XV
 24. Hear my prayer, O Lord; let not my soul faint under thy discipline, nor let
  me faint in confessing unto thee thy mercies, whereby thou hast saved me from
  all my most wicked ways till thou shouldst become sweet to me beyond all the
  allurements that I used to follow. Let me come to love thee wholly, and grasp
  thy hand with my whole heart that thou mayest deliver me from every temptation,
  even unto the last. And thus, O Lord, my King and my God, may all things useful
  that I learned as a boy now be offered in thy service--let it be that for thy
  service I now speak and write and reckon. For when I was learning vain things,
  thou didst impose thy discipline upon me: and thou hast forgiven me my sin of
  delighting in those vanities. In those studies I learned many a useful word,
  but these might have been learned in matters not so vain; and surely that is
  the safe way for youths to walk in. 
 CHAPTER XVI
 25. But woe unto you, O torrent of human custom! Who shall stay your course?
  When will you ever run dry? How long will you carry down the sons of Eve into
  that vast and hideous ocean, which even those who have the Tree (for an ark)[29] can scarcely pass over? Do I not read in you the stories
  of Jove the thunderer--and the adulterer?[30] How could he
  be both? But so it says, and the sham thunder served as a cloak for him to play
  at real adultery. Yet which of our gowned masters will give a tempered hearing
  to a man trained in their own schools who cries out and says: "These were
  Homer's fictions; he transfers things human to the gods. I could have wished
  that he would transfer divine things to us."[31] But it
  would have been more true if he said, "These are, indeed, his fictions, but he
  attributed divine attributes to sinful men, that crimes might not be accounted
  crimes, and that whoever committed such crimes might appear to imitate the
  celestial gods and not abandoned men." 
 26. And yet, O torrent of hell, the sons of men are still cast into you, and
  they pay fees for learning all these things. And much is made of it when this
  goes on in the forum under the auspices of laws which give a salary over and
  above the fees. And you beat against your rocky shore and roar: "Here words may
  be learned; here you can attain the eloquence which is so necessary to persuade
  people to your way of thinking; so helpful in unfolding your opinions." Verily,
  they seem to argue that we should never have understood these words, "golden
  shower," "bosom," "intrigue," "highest heavens," and other such words, if
  Terence had not introduced a good-for-nothing youth upon the stage, setting up
  a picture of Jove as his example of lewdness and telling the tale 
 "Of Jove's descending in a golden shower 
 Into Danae's bosom... 
 With a woman to intrigue." 
 See how he excites himself to lust, as if by a heavenly authority, when he
  says: 
 "Great Jove, 
 Who shakes the highest heavens with his thunder; 
 Shall I, poor mortal man, not do the same?
 I've done it, and with all my heart, I'm glad."[32] 
 These words are not learned one whit more easily because of this vileness, but
  through them the vileness is more boldly perpetrated. I do not blame the words,
  for they are, as it were, choice and precious vessels, but I do deplore the
  wine of error which was poured out to us by teachers already drunk. And, unless
  we also drank we were beaten, without liberty of appeal to a sober judge. And
  yet, O my God, in whose presence I can now with security recall this, I learned
  these things willingly and with delight, and for it I was called a boy of good
  promise. 
 CHAPTER XVII
 27. Bear with me, O my God, while I speak a little of those talents, thy gifts,
  and of the follies on which I wasted them. For a lesson was given me that
  sufficiently disturbed my soul, for in it there was both hope of praise and
  fear of shame or stripes. The assignment was that I should declaim the words of
  Juno, as she raged and sorrowed that she could not 
"Bar off Italy
 From all the approaches of the Teucrian king."[33] 
 I had learned that Juno had never uttered these words. Yet we were compelled to
  stray in the footsteps of these poetic fictions, and to turn into prose what
  the poet had said in verse. In the declamation, the boy won most applause who
  most strikingly reproduced the passions of anger and sorrow according to the
  "character" of the persons presented and who clothed it all in the most
  suitable language. What is it now to me, O my true Life, my God, that my
  declaiming was applauded above that of many of my classmates and fellow
  students? Actually, was not all that smoke and wind? Besides, was there nothing
  else on which I could have exercised my wit and tongue? Thy praise, O Lord, thy
  praises might have propped up the tendrils of my heart by thy Scriptures; and
  it would not have been dragged away by these empty trifles, a shameful prey to
  the spirits of the air. For there is more than one way in which men sacrifice
  to the fallen angels. 
 CHAPTER XVIII
 28. But it was no wonder that I was thus carried toward vanity and was
  estranged from thee, O my God, when men were held up as models to me who, when
  relating a deed of theirs--not in itself evil--were covered with confusion if
  found guilty of a barbarism or a solecism; but who could tell of their own
  licentiousness and be applauded for it, so long as they did it in a full and
  ornate oration of well-chosen words. Thou seest all this, O Lord, and dost keep
  silence--"long-suffering, and plenteous in mercy and truth"[34] as thou art. Wilt thou keep silence forever? Even now
  thou drawest from that vast deep the soul that seeks thee and thirsts after thy
  delight, whose "heart said unto thee, `I have sought thy face; thy face, Lord,
  will I seek.'"[35] For I was far from thy face in the dark
  shadows of passion. For it is not by our feet, nor by change of place, that we
  either turn from thee or return to thee. That younger son did not charter
  horses or chariots, or ships, or fly away on visible wings, or journey by
  walking so that in the far country he might prodigally waste all that thou
  didst give him when he set out.[36] A kind Father when thou
  gavest; and kinder still when he returned destitute! To be wanton, that is to
  say, to be darkened in heart--this is to be far from thy face.
 29. Look down, O Lord God, and see patiently, as thou art wont to do, how
  diligently the sons of men observe the conventional rules of letters and
  syllables, taught them by those who learned their letters beforehand, while
  they neglect the eternal rules of everlasting salvation taught by thee. They
  carry it so far that if he who practices or teaches the established rules of
  pronunciation should speak (contrary to grammatical usage) without aspirating
  the first syllable of "hominem" ["ominem," and thus make it "a
  `uman being"], he will offend men more than if he, a human being, were to hate another human being contrary to thy commandments. It is as if he
  should feel that there is an enemy who could be more destructive to himself
  than that hatred which excites him against his fellow man; or that he could
  destroy him whom he hates more 
  completely than he destroys his own soul by this
  same hatred. Now, obviously, there is no knowledge of letters more innate than
  the writing of conscience--against doing unto another what one would not have
  done to himself.
 How mysterious thou art, who "dwellest on high"[37] in
  silence. O thou, the only great God, who by an unwearied law hurlest down the
  penalty of blindness to unlawful desire! When a man seeking the reputation of
  eloquence stands before a human judge, while a thronging multitude surrounds
  him, and inveighs against his enemy with the most fierce hatred, he takes most
  vigilant heed that his tongue does not slip in a grammatical error, for
  example, and say inter hominibus [instead of inter homines], but
  he takes no heed lest, in the fury of his spirit, he cut off a man from his
  fellow men [ex hominibus].
 30. These were the customs in the midst of which I was cast, an unhappy boy.
  This was the wrestling arena in which I was more fearful of perpetrating a
  barbarism than, having done so, of envying those who had not. These things I
  declare and confess to thee, my God. I was applauded by those whom I then
  thought it my whole duty to please, for I did not perceive the gulf of infamy
  wherein I was cast away from thy eyes. 
 For in thy eyes, what was more infamous than I was already, since I displeased
  even my own kind and deceived, with endless lies, my tutor, my masters and
  parents--all from a love of play, a craving for frivolous spectacles, a
  stage-struck restlessness to imitate what I saw in these shows? I pilfered from
  my parents' cellar and table, sometimes driven by gluttony, sometimes just to
  have something to give to other boys in exchange for their baubles, which they
  were prepared to sell even though they liked them as well as I. Moreover, in
  this kind of play, I often sought dishonest victories, being myself conquered
  by the vain desire for pre-eminence. And what was I so unwilling to endure, and
  what was it that I censured so violently when I caught anyone, except the very
  things I did to others? And, when I was myself detected and censured, I
  preferred to quarrel rather than to yield. Is this the innocence of childhood?
  It is not, O Lord, it is not. I entreat thy mercy, O my God, for these same
  sins as we grow older are transferred from tutors and masters; they pass from
  nuts and balls and sparrows, to magistrates and kings, to gold and lands and
  slaves, just as the rod is succeeded by more severe chastisements. It was,
  then, the fact of humility in childhood that thou, O our King, didst approve as
  a symbol of humility when thou saidst, "Of such is the Kingdom of Heaven."[38]  
CHAPTER XIX
 31. However, O Lord, to thee most excellent and most good, thou Architect and
  Governor of the universe, thanks would be due thee, O our God, even if thou
  hadst not willed that I should survive my boyhood. For I existed even then; I
  lived and felt and was solicitous about my own well-being--a trace of that most
  mysterious unity from whence I had my being. [39] I kept
  watch, by my inner sense, over the integrity of my outer senses, and even in
  these trifles and also in my thoughts about trifles, I learned to take pleasure
  in truth. I was averse to being deceived; I had a vigorous memory; I was gifted
  with the power of speech, was softened by friendship, shunned sorrow, meanness,
  ignorance. Is not such an animated creature as this wonderful and praiseworthy?
  But all these are gifts of my God; I did not give them to myself. Moreover,
  they are good, and they all together constitute myself. Good, then, is he that
  made me, and he is my God; and before him will I rejoice exceedingly for every
  good gift which, even as a boy, I had. But herein lay my sin, that it was not
  in him, but in his creatures--myself and the rest--that I sought for pleasures,
  honors, and truths. And I fell thereby into sorrows, troubles, and errors.
  Thanks be to thee, my joy, my pride, my confidence, my God--thanks be to thee
  for thy gifts; but do thou preserve them in me. For thus wilt thou preserve me;
  and those things which thou hast given me shall be developed and perfected, and
  I myself shall be with thee, for from thee is my being. 
  
BOOK TWO
He concentrates here on his sixteenth year, a year of idleness,
  lust, and adolescent mischief. The memory of stealing some pears prompts a deep
  probing of the motives and aims of sinful acts. "I became to myself a
  wasteland."
 CHAPTER I
 1. I wish now to review in memory my past wickedness and the carnal corruptions
  of my soul--not because I still love them, but that I may love thee, O my God.
  For love of thy love I do this, recalling in the bitterness of self-examination
  my wicked ways, that thou mayest grow sweet to me, thou sweetness without
  deception! Thou sweetness happy and assured! Thus thou mayest gather me up out
  of those fragments in which I was torn to pieces, while I turned away from
  thee, O Unity, and lost myself among "the many."[40] For as
  I became a youth, I longed to be satisfied with worldly things, and I dared to
  grow wild in a succession of various and shadowy loves. My form wasted away,
  and I became corrupt in thy eyes, yet I was still pleasing to my own eyes--and
  eager to please the eyes of men. 
 CHAPTER II
 2. But what was it that delighted me save to love and to be loved? Still I did
  not keep the moderate way of the love of mind to mind--the bright path of
  friendship. Instead, the mists of passion steamed up out of the puddly
  concupiscence of the flesh, and the hot imagination of puberty, and they so
  obscured and overcast my heart that I was unable to distinguish pure affection
  from unholy desire. Both boiled confusedly within me, and dragged my unstable
  youth down over the cliffs of unchaste desires and plunged me into a gulf of
  infamy. Thy anger had come upon me, and I knew it not. I had been deafened by
  the clanking of the chains of my mortality, the punishment for my soul's pride,
  and I wandered farther from thee, and thou didst permit me to do so. I was
  tossed to and fro, and wasted, and poured out, and I boiled over in my
  fornications--and yet thou didst hold thy peace, O my tardy Joy! Thou didst
  still hold thy peace, and I wandered still farther from thee into more and yet
  more barren fields of sorrow, in proud dejection and restless lassitude.
 3. If only there had been someone to regulate my disorder and turn to my profit
  the fleeting beauties of the things around me, and to fix a bound to their
  sweetness, so that the tides of my youth might have spent themselves upon the
  shore of marriage! Then they might have been tranquilized and satisfied with
  having children, as thy law prescribes, O Lord--O thou who dost form the
  offspring of our death and art able also with a tender hand to blunt the thorns
  which were excluded from thy paradise![41] For thy
  omnipotence is not far from us even when we are far from thee. Now, on the
  other hand, I might have given more vigilant heed to the voice from the clouds:
  "Nevertheless, such shall have trouble in the flesh, but I spare you,"[42] and, "It is good for a man not to touch a woman,"[43] and, "He that is unmarried cares for the things that
  belong to the Lord, how he may please the Lord; but he that is married cares
  for the things that are of the world, how he may please his wife."[44] I should have listened more attentively to these words,
  and, thus having been "made a eunuch for the Kingdom of Heaven's sake,"[45] I would have with greater happiness expected thy
  embraces.
 4. But, fool that I was, I foamed in my wickedness as the sea and, forsaking
  thee, followed the rushing of my own tide, and burst out of all thy bounds. But
  I did not escape thy scourges. For what mortal can do so? Thou wast always by
  me, mercifully angry and flavoring all my unlawful pleasures with bitter
  discontent, in order that I might seek pleasures free from discontent. But
  where could I find such pleasure save in thee, O Lord--save in thee, who dost
  teach us by sorrow, who woundest us to heal us, and dost kill us that we may
  not die apart from thee. Where was I, and how far was I exiled from the
  delights of thy house, in that sixteenth year of the age of my flesh, when the
  madness of lust held full sway in me--that madness which grants indulgence to
  human shamelessness, even though it is forbidden by thy laws--and I gave myself
  entirely to it? Meanwhile, my family took no care to save me from ruin by
  marriage, for their sole care was that I should learn how to make a powerful
  speech and become a persuasive orator. 
 CHAPTER III
 5. Now, in that year my studies were interrupted. I had come back from Madaura,
  a neighboring city[46] where I had gone to study grammar
  and rhetoric; and the money for a further term at Carthage was being got
  together for me. This project was more a matter of my father's ambition than of
  his means, for he was only a poor citizen of Tagaste. 
 To whom am I narrating all this? Not to thee, O my God, but to my own kind in
  thy presence--to that small part of the human race who may chance to come upon
  these writings. And to what end? That I and all who read them may understand
  what depths there are from which we are to cry unto thee.[47] For what is more surely heard in thy ear than a
  confessing heart and a faithful life? 
 Who did not extol and praise my father, because he went quite beyond his means
  to supply his son with the necessary expenses for a far journey in the interest
  of his education? For many far richer citizens did not do so much for their
  children. Still, this same father troubled himself not at all as to how I was
  progressing toward thee nor how chaste I was, just so long as I was skillful in
  speaking--no matter how barren I was to thy tillage, O God, who art the one
  true and good Lord of my heart, which is thy field.[48] 
 6. During that sixteenth year of my age, I lived with my parents, having a
  holiday from school for a time--this idleness imposed upon me by my parents'
  straitened finances. The thornbushes of lust grew rank about my head, and there
  was no hand to root them out. Indeed, when my father saw me one day at the
  baths and perceived that I was becoming a man, and was showing the signs of
  adolescence, he joyfully told my mother about it as if already looking forward
  to grandchildren, rejoicing in that sort of inebriation in which the world so
  often forgets thee, its Creator, and falls in love with thy creature instead of
  thee--the inebriation of that invisible wine of a perverted will which turns
  and bows down to infamy. But in my mother's breast thou hadst already begun to
  build thy temple and the foundation of thy holy habitation--whereas my father
  was only a catechumen, and that but recently. She was, therefore, startled with
  a holy fear and trembling: for though I had not yet been baptized, she feared
  those crooked ways in which they walk who turn their backs to thee and not
  their faces.
 7. Woe is me! Do I dare affirm that thou didst hold thy peace, O my God, while
  I wandered farther away from thee? Didst thou really then hold thy peace? Then
  whose words were they but thine which by my mother, thy faithful handmaid, thou
  didst pour into my ears? None of them, however, sank into my heart to make me
  do anything. She deplored and, as I remember, warned me privately with great
  solicitude, "not to commit fornication; but above all things never to defile
  another man's wife." These appeared to me but womanish counsels, which I would
  have blushed to obey. Yet they were from thee, and I knew it not. I thought
  that thou wast silent and that it was only she who spoke. Yet it was through
  her that thou didst not keep silence toward me; and in rejecting her counsel I
  was rejecting thee--I, her son, "the son of thy handmaid, thy servant."[49] But I did not realize this, and rushed on headlong with
  such blindness that, among my friends, I was ashamed to be less shameless than
  they, when I heard them boasting of their disgraceful exploits--yes, and
  glorying all the more the worse their baseness was. What is worse, I took
  pleasure in such exploits, not for the pleasure's sake only but mostly for
  praise. What is worthy of vituperation except vice itself? Yet I made myself
  out worse than I was, in order that I might not go lacking for praise. And when
  in anything I had not sinned as the worst ones in the group, I would still say
  that I had done what I had not done, in order not to appear contemptible
  because I was more innocent than they; and not to drop in their esteem because
  I was more chaste.
 8. Behold with what companions I walked the streets of Babylon! I rolled in its
  mire and lolled about on it, as if on a bed of spices and precious ointments.
  And, drawing me more closely to the very center of that city, my invisible
  enemy trod me down and seduced me, for I was easy to seduce. My mother had
  already fled out of the midst of Babylon[50] and was
  progressing, albeit slowly, toward its outskirts. For in counseling me to
  chastity, she did not bear in mind what her husband had told her about me. And
  although she knew that my passions were destructive even then and dangerous for
  the future, she did not think they should be restrained by the bonds of
  conjugal affection--if, indeed, they could not be cut away to the quick. She
  took no heed of this, for she was afraid lest a wife should prove a hindrance
  and a burden to my hopes. These were not her hopes of the world to come, which
  my mother had in thee, but the hope of learning, which both my parents were too
  anxious that I should acquire--my father, because he had little or no thought
  of thee, and only vain thoughts for me; my mother, because she thought that the
  usual course of study would not only be no hindrance but actually a furtherance
  toward my eventual return to thee. This much I conjecture, recalling as well as
  I can the temperaments of my parents. Meantime, the reins of discipline were
  slackened on me, so that without the restraint of due severity, I might play at
  whatsoever I fancied, even to the point of dissoluteness. And in all this there
  was that mist which shut out from my sight the brightness of thy truth, O my
  God; and my iniquity bulged out, as it were, with fatness![51]  
 CHAPTER IV
 9. Theft is punished by thy law, O Lord, and by the law written in men's
  hearts, which not even ingrained wickedness can erase. For what thief will
  tolerate another thief stealing from him? Even a rich thief will not tolerate a
  poor thief who is driven to theft by want. Yet I had a desire to commit
  robbery, and did so, compelled to it by neither hunger nor poverty, but through
  a contempt for well-doing and a strong impulse to iniquity. For I pilfered
  something which I already had in sufficient measure, and of much better
  quality. I did not desire to enjoy what I stole, but only the theft and the sin
  itself.
 There was a pear tree close to our own vineyard, heavily laden with fruit,
  which was not tempting either for its color or for its flavor. Late one
  night--having prolonged our games in the streets until then, as our bad habit
  was--a group of young scoundrels, and I among them, went to shake and rob this
  tree. We carried off a huge load of pears, not to eat ourselves, but to dump
  out to the hogs, after barely tasting some of them ourselves. Doing this
  pleased us all the more because it was forbidden. Such was my heart, O God,
  such was my heart--which thou didst pity even in that bottomless pit. Behold,
  now let my heart confess to thee what it was seeking there, when I was being
  gratuitously wanton, having no inducement to evil but the evil itself. It was
  foul, and I loved it. I loved my own undoing. I loved my error--not that for
  which I erred but the error itself. A depraved soul, falling away from security
  in thee to destruction in itself, seeking nothing from the shameful deed but
  shame itself. 
 CHAPTER V
 10. Now there is a comeliness in all beautiful bodies, and in gold and silver
  and all things. The sense of touch has its own power to please and the other
  senses find their proper objects in physical sensation. Worldly honor also has
  its own glory, and so do the powers to command and to overcome: and from these
  there springs up the desire for revenge. Yet, in seeking these pleasures, we
  must not depart from thee, O Lord, nor deviate from thy law. The life which we
  live here has its own peculiar attractiveness because it has a certain measure
  of comeliness of its own and a harmony with all these inferior values. The bond
  of human friendship has a sweetness of its own, binding many souls together as
  one. Yet because of these values, sin is committed, because we have an
  inordinate preference for these goods of a lower order and neglect the better
  and the higher good--neglecting thee, O our Lord God, and thy truth and thy
  law. For these inferior values have their delights, but not at all equal to my
  God, who hath made them all. For in him do the righteous delight and he is the
  sweetness of the upright in heart.
 11. When, therefore, we inquire why a crime was committed, we do not accept the
  explanation unless it appears that there was the desire to obtain some of those
  values which we designate inferior, or else a fear of losing them. For truly
  they are beautiful and comely, though in comparison with the superior and
  celestial goods they are abject and contemptible. A man has murdered another
  man--what was his motive? Either he desired his wife or his property or else he
  would steal to support himself; or else he was afraid of losing something to
  him; or else, having been injured, he was burning to be revenged. Would a man
  commit murder without a motive, taking delight simply in the act of murder? Who
  would believe such a thing? Even for that savage and brutal man [Catiline], of
  whom it was said that he was gratuitously wicked and cruel, there is still a
  motive assigned to his deeds. "Lest through idleness," he says, "hand or heart
  should grow inactive."[52] And to what purpose? Why, even
  this: that, having once got possession of the city through his practice of his
  wicked ways, he might gain honors, empire, and wealth, and thus be exempt from
  the fear of the laws and from financial difficulties in supplying the needs of
  his family--and from the consciousness of his own wickedness. So it seems that
  even Catiline himself loved not his own villainies, but something else, and it
  was this that gave him the motive for his crimes. 
 CHAPTER VI
 12. What was it in you, O theft of mine, that I, poor wretch, doted on--you
  deed of darkness--in that sixteenth year of my age? Beautiful you were not, for
  you were a theft. But are you anything at all, so that I could analyze the case
  with you? Those pears that we stole were fair to the sight because they were
  thy creation, O Beauty beyond compare, O Creator of all, O thou good God--God
  the highest good and my true good.[53] Those pears were
  truly pleasant to the sight, but it was not for them that my miserable soul
  lusted, for I had an abundance of better pears. I stole those simply that I
  might steal, for, having stolen them, I threw them away. My sole gratification
  in them was my own sin, which I was pleased to enjoy; for, if any one of these
  pears entered my mouth, the only good flavor it had was my sin in eating it.
  And now, O Lord my God, I ask what it was in that theft of mine that caused me
  such delight; for behold it had no beauty of its own--certainly not the sort of
  beauty that exists in justice and wisdom, nor such as is in the mind, memory
  senses, and the animal life of man; nor yet the kind that is the glory and
  beauty of the stars in their courses; nor the beauty of the earth, or the
  sea--teeming with spawning life, replacing in birth that which dies and decays.
  Indeed, it did not have that false and shadowy beauty which attends the
  deceptions of vice.
 13. For thus we see pride wearing the mask of high-spiritedness, although only
  thou, O God, art high above all. Ambition seeks honor and glory, whereas only
  thou shouldst be honored above all, and glorified forever. The powerful man
  seeks to be feared, because of his cruelty; but who ought really to be feared
  but God only? What can be forced away or withdrawn out of his power--when or
  where or whither or by whom? The enticements of the wanton claim the name of
  love; and yet nothing is more enticing than thy love, nor is anything loved
  more healthfully than thy truth, bright and beautiful above all. Curiosity
  prompts a desire for knowledge, whereas it is only thou who knowest all things
  supremely. Indeed, ignorance and foolishness themselves go masked under the
  names of simplicity and innocence; yet there is no being that has true
  simplicity like thine, and none is innocent as thou art. Thus it is that by a
  sinner's own deeds he is himself harmed. Human sloth pretends to long for rest,
  but what sure rest is there save in the Lord? Luxury would fain be called
  plenty and abundance; but thou art the fullness and unfailing abundance of
  unfading joy. Prodigality presents a show of liberality; but thou art the most
  lavish giver of all good things. Covetousness desires to possess much; but thou
  art already the possessor of all things. Envy contends that its aim is for
  excellence; but what is so excellent as thou? Anger seeks revenge; but who
  avenges more justly than thou? Fear recoils at the unfamiliar and the sudden
  changes which threaten things beloved, and is wary for its own security; but
  what can happen that is unfamiliar or sudden to thee? Or who can deprive thee
  of what thou lovest? Where, really, is there unshaken security save with thee?
  Grief languishes for things lost in which desire had taken delight, because it
  wills to have nothing taken from it, just as nothing can be taken from thee.
 14. Thus the soul commits fornication when she is turned from thee,[54] and seeks apart from thee what she cannot find pure and
  untainted until she returns to thee. All things thus imitate thee--but
  pervertedly--when they separate themselves far from thee and raise themselves
  up against thee. But, even in this act of perverse imitation, they acknowledge
  thee to be the Creator of all nature, and recognize that there is no place
  whither they can altogether separate themselves from thee. What was it, then,
  that I loved in that theft? And wherein was I imitating my Lord, even in a
  corrupted and perverted way? Did I wish, if only by gesture, to rebel against
  thy law, even though I had no power to do so actually--so that, even as a
  captive, I might produce a sort of counterfeit liberty, by doing with impunity
  deeds that were forbidden, in a deluded sense of omnipotence? Behold this
  servant of thine, fleeing from his Lord and following a shadow! O rottenness! O
  monstrousness of life and abyss of death! Could I find pleasure only in what
  was unlawful, and only because it was unlawful?  
 CHAPTER VII
 15. "What shall I render unto the Lord"[55] for the fact
  that while my memory recalls these things my soul no longer fears them? I will
  love thee, O Lord, and thank thee, and confess to thy name, because thou hast
  put away from me such wicked and evil deeds. To thy grace I attribute it and to
  thy mercy, that thou hast melted away my sin as if it were ice. To thy grace
  also I attribute whatsoever of evil I did not commit--for what might I
  not have done, loving sin as I did, just for the sake of sinning? Yea, all the
  sins that I confess now to have been forgiven me, both those which I committed
  willfully and those which, by thy providence, I did not commit. What man is
  there who, when reflecting upon his own infirmity, dares to ascribe his
  chastity and innocence to his own powers, so that he should love thee less--as
  if he were in less need of thy mercy in which thou forgivest the transgressions
  of those that return to thee? As for that man who, when called by thee, obeyed
  thy voice and shunned those things which he here reads of me as I recall and
  confess them of myself, let him not despise me--for I, who was sick, have been
  healed by the same Physician by whose aid it was that he did not fall sick, or
  rather was less sick than I. And for this let him love thee just as
  much--indeed, all the more--since he sees me restored from such a great
  weakness of sin by the selfsame Saviour by whom he sees himself preserved from
  such a weakness. 
 CHAPTER VIII
 16. What profit did I, a wretched one, receive from those things which, when I
  remember them now, cause me shame--above all, from that theft, which I loved
  only for the theft's sake? And, as the theft itself was nothing, I was all the
  more wretched in that I loved it so. Yet by myself alone I would not have done
  it--I still recall how I felt about this then--I could not have done it alone.
  I loved it then because of the companionship of my accomplices with whom I did
  it. I did not, therefore, love the theft alone--yet, indeed, it was only the
  theft that I loved, for the companionship was nothing. What is this paradox?
  Who is it that can explain it to me but God, who illumines my heart and
  searches out the dark corners thereof? What is it that has prompted my mind to
  inquire about it, to discuss and to reflect upon all this? For had I at that
  time loved the pears that I stole and wished to enjoy them, I might have done
  so alone, if I could have been satisfied with the mere act of theft by which my
  pleasure was served. Nor did I need to have that itching of my own passions
  inflamed by the encouragement of my accomplices. But since the pleasure I got
  was not from the pears, it was in the crime itself, enhanced by the
  companionship of my fellow sinners. 
 CHAPTER IX
 17. By what passion, then, was I animated? It was undoubtedly depraved and a
  great misfortune for me to feel it. But still, what was it? "Who can understand
  his errors?"[56]
 We laughed because our hearts were tickled at the thought of deceiving the
  owners, who had no idea of what we were doing and would have strenuously
  objected. Yet, again, why did I find such delight in doing this which I would
  not have done alone? Is it that no one readily laughs alone? No one does so
  readily; but still sometimes, when men are by themselves and no one else is
  about, a fit of laughter will overcome them when something very droll presents
  itself to their sense or mind. Yet alone I would not have done it--alone I
  could not have done it at all.
 Behold, my God, the lively review of my soul's career is laid bare before thee.
  I would not have committed that theft alone. My pleasure in it was not what I
  stole but, rather, the act of stealing. Nor would I have enjoyed doing it
  alone--indeed I would not have done it! O friendship all unfriendly! You
  strange seducer of the soul, who hungers for mischief from impulses of mirth
  and wantonness, who craves another's loss without any desire for one's own
  profit or revenge--so that, when they say, "Let's go, let's do it," we are
  ashamed not to be shameless. 
 CHAPTER X
 18. Who can unravel such a twisted and tangled knottiness? It is unclean. I
  hate to reflect upon it. I hate to look on it. But I do long for thee, O
  Righteousness and Innocence, so beautiful and comely to all virtuous eyes--I
  long for thee with an insatiable satiety. With thee is perfect rest, and life
  unchanging. He who enters into thee enters into the joy of his Lord,[57] and shall have no fear and shall achieve excellence in
  the Excellent. I fell away from thee, O my God, and in my youth I wandered too
  far from thee, my true support. And I became to myself a wasteland.  
BOOK THREE
The story of his student days in Carthage, his discovery of
  Cicero's Hortensius, the enkindling of his philosophical interest, his
    infatuation with the Manichean heresy, and his mother's dream which foretold
    his eventual return to the true faith and to God.
 CHAPTER I
 1. I came to Carthage, where a caldron of unholy loves was seething and
  bubbling all around me. I was not in love as yet, but I was in love with love;
  and, from a hidden hunger, I hated myself for not feeling more intensely a
  sense of hunger. I was looking for something to love, for I was in love with
  loving, and I hated security and a smooth way, free from snares. Within me I
  had a dearth of that inner food which is thyself, my God--although that dearth
  caused me no hunger. And I remained without any appetite for incorruptible
  food--not because I was already filled with it, but because the emptier I
  became the more I loathed it. Because of this my soul was unhealthy; and, full
  of sores, it exuded itself forth, itching to be scratched by scraping on the
  things of the senses.[58] Yet, had these things no soul,
  they would certainly not inspire our love.
 To love and to be loved was sweet to me, and all the more when I gained the
  enjoyment of the body of the person I loved. Thus I polluted the spring of
  friendship with the filth of concupiscence and I dimmed its luster with the
  slime of lust. Yet, foul and unclean as I was, I still craved, in excessive
  vanity, to be thought elegant and urbane. And I did fall precipitately into the
  love I was longing for. My God, my mercy, with how much bitterness didst thou,
  out of thy infinite goodness, flavor that sweetness for me! For I was not only
  beloved but also I secretly reached the climax of enjoyment; and yet I was
  joyfully bound with troublesome tics, so that I could be scourged with the
  burning iron rods of jealousy, suspicion, fear, anger, and strife. 
 CHAPTER II
 2. Stage plays also captivated me, with their sights full of the images of my
  own miseries: fuel for my own fire. Now, why does a man like to be made sad by
  viewing doleful and tragic scenes, which he himself could not by any means
  endure? Yet, as a spectator, he wishes to experience from them a sense of
  grief, and in this very sense of grief his pleasure consists. What is this but
  wretched madness? For a man is more affected by these actions the more he is
  spuriously involved in these affections. Now, if he should suffer them in his
  own person, it is the custom to call this "misery." But when he suffers with
  another, then it is called "compassion." But what kind of compassion is it that
  arises from viewing fictitious and unreal sufferings? The spectator is not
  expected to aid the sufferer but merely to grieve for him. And the more he
  grieves the more he applauds the actor of these fictions. If the misfortunes of
  the characters--whether historical or entirely imaginary--are represented so as
  not to touch the feelings of the spectator, he goes away disgusted and
  complaining. But if his feelings are deeply touched, he sits it out
  attentively, and sheds tears of joy.
 3. Tears and sorrow, then, are loved. Surely every man desires to be joyful.
  And, though no one is willingly miserable, one may, nevertheless, be pleased to
  be merciful so that we love their sorrows because without them we should have
  nothing to pity. This also springs from that same vein of friendship. But
  whither does it go? Whither does it flow? Why does it run into that torrent of
  pitch which seethes forth those huge tides of loathsome lusts in which it is
  changed and altered past recognition, being diverted and corrupted from its
  celestial purity by its own will? Shall, then, compassion be repudiated? By no
  means! Let us, however, love the sorrows of others. But let us beware of
  uncleanness, O my soul, under the protection of my God, the God of our fathers,
  who is to be praised and exalted--let us beware of uncleanness. I have not yet
  ceased to have compassion. But in those days in the theaters I sympathized with
  lovers when they sinfully enjoyed one another, although this was done
  fictitiously in the play. And when they lost one another, I grieved with them,
  as if pitying them, and yet had delight in both grief and pity. Nowadays I feel
  much more pity for one who delights in his wickedness than for one who counts
  himself unfortunate because he fails to obtain some harmful pleasure or suffers
  the loss of some miserable felicity. This, surely, is the truer compassion, but
  the sorrow I feel in it has no delight for me. For although he that grieves
  with the unhappy should be commended for his work of love, yet he who has the
  power of real compassion would still prefer that there be nothing for him to
  grieve about. For if good will were to be ill will--which it cannot be--only
  then could he who is truly and sincerely compassionate wish that there were
  some unhappy people so that he might commiserate them. Some grief may then be
  justified, but none of it loved. Thus it is that thou dost act, O Lord God, for
  thou lovest souls far more purely than we do and art more incorruptibly
  compassionate, although thou art never wounded by any sorrow. Now "who is
  sufficient for these things?"[59]
 4. But at that time, in my wretchedness, I loved to grieve; and I sought for
  things to grieve about. In another man's misery, even though it was feigned and
  impersonated on the stage, that performance of the actor pleased me best and
  attracted me most powerfully which moved me to tears. What marvel then was it
  that an unhappy sheep, straying from thy flock and impatient of thy care, I
  became infected with a foul disease? This is the reason for my love of griefs:
  that they would not probe into me too deeply (for I did not love to suffer in
  myself such things as I loved to look at), and they were the sort of grief
  which came from hearing those fictions, which affected only the surface of my
  emotion. Still, just as if they had been poisoned fingernails, their scratching
  was followed by inflammation, swelling, putrefaction, and corruption. Such was
  my life! But was it life, O my God?  
CHAPTER III
 5. And still thy faithful mercy hovered over me from afar. In what unseemly
  iniquities did I wear myself out, following a sacrilegious curiosity, which,
  having deserted thee, then began to drag me down into the treacherous abyss,
  into the beguiling obedience of devils, to whom I made offerings of my wicked
  deeds. And still in all this thou didst not fail to scourge me. I dared, even
  while thy solemn rites were being celebrated inside the walls of thy church, to
  desire and to plan a project which merited death as its fruit. For this thou
  didst chastise me with grievous punishments, but nothing in comparison with my
  fault, O thou my greatest mercy, my God, my refuge from those terrible dangers
  in which I wandered with stiff neck, receding farther from thee, loving my own
  ways and not thine--loving a vagrant liberty!
 6. Those studies I was then pursuing, generally accounted as respectable, were
  aimed at distinction in the courts of law--to excel in which, the more crafty I
  was, the more I should be praised. Such is the blindness of men that they even
  glory in their blindness. And by this time I had become a master in the School
  of Rhetoric, and I rejoiced proudly in this honor and became inflated with
  arrogance. Still I was relatively sedate, O Lord, as thou knowest, and had no
  share in the wreckings of "The Wreckers"[60] (for this
  stupid and diabolical name was regarded as the very badge of gallantry) among
  whom I lived with a sort of ashamed embarrassment that I was not even as they
  were. But I lived with them, and at times I was delighted with their
  friendship, even when I abhorred their acts (that is, their "wrecking") in
  which they insolently attacked the modesty of strangers, tormenting them by
  uncalled-for jeers, gratifying their mischievous mirth. Nothing could more
  nearly resemble the actions of devils than these fellows. By what name,
  therefore, could they be more aptly called than "wreckers"?--being themselves
  wrecked first, and altogether turned upside down. They were secretly mocked at
  and seduced by the deceiving spirits, in the very acts by which they amused
  themselves in jeering and horseplay at the expense of others. 
 CHAPTER IV
 7. Among such as these, in that unstable period of my life, I studied the books
  of eloquence, for it was in eloquence that I was eager to be eminent, though
  from a reprehensible and vainglorious motive, and a delight in human vanity. In
  the ordinary course of study I came upon a certain book of Cicero's, whose
  language almost all admire, though not his heart. This particular book of his
  contains an exhortation to philosophy and was called Hortensius.[61] Now it was this book which quite definitely changed my
  whole attitude and turned my prayers toward thee, O Lord, and gave me new hope
  and new desires. Suddenly every vain hope became worthless to me, and with an
  incredible warmth of heart I yearned for an immortality of wisdom and began now
  to arise that I might return to thee. It was not to sharpen my tongue further
  that I made use of that book. I was now nineteen; my father had been dead two
  years,[62] and my mother was providing the money for my
  study of rhetoric. What won me in it [i.e., the Hortensius] was not its
  style but its substance.
 8. How ardent was I then, my God, how ardent to fly from earthly things to
  thee! Nor did I know how thou wast even then dealing with me. For with thee is
  wisdom. In Greek the love of wisdom is called "philosophy," and it was with
  this love that that book inflamed me. There are some who seduce through
  philosophy, under a great, alluring, and honorable name, using it to color and
  adorn their own errors. And almost all who did this, in Cicero's own time and
  earlier, are censored and pointed out in his book. In it there is also manifest
  that most salutary admonition of thy Spirit, spoken by thy good and pious
  servant: "Beware lest any man spoil you through philosophy and vain deceit,
  after the tradition of men, after the rudiments of the world, and not after
  Christ: for in him all the fullness of the Godhead dwells bodily."[63] Since at that time, as thou knowest, O Light of my heart,
  the words of the apostle were unknown to me, I was delighted with Cicero's
  exhortation, at least enough so that I was stimulated by it, and enkindled and
  inflamed to love, to seek, to obtain, to hold, and to embrace, not this or that
  sect, but wisdom itself, wherever it might be. Only this checked my ardor: that
  the name of Christ was not in it. For this name, by thy mercy, O Lord, this
  name of my Saviour thy Son, my tender heart had piously drunk in, deeply
  treasured even with my mother's milk. And whatsoever was lacking that name, no
  matter how erudite, polished, and truthful, did not quite take complete hold of
  me. 
 CHAPTER V
 9. I resolved, therefore, to direct my mind to the Holy Scriptures, that I
  might see what they were. And behold, I saw something not comprehended by the
  proud, not disclosed to children, something lowly in the hearing, but sublime
  in the doing, and veiled in mysteries. Yet I was not of the number of those who
  could enter into it or bend my neck to follow its steps. For then it was quite
  different from what I now feel. When I then turned toward the Scriptures, they
  appeared to me to be quite unworthy to be compared with the dignity of Tully.[64] For my inflated pride was repelled by their style, nor
  could the sharpness of my wit penetrate their inner meaning. Truly they were of
  a sort to aid the growth of little ones, but I scorned to be a little one and,
  swollen with pride, I looked upon myself as fully grown.  
 CHAPTER VI
 10. Thus I fell among men, delirious in their pride, carnal and voluble, whose
  mouths were the snares of the devil--a trap made out of a mixture of the
  syllables of thy name and the names of our Lord Jesus Christ and of the
  Paraclete.[65] These names were never out of their mouths,
  but only as sound and the clatter of tongues, for their heart was empty of
  truth. Still they cried, "Truth, Truth," and were forever speaking the word to
  me. But the thing itself was not in them. Indeed, they spoke falsely not only
  of thee--who truly art the Truth--but also about the basic elements of this
  world, thy creation. And, indeed, I should have passed by the philosophers
  themselves even when they were speaking truth concerning thy creatures, for the
  sake of thy love, O Highest Good, and my Father, O Beauty of all things
  beautiful.
 O Truth, Truth, how inwardly even then did the marrow of my soul sigh for thee
  when, frequently and in manifold ways, in numerous and vast books, [the
  Manicheans] sounded out thy name though it was only a sound! And in these
  dishes--while I starved for thee--they served up to me, in thy stead, the sun
  and moon thy beauteous works--but still only thy works and not thyself; indeed,
  not even thy first work. For thy spiritual works came before these material
  creations, celestial and shining though they are. But I was hungering and
  thirsting, not even after those first works of thine, but after thyself the
  Truth, "with whom is no variableness, neither shadow of turning."[66] Yet they still served me glowing fantasies in those
  dishes. And, truly, it would have been better to have loved this very
  sun--which at least is true to our sight--than those illusions of theirs which
  deceive the mind through the eye. And yet because I supposed the illusions to
  be from thee I fed on them--not with avidity, for thou didst not taste in my
  mouth as thou art, and thou wast not these empty fictions. Neither was I
  nourished by them, but was instead exhausted. Food in dreams appears like our
  food awake; yet the sleepers are not nourished by it, for they are asleep. But
  the fantasies of the Manicheans were not in any way like thee as thou hast
  spoken to me now. They were simply fantastic and false. In comparison to them
  the actual bodies which we see with our fleshly sight, both celestial and
  terrestrial, are far more certain. These true bodies even the beasts and birds
  perceive as well as we do and they are more certain than the images we form
  about them. And again, we do with more certainty form our conceptions about
  them than, from them, we go on by means of them to imagine of other greater and
  infinite bodies which have no existence. With such empty husks was I then fed,
  and yet was not fed.
 But thou, my Love, for whom I longed in order that I might be strong, neither
  art those bodies that we see in heaven nor art thou those which we do not see
  there, for thou hast created them all and yet thou reckonest them not among thy
  greatest works. How far, then, art thou from those fantasies of mine, fantasies
  of bodies which have no real being at all! The images of those bodies which
  actually exist are far more certain than these fantasies. The bodies themselves
  are more certain than the images, yet even these thou art not. Thou art not
  even the soul, which is the life of bodies; and, clearly, the life of the body
  is better than the body itself. But thou art the life of souls, life of lives,
  having life in thyself, and never changing, O Life of my soul.[67]
 11. Where, then, wast thou and how far from me? Far, indeed, was I wandering
  away from thee, being barred even from the husks of those swine whom I fed with
  husks.[68] For how much better were the fables of the
  grammarians and poets than these snares [of the Manicheans]! For verses and
  poems and "the flying Medea"[69] are still more profitable
  truly than these men's "five elements," with their various colors, answering to
  "the five caves of darkness"[70] (none of which exist and
  yet in which they slay the one who believes in them). For verses and poems I
  can turn into food for the mind, for though I sang about "the flying Medea" I
  never believed it, but those other things [the fantasies of the Manicheans] I
  did believe. Woe, woe, by what steps I was dragged down to "the depths of
  hell"[71]--toiling and fuming because of my lack of the
  truth, even when I was seeking after thee, my God! To thee I now confess it,
  for thou didst have mercy on me when I had not yet confessed it. I sought after
  thee, but not according to the understanding of the mind, by means of which
  thou hast willed that I should excel the beasts, but only after the guidance of
  my physical senses. Thou wast more inward to me than the most inward part of
  me; and higher than my highest reach. I came upon that brazen woman, devoid of
  prudence, who, in Solomon's obscure parable, sits at the door of the house on a
  seat and says, "Stolen waters are sweet, and bread eaten in secret is
  pleasant."[72] This woman seduced me, because she found my
  soul outside its own door, dwelling on the sensations of my flesh and
  ruminating on such food as I had swallowed through these physical senses. 
 CHAPTER VII
 12. For I was ignorant of that other reality, true Being. And so it was that I
  was subtly persuaded to agree with these foolish deceivers when they put their
  questions to me: "Whence comes evil?" and, "Is God limited by a bodily shape,
  and has he hairs and nails?" and, "Are those patriarchs to be esteemed
  righteous who had many wives at one time, and who killed men and who sacrificed
  living creatures?" In my ignorance I was much disturbed over these things and,
  though I was retreating from the truth, I appeared to myself to be going toward
  it, because I did not yet know that evil was nothing but a privation of good
  (that, indeed, it has no being)[73]; and how should I have
  seen this when the sight of my eyes went no farther than physical objects, and
  the sight of my mind reached no farther than to fantasms? And I did not know
  that God is a spirit who has no parts extended in length and breadth, whose
  being has no mass--for every mass is less in a part than in a whole--and if it
  be an infinite mass it must be less in such parts as are limited by a certain
  space than in its infinity. It cannot therefore be wholly everywhere as Spirit
  is, as God is. And I was entirely ignorant as to what is that principle within
  us by which we are like God, and which is rightly said in Scripture to be made
  "after God's image."
 13. Nor did I know that true inner righteousness--which does not judge
  according to custom but by the measure of the most perfect law of God
  Almighty--by which the mores of various places and times were adapted to those
  places and times (though the law itself is the same always and everywhere, not
  one thing in one place and another in another). By this inner righteousness
  Abraham and Isaac, and Jacob and Moses and David, and all those commended by
  the mouth of God were righteous and were judged unrighteous only by foolish men
  who were judging by human judgment and gauging their judgment of the mores of
  the whole human race by the narrow norms of their own mores. It is as if a man
  in an armory, not knowing what piece goes on what part of the body, should put
  a greave on his head and a helmet on his shin and then complain because they
  did not fit. Or as if, on some holiday when afternoon business was forbidden,
  one were to grumble at not being allowed to go on selling as it had been lawful
  for him to do in the forenoon. Or, again, as if, in a house, he sees a servant
  handle something that the butler is not permitted to touch, or when something
  is done behind a stable that would be prohibited in a dining room, and then a
  person should be indignant that in one house and one family the same things are
  not allowed to every member of the household. Such is the case with those who
  cannot endure to hear that something was lawful for righteous men in former
  times that is not so now; or that God, for certain temporal reasons, commanded
  then one thing to them and another now to these: yet both would be serving the
  same righteous will. These people should see that in one man, one day, and one
  house, different things are fit for different members; and a thing that was
  formerly lawful may become, after a time, unlawful--and something allowed or
  commanded in one place that is justly prohibited and punished in another. Is
  justice, then, variable and changeable? No, but the times over which she
  presides are not all alike because they are different times. But men, whose
  days upon the earth are few, cannot by their own perception harmonize the
  causes of former ages and other nations, of which they had no experience, and
  compare them with these of which they do have experience; although in one and
  the same body, or day, or family, they can readily see that what is suitable
  for each member, season, part, and person may differ. To the one they take
  exception; to the other they submit.
 14. These things I did not know then, nor had I observed their import. They met
  my eyes on every side, and I did not see. I composed poems, in which I was not
  free to place each foot just anywhere, but in one meter one way, and in another
  meter another way, nor even in any one verse was the same foot allowed in all
  places. Yet the art by which I composed did not have different principles for
  each of these different cases, but the same law throughout. Still I did not see
  how, by that righteousness to which good and holy men submitted, all those
  things that God had commanded were gathered, in a far more excellent and
  sublime way, into one moral order; and it did not vary in any essential
  respect, though it did not in varying times prescribe all things at once but,
  rather, distributed and prescribed what was proper for each. And, being blind,
  I blamed those pious fathers, not only for making use of present things as God
  had commanded and inspired them to do, but also for foreshadowing things to
  come, as God revealed it to them.  
 CHAPTER VIII
 15. Can it ever, at any time or place, be unrighteous for a man to love God
  with all his heart, with all his soul, and with all his mind; and his neighbor
  as himself?[74] Similarly, offenses against nature are
  everywhere and at all times to be held in detestation and should be punished.
  Such offenses, for example, were those of the Sodomites; and, even if all
  nations should commit them, they would all be judged guilty of the same crime
  by the divine law, which has not made men so that they should ever abuse one
  another in that way. For the fellowship that should be between God and us is
  violated whenever that nature of which he is the author is polluted by
  perverted lust. But these offenses against customary morality are to be avoided
  according to the variety of such customs. Thus, what is agreed upon by
  convention, and confirmed by custom or the law of any city or nation, may not
  be violated at the lawless pleasure of any, whether citizen or stranger. For
  any part that is not consistent with its whole is unseemly. Nevertheless, when
  God commands anything contrary to the customs or compacts of any nation, even
  though it were never done by them before, it is to be done; and if it has been
  interrupted, it is to be restored; and if it has never been established, it is
  to be established. For it is lawful for a king, in the state over which he
  reigns, to command that which neither he himself nor anyone before him had
  commanded. And if it cannot be held to be inimical to the public interest to
  obey him--and, in truth, it would be inimical if he were not obeyed, since
  obedience to princes is a general compact of human society--how much more,
  then, ought we unhesitatingly to obey God, the Governor of all his creatures!
  For, just as among the authorities in human society, the greater authority is
  obeyed before the lesser, so also must God be above all.
 16. This applies as well to deeds of violence where there is a real desire to
  harm another, either by humiliating treatment or by injury. Either of these may
  be done for reasons of revenge, as one enemy against another, or in order to
  obtain some advantage over another, as in the case of the highwayman and the
  traveler; else they may be done in order to avoid some other evil, as in the
  case of one who fears another; or through envy as, for example, an unfortunate
  man harming a happy one just because he is happy; or they may be done by a
  prosperous man against someone whom he fears will become equal to himself or
  whose equality he resents. They may even be done for the mere pleasure in
  another man's pain, as the spectators of gladiatorial shows or the people who
  deride and mock at others. These are the major forms of iniquity that spring
  out of the lust of the flesh, and of the eye, and of power.[75] Sometimes there is just one; sometimes two together;
  sometimes all of them at once. Thus we live, offending against the Three and
  the Seven, that harp of ten strings, thy Decalogue, O God most high and most
  sweet.[76] But now how can offenses of vileness harm thee
  who canst not be defiled; or how can deeds of violence harm thee who canst not
  be harmed? Still thou dost punish these sins which men commit against
  themselves because, even when they sin against thee, they are also committing
  impiety against their own souls. Iniquity gives itself the lie, either by
  corrupting or by perverting that nature which thou hast made and ordained. And
  they do this by an immoderate use of lawful things; or by lustful desire for
  things forbidden, as "against nature"; or when they are guilty of sin by raging
  with heart and voice against thee, rebelling against thee, "kicking against the
  pricks"[77]; or when they cast aside respect for human
  society and take audacious delight in conspiracies and feuds according to their
  private likes and dislikes.
 This is what happens whenever thou art forsaken, O Fountain of Life, who art
  the one and true Creator and Ruler of the universe. This is what happens when
  through self-willed pride a part is loved under the false assumption that it is
  the whole. Therefore, we must return to thee in humble piety and let thee purge
  us from our evil ways, and be merciful to those who confess their sins to thee,
  and hear the groanings of the prisoners and loosen us from those fetters which
  we have forged for ourselves. This thou wilt do, provided we do not raise up
  against thee the arrogance of a false freedom--for thus we lose all through
  craving more, by loving our own good more than thee, the common good of all. 
 CHAPTER IX
 17. But among all these vices and crimes and manifold iniquities, there are
  also the sins that are committed by men who are, on the whole, making progress
  toward the good. When these are judged rightly and after the rule of
  perfection, the sins are censored but the men are to be commended because they
  show the hope of bearing fruit, like the green shoot of the growing corn. And
  there are some deeds that resemble vice and crime and yet are not sin because
  they offend neither thee, our Lord God, nor social custom. For example, when
  suitable reserves for hard times are provided, we cannot judge that this is
  done merely from a hoarding impulse. Or, again, when acts are punished by
  constituted authority for the sake of correction, we cannot judge that they are
  done merely out of a desire to inflict pain. Thus, many a deed which is
  disapproved in man's sight may be approved by thy testimony. And many a man who
  is praised by men is condemned--as thou art witness--because frequently the
  deed itself, the mind of the doer, and the hidden exigency of the situation all
  vary among themselves. But when, contrary to human expectation, thou commandest
  something unusual or unthought of--indeed, something thou mayest formerly have
  forbidden, about which thou mayest conceal the reason for thy command at that
  particular time; and even though it may be contrary to the ordinance of some
  society of men[78]--who doubts but that it should be done
  because only that society of men is righteous which obeys thee? But blessed are
  they who know what thou dost command. For all things done by those who obey
  thee either exhibit something necessary at that particular time or they
  foreshow things to come.  
 CHAPTER X
 18. But I was ignorant of all this, and so I mocked those holy servants and
  prophets of thine. Yet what did I gain by mocking them save to be mocked in
  turn by thee? Insensibly and little by little, I was led on to such follies as
  to believe that a fig tree wept when it was plucked and that the sap of the
  mother tree was tears. Notwithstanding this, if a fig was plucked, by not his
  own but another man's wickedness, some Manichean saint might eat it, digest it
  in his stomach, and breathe it out again in the form of angels. Indeed, in his
  prayers he would assuredly groan and sigh forth particles of God, although
  these particles of the most high and true God would have remained bound in that
  fig unless they had been set free by the teeth and belly of some "elect
  saint"[79]! And, wretch that I was, I believed that more
  mercy was to be shown to the fruits of the earth than unto men, for whom these
  fruits were created. For, if a hungry man--who was not a Manichean--should beg
  for any food, the morsel that we gave to him would seem condemned, as it were,
  to capital punishment. 
 CHAPTER XI
 19. And now thou didst "stretch forth thy hand from above"[80] and didst draw up my soul out of that profound darkness
  [of Manicheism] because my mother, thy faithful one, wept to thee on my behalf
  more than mothers are accustomed to weep for the bodily deaths of their
  children. For by the light of the faith and spirit which she received from
  thee, she saw that I was dead. And thou didst hear her, O Lord, thou didst hear
  her and despised not her tears when, pouring down, they watered the earth under
  her eyes in every place where she prayed. Thou didst truly hear her.
 For what other source was there for that dream by which thou didst console her,
  so that she permitted me to live with her, to have my meals in the same house
  at the table which she had begun to avoid, even while she hated and detested
  the blasphemies of my error? In her dream she saw herself standing on a sort of
  wooden rule, and saw a bright youth approaching her, joyous and smiling at her,
  while she was grieving and bowed down with sorrow. But when he inquired of her
  the cause of her sorrow and daily weeping (not to learn from her, but to teach
  her, as is customary in visions), and when she answered that it was my soul's
  doom she was lamenting, he bade her rest content and told her to look and see
  that where she was there I was also. And when she looked she saw me standing
  near her on the same rule.
 Whence came this vision unless it was that thy ears were inclined toward her
  heart? O thou Omnipotent Good, thou carest for every one of us as if thou didst
  care for him only, and so for all as if they were but one!
 20. And what was the reason for this also, that, when she told me of this
  vision, and I tried to put this construction on it: "that she should not
  despair of being someday what I was," she replied immediately, without
  hesitation, "No; for it was not told me that `where he is, there you shall be'
  but `where you are, there he will be'"? I confess my remembrance of this to
  thee, O Lord, as far as I can recall it--and I have often mentioned it. Thy
  answer, given through my watchful mother, in the fact that she was not
  disturbed by the plausibility of my false interpretation but saw immediately
  what should have been seen--and which I certainly had not seen until she
  spoke--this answer moved me more deeply than the dream itself. Still, by that
  dream, the joy that was to come to that pious woman so long after was predicted
  long before, as a consolation for her present anguish.
 Nearly nine years passed in which I wallowed in the mud of that deep pit and in
  the darkness of falsehood, striving often to rise, but being all the more
  heavily dashed down. But all that time this chaste, pious, and sober
  widow--such as thou dost love--was now more buoyed up with hope, though no less
  zealous in her weeping and mourning; and she did not cease to bewail my case
  before thee, in all the hours of her supplication. Her prayers entered thy
  presence, and yet thou didst allow me still to tumble and toss around in that
  darkness. 
 CHAPTER XII
 21. Meanwhile, thou gavest her yet another answer, as I remember--for I pass
  over many things, hastening on to those things which more strongly impel me to
  confess to thee--and many things I have simply forgotten. But thou gavest her
  then another answer, by a priest of thine, a certain bishop reared in thy
  Church and well versed in thy books. When that woman had begged him to agree to
  have some discussion with me, to refute my errors, to help me to unlearn evil
  and to learn the good[81]-
  
  -
  
  for it was his habit to do this when he found people ready to receive it--he
  refused, very prudently, as I afterward realized. For he answered that I was
  still unteachable, being inflated with the novelty of that heresy, and that I
  had already perplexed divers inexperienced persons with vexatious questions, as
  she herself had told him. "But let him alone for a time," he said, "only pray
  God for him. He will of his own accord, by reading, come to discover what an
  error it is and how great its impiety is." He went on to tell her at the same
  time how he himself, as a boy, had been given over to the Manicheans by his
  misguided mother and not only had read but had even copied out almost all their
  books. Yet he had come to see, without external argument or proof from anyone
  else, how much that sect was to be shunned--and had shunned it. When he had
  said this she was not satisfied, but repeated more earnestly her entreaties,
  and shed copious tears, still beseeching him to see and talk with me. Finally
  the bishop, a little vexed at her importunity, exclaimed, 
  "Go your way; as you
  live, it cannot be that the 
  son of these tears should perish." As she often
  told me afterward, she accepted 
  this answer as though it were a voice from heaven.  
 
BOOK FOUR
This is the story of his years among the Manicheans. It includes
  the account of his teaching at Tagaste, his taking a mistress, the attractions
  of astrology, the poignant loss of a friend which leads to a searching analysis
  of grief and transience. He reports on his first book, De pulchro et
  apto, and his introduction to Aristotle's Categories and other books
    of philosophy and theology, which he mastered with great ease and little
    profit.
 CHAPTER I
 1. During this period of nine years, from my nineteenth year to my
  twenty-eighth, I went astray and led others astray. I was deceived and deceived
  others, in varied lustful projects--sometimes publicly, by the teaching of what
  men style "the liberal arts"; sometimes secretly, under the false guise of
  religion. In the one, I was proud of myself; in the other, superstitious; in
  all, vain! In my public life I was striving after the emptiness of popular
  fame, going so far as to seek theatrical applause, entering poetic contests,
  striving for the straw garlands and the vanity of theatricals and intemperate
  desires. In my private life I was seeking to be purged from these corruptions
  of ours by carrying food to those who were called "elect" and "holy," which, in
  the laboratory of their stomachs, they should make into angels and gods for us,
  and by them we might be set free. These projects I followed out and practiced
  with my friends, who were both deceived with me and by me. Let the proud laugh
  at me, and those who have not yet been savingly cast down and stricken by thee,
  O my God. Nevertheless, I would confess to thee my shame to thy glory. Bear
  with me, I beseech thee, and give me the grace to retrace in my present memory
  the devious ways of my past errors and thus be able to "offer to thee the
  sacrifice of thanksgiving."[82] For what am I to myself
  without thee but a guide to my own downfall? Or what am I, even at the best,
  but one suckled on thy milk and feeding on thee, O Food that never perishes?[83] What indeed is any man, seeing that he is but a man?
  Therefore, let the strong and the mighty laugh at us, but let us who are "poor
  and needy"[84] confess to thee. 
 CHAPTER II
 2. During those years I taught the art of rhetoric. Conquered by the desire for
  gain, I offered for sale speaking skills with which to conquer others. And yet,
  O Lord, thou knowest that I really preferred to have honest scholars (or what
  were esteemed as such) and, without tricks of speech, I taught these scholars
  the tricks of speech--not to be used against the life of the innocent, but
  sometimes to save the life of a guilty man. And thou, O God, didst see me from
  afar, stumbling on that slippery path and sending out some flashes of fidelity
  amid much smoke--guiding those who loved vanity and sought after lying,[85] being myself their companion.
 In those years I had a mistress, to whom I was not joined in lawful marriage.
  She was a woman I had discovered in my wayward passion, void as it was of
  understanding, yet she was the only one; and I remained faithful to her and
  with her I discovered, by my own experience, what a great difference there is
  between the restraint of the marriage bond contracted with a view to having
  children and the compact of a lustful love, where children are born against the
  parents' will--although once they are born they compel our love.
 3. I remember too that, when I decided to compete for a theatrical prize, some
  magician--I do not remember him now--asked me what I would give him to be
  certain to win. But I detested and abominated such filthy mysteries,[86] and answered "that, even if the garland was of
  imperishable gold, I would still not permit a fly to be killed to win it for
  me." For he would have slain certain living creatures in his sacrifices, and by
  those honors would have invited the devils to help me. This evil thing I
  refused, but not out of a pure love of thee, O God of my heart, for I knew not
  how to love thee because I knew not how to conceive of anything beyond
  corporeal splendors. And does not a soul, sighing after such idle fictions,
  commit fornication against thee, trust in false things, and "feed on the
  winds"[87]? But still I would not have sacrifices offered
  to devils on my behalf, though I was myself still offering them sacrifices of a
  sort by my own [Manichean] superstition. For what else is it "to feed on the
  winds" but to feed on the devils, that is, in our wanderings to become their
  sport and mockery? 
CHAPTER III
 4. And yet, without scruple, I consulted those other impostors, whom they call
  "astrologers" [mathematicos], because they used no sacrifices and
  invoked the aid of no spirit for their divinations. Still, true Christian piety
  must necessarily reject and condemn their art.
 It is good to confess to thee and to say, "Have mercy on me; heal my soul; for
  I have sinned against thee"[88]--not to abuse thy goodness
  as a license to sin, but to remember the words of the Lord, "Behold, you are
  made whole: sin no more, lest a worse thing befall you."[89] All this wholesome advice [the astrologers] labor to
  destroy when they say, "The cause of your sin is inevitably fixed in the
  heavens," and, "This is the doing of Venus, or of Saturn, or of Mars"--all this
  in order that a man, who is only flesh and blood and proud corruption, may
  regard himself as blameless, while the Creator and Ordainer of heaven and the
  stars must bear the blame of our ills and misfortunes. But who is this Creator
  but thou, our God, the sweetness and wellspring of righteousness, who renderest
  to every man according to his works and despisest not "a broken and a contrite
  heart"[90]?
 5. There was at that time a wise man, very skillful and quite famous in
  medicine.[91] He was proconsul then, and with his own hand
  he placed on my distempered head the crown I had won in a rhetorical contest.
  He did not do this as a physician, however; and for this distemper "only thou
  canst heal who resisteth the proud and giveth grace to the humble."[92] But didst thou fail me in that old man, or forbear from
  healing my soul? Actually when I became better acquainted with him, I used to
  listen, rapt and eager, to his words; for, though he spoke in simple language,
  his conversation was replete with vivacity, life, and earnestness. He
  recognized from my own talk that I was given to books of the horoscope-casters,
  but he, in a kind and fatherly way, advised me to throw them away and not to
  spend idly on these vanities care and labor that might otherwise go into useful
  things. He said that he himself in his earlier years had studied the
  astrologers' art with a view to gaining his living by it as a profession. Since
  he had already understood Hippocrates, he was fully qualified to understand
  this too. Yet, he had given it up and followed medicine for the simple reason
  that he had discovered astrology to be utterly false and, as a man of honest
  character, he was unwilling to gain his living by beguiling people. "But you,"
  he said, "have the profession of rhetoric to support yourself by, so that you
  are following this delusion in free will and not necessity. All the more,
  therefore, you ought to believe me, since I worked at it to learn the art
  perfectly because I wished to gain my living by it." When I asked him to
  account for the fact that many true things are foretold by astrology, he
  answered me, reasonably enough, that the force of chance, diffused through the
  whole order of nature, brought these things about. For when a man, by accident,
  opens the leaves of some poet (who sang and intended something far different) a
  verse oftentimes turns out to be wondrously apposite to the reader's present
  business. "It is not to be wondered at," he continued, "if out of the human
  mind, by some higher instinct which does not know what goes on within itself,
  an answer should be arrived at, by chance and not art, which would fit both the
  business and the action of the inquirer."
 6. And thus truly, either by him or through him, thou wast looking after me.
  And thou didst fix all this in my memory so that afterward I might search it
  out for myself.
 But at that time, neither the proconsul nor my most dear Nebridius--a splendid
  youth and most circumspect, who scoffed at the whole business of
  divination--could persuade me to give it up, for the authority of the
  astrological authors influenced me more than they did. And, thus far, I had
  come upon no certain proof--such as I sought--by which it could be shown
  without doubt that what had been truly foretold by those consulted came from
  accident or chance, and not from the art of the stargazers.  
 CHAPTER IV 
 7. In those years, when I first began to teach rhetoric in my native town, I
  had gained a very dear friend, about my own age, who was associated with me in
  the same studies. Like myself, he was just rising up into the flower of youth.
  He had grown up with me from childhood and we had been both school fellows and
  playmates. But he was not then my friend, nor indeed ever became my friend, in
  the true sense of the term; for there is no true friendship save between those
  thou dost bind together and who cleave to thee by that love which is "shed
  abroad in our hearts through the Holy Spirit who is given to us."[93] Still, it was a sweet friendship, being ripened by the
  zeal of common studies. Moreover, I had turned him away from the true
  faith--which he had not soundly and thoroughly mastered as a youth--and turned
  him toward those superstitious and harmful fables which my mother mourned in
  me. With me this man went wandering off in error and my soul could not exist
  without him. But behold thou wast close behind thy fugitives--at once a God of
  vengeance and a Fountain of mercies, who dost turn us to thyself by ways that
  make us marvel. Thus, thou didst take that man out of this life when he had
  scarcely completed one whole year of friendship with me, sweeter to me than all
  the sweetness of my life thus far. 
 8. Who can show forth all thy praise[94] for that which he
  has experienced in himself alone? What was it that thou didst do at that time,
  O my God; how unsearchable are the depths of thy judgments! For when, sore sick
  of a fever, he long lay unconscious in a death sweat and everyone despaired of
  his recovery, he was baptized without his knowledge. And I myself cared little,
  at the time, presuming that his soul would retain what it had taken from me
  rather than what was done to his unconscious body. It turned out, however, far
  differently, for he was revived and restored. Immediately, as soon as I could
  talk to him--and I did this as soon as he was able, for I never left him and we
  hung on each other overmuch--I tried to jest with him, supposing that he also
  would jest in return about that baptism which he had received when his mind and
  senses were inactive, but which he had since learned that he had received. But
  he recoiled from me, as if I were his enemy, and, with a remarkable and
  unexpected freedom, he admonished me that, if I desired to continue as his
  friend, I must cease to say such things. Confounded and confused, I concealed
  my feelings till he should get well and his health recover enough to allow me
  to deal with him as I wished. But he was snatched away from my madness, that
  with thee he might be preserved for my consolation. A few days after, during my
  absence, the fever returned and he died.
 9. My heart was utterly darkened by this sorrow and everywhere I looked I saw
  death. My native place was a torture room to me and my father's house a strange
  unhappiness. And all the things I had done with him--now that he was
  gone--became a frightful torment. My eyes sought him everywhere, but they did
  not see him; and I hated all places because he was not in them, because they
  could not say to me, "Look, he is coming," as they did when he was alive and
  absent. I became a hard riddle to myself, and I asked my soul why she was so
  downcast and why this disquieted me so sorely.[95] But she
  did not know how to answer me. And if I said, "Hope thou in God,"[96] she very properly disobeyed me, because that dearest
  friend she had lost was as an actual man, both truer and better than the
  imagined deity she was ordered to put her hope in. Nothing but tears were sweet
  to me and they took my friend's place in my heart's desire. 
 CHAPTER V
 10. But now, O Lord, these things are past and time has healed my wound. Let me
  learn from thee, who art Truth, and put the ear of my heart to thy mouth, that
  thou mayest tell me why weeping should be so sweet to the unhappy. Hast
  thou--though omnipresent--dismissed our miseries from thy concern? Thou abidest
  in thyself while we are disquieted with trial after trial. Yet unless we wept
  in thy ears, there would be no hope for us remaining. How does it happen that
  such sweet fruit is plucked from the bitterness of life, from groans, tears,
  sighs, and lamentations? Is it the hope that thou wilt hear us that sweetens
  it? This is true in the case of prayer, for in a prayer there is a desire to
  approach thee. But is it also the case in grief for a lost love, and in the
  kind of sorrow that had then overwhelmed me? For I had neither a hope of his
  coming back to life, nor in all my tears did I seek this. I simply grieved and
  wept, for I was miserable and had lost my joy. Or is weeping a bitter thing
  that gives us pleasure because of our aversion to the things we once enjoyed
  and this only as long as we loathe them? 
 CHAPTER VI
 11. But why do I speak of these things? Now is not the time to ask such
  questions, but rather to confess to thee. I was wretched; and every soul is
  wretched that is fettered in the friendship of mortal things--it is torn to
  pieces when it loses them, and then realizes the misery which it had even
  before it lost them. Thus it was at that time with me. I wept most bitterly,
  and found a rest in bitterness. I was wretched, and yet that wretched life I
  still held dearer than my friend. For though I would willingly have changed it,
  I was still more unwilling to lose it than to have lost him. Indeed, I doubt
  whether I was willing to lose it, even for him--as they tell (unless it be
  fiction) of the friendship of Orestes and Pylades[97]; they
  would have gladly died for one another, or both together, because not to love
  together was worse than death to them. But a strange kind of feeling had come
  over me, quite different from this, for now it was wearisome to live and a
  fearful thing to die. I suppose that the more I loved him the more I hated and
  feared, as the most cruel enemy, that death which had robbed me of him. I even
  imagined that it would suddenly annihilate all men, since it had had such a
  power over him. This is the way I remember it was with me.
 Look into my heart, O God! Behold and look deep within me, for I remember it
  well, O my Hope who cleansest me from the uncleanness of such affections,
  directing my eyes toward thee and plucking my feet out of the snare. And I
  marveled that other mortals went on living since he whom I had loved as if he
  would never die was now dead. And I marveled all the more that I, who had been
  a second self to him, could go on living when he was dead. Someone spoke
  rightly of his friend as being "his soul's other half"[98]--for I felt that my soul and his soul were but one soul
  in two bodies. Consequently, my life was now a horror to me because I did not
  want to live as a half self. But it may have been that I was afraid to die,
  lest he should then die wholly whom I had so greatly loved.  
 CHAPTER VII
 12. O madness that knows not how to love men as they should be loved! O foolish
  man that I was then, enduring with so much rebellion the lot of every man! Thus
  I fretted, sighed, wept, tormented myself, and took neither rest nor counsel,
  for I was dragging around my torn and bloody soul. It was impatient of my
  dragging it around, and yet I could not find a place to lay it down. Not in
  pleasant groves, nor in sport or song, nor in fragrant bowers, nor in
  magnificent banquetings, nor in the pleasures of the bed or the couch; not even
  in books or poetry did it find rest. All things looked gloomy, even the very
  light itself. Whatsoever was not what he was, was now repulsive and hateful,
  except my groans and tears, for in those alone I found a little rest. But when
  my soul left off weeping, a heavy burden of misery weighed me down. It should
  have been raised up to thee, O Lord, for thee to lighten and to lift. This I
  knew, but I was neither willing nor able to do; especially since, in my
  thoughts of thee, thou wast not thyself but only an empty fantasm. Thus my
  error was my god. If I tried to cast off my burden on this fantasm, that it
  might find rest there, it sank through the vacuum and came rushing down again
  upon me. Thus I remained to myself an unhappy lodging where I could neither
  stay nor leave. For where could my heart fly from my heart? Where could I fly
  from my own self? Where would I not follow myself? And yet I did flee from my
  native place so that my eyes would look for him less in a place where they were
  not accustomed to see him. Thus I left the town of Tagaste and returned to
  Carthage. 
 CHAPTER VIII
 13. Time never lapses, nor does it glide at leisure through our sense
  perceptions. It does strange things in the mind. Lo, time came and went from
  day to day, and by coming and going it brought to my mind other ideas and
  remembrances, and little by little they patched me up again with earlier kinds
  of pleasure and my sorrow yielded a bit to them. But yet there followed after
  this sorrow, not other sorrows just like it, but the causes of other sorrows.
  For why had that first sorrow so easily penetrated to the quick except that I
  had poured out my soul onto the dust, by loving a man as if he would never die
  who nevertheless had to die? What revived and refreshed me, more than anything
  else, was the consolation of other friends, with whom I went on loving the
  things I loved instead of thee. This was a monstrous fable and a tedious lie
  which was corrupting my soul with its "itching ears"[99] by
  its adulterous rubbing. And that fable would not die to me as often as one of
  my friends died. And there were other things in our companionship that took
  strong hold of my mind: to discourse and jest with him; to indulge in courteous
  exchanges; to read pleasant books together; to trifle together; to be earnest
  together; to differ at times without ill-humor, as a man might do with himself,
  and even through these infrequent dissensions to find zest in our more frequent
  agreements; sometimes teaching, sometimes being taught; longing for someone
  absent with impatience and welcoming the homecomer with joy. These and similar
  tokens of friendship, which spring spontaneously from the hearts of those who
  love and are loved in return--in countenance, tongue, eyes, and a thousand
  ingratiating gestures--were all so much fuel to melt our souls together, and
  out of the many made us one. 
 CHAPTER IX
 14. This is what we love in our friends, and we love it so much that a man's
  conscience accuses itself if he does not love one who loves him, or respond in
  love to love, seeking nothing from the other but the evidences of his love.
  This is the source of our moaning when one dies--the gloom of sorrow, the
  steeping of the heart in tears, all sweetness turned to bitterness--and the
  feeling of death in the living, because of the loss of the life of the dying.
 Blessed is he who loves thee, and who loves his friend in thee, and his enemy
  also, for thy sake; for he alone loses none dear to him, if all are dear in Him
  who cannot be lost. And who is this but our God: the God that created heaven
  and earth, and filled them because he created them by filling them up? None
  loses thee but he who leaves thee; and he who leaves thee, where does he go, or
  where can he flee but from thee well-pleased to thee offended? For where does
  he not find thy law fulfilled in his own punishment? "Thy law is the truth"[100] and thou art Truth. 
 CHAPTER X
 15. "Turn us again, O Lord God of Hosts, cause thy face to shine; and we shall
  be saved."[101] For wherever the soul of man turns itself,
  unless toward thee, it is enmeshed in sorrows, even though it is surrounded by
  beautiful things outside thee and outside itself. For lovely things would
  simply not be unless they were from thee. They come to be and they pass away,
  and by coming they begin to be, and they grow toward perfection. Then, when
  perfect, they begin to wax old and perish, and, if all do not wax old, still
  all perish. Therefore, when they rise and grow toward being, the more rapidly
  they grow to maturity, so also the more rapidly they hasten back toward
  nonbeing. This is the way of things. This is the lot thou hast given them,
  because they are part of things which do not all exist at the same time, but by
  passing away and succeeding each other they all make up the universe, of which
  they are all parts. For example, our speech is accomplished by sounds which
  signify meanings, but a meaning is not complete unless one word passes away,
  when it has sounded its part, so that the next may follow after it. Let my soul
  praise thee, in all these things, O God, the Creator of all; but let not my
  soul be stuck to these things by the glue of love, through the senses of the
  body. For they go where they were meant to go, that they may exist no longer.
  And they rend the soul with pestilent desires because she longs to be and yet
  loves to rest secure in the created things she loves. But in these things there
  is no resting place to be found. They do not abide. They flee away; and who is
  he who can follow them with his physical senses? Or who can grasp them, even
  when they are present? For our physical sense is slow because it is a physical
  sense and bears its own limitations in itself. The physical sense is quite
  sufficient for what it was made to do; but it is not sufficient to stay things
  from running their courses from the beginning appointed to the end appointed.
  For in thy word, by which they were created, they hear their appointed bound:
  "From there--to here!"  
 CHAPTER XI
 16. Be not foolish, O my soul, and do not let the tumult of your vanity deafen
  the ear of your heart. Be attentive. The Word itself calls you to return, and
  with him is a place of unperturbed rest, where love is not forsaken unless it
  first forsakes. Behold, these things pass away that others may come to be in
  their place. Thus even this lowest level of unity[102] may
  be made complete in all its parts. "But do I ever pass away?" asks the Word of
  God. Fix your habitation in him. O my soul, commit whatsoever you have to him.
  For at long last you are now becoming tired of deceit. Commit to truth whatever
  you have received from the truth, and you will lose nothing. What is decayed
  will flourish again; your diseases will be healed; your perishable parts shall
  be reshaped and renovated, and made whole again in you. And these perishable
  things will not carry you with them down to where they go when they perish, but
  shall stand and abide, and you with them, before God, who abides and continues
  forever.
 17. Why then, my perverse soul, do you go on following your flesh? Instead, let
  it be converted so as to follow you. Whatever you feel through it is but
  partial. You do not know the whole, of which sensations are but parts; and yet
  the parts delight you. But if my physical senses had been able to comprehend
  the whole--and had not as a part of their punishment received only a portion of
  the whole as their own province--you would then desire that whatever exists in
  the present time should also pass away so that the whole might please you more.
  For what we speak, you also hear through physical sensation, and yet you would
  not wish that the syllables should remain. Instead, you wish them to fly past
  so that others may follow them, and the whole be heard. Thus it is always that
  when any single thing is composed of many parts which do not coexist
  simultaneously, the whole gives more delight than the parts could ever do
  perceived separately. But far better than all this is He who made it all. He is
  our God and he does not pass away, for there is nothing to take his place. 
 CHAPTER XII
 18. If physical objects please you, praise God for them, but turn back your
  love to their Creator, lest, in those things which please you, you displease
  him. If souls please you, let them be loved in God; for in themselves they are
  mutable, but in him firmly established--without him they would simply cease to
  exist. In him, then, let them be loved; and bring along to him with yourself as
  many souls as you can, and say to them: "Let us love him, for he himself
  created all these, and he is not far away from them. For he did not create
  them, and then go away. They are of him and in him. Behold, there he is,
  wherever truth is known. He is within the inmost heart, yet the heart has
  wandered away from him. Return to your heart, O you transgressors, and hold
  fast to him who made you. Stand with him and you shall stand fast. Rest in him
  and you shall be at rest. Where do you go along these rugged paths? Where are
  you going? The good that you love is from him, and insofar as it is also for
  him, it is both good and pleasant. But it will rightly be turned to bitterness
  if whatever comes from him is not rightly loved and if he is deserted for the
  love of the creature. Why then will you wander farther and farther in these
  difficult and toilsome ways? There is no rest where you seek it. Seek what you
  seek; but remember that it is not where you seek it. You seek for a blessed
  life in the land of death. It is not there. For how can there be a blessed life
  where life itself is not?"
 19. But our very Life came down to earth and bore our death, and slew it with
  the very abundance of his own life. And, thundering, he called us to return to
  him into that secret place from which he came forth to us--coming first into
  the virginal womb, where the human creature, our mortal flesh, was joined to
  him that it might not be forever mortal--and came "as a bridegroom coming out
  his chamber, rejoicing as a strong man to run a race."[103] For he did not delay, but ran through the world, crying
  out by words, deeds, death, life, descent, ascension--crying aloud to us to
  return to him. And he departed from our sight that we might return to our
  hearts and find him there. For he left us, and behold, he is here. He could not
  be with us long, yet he did not leave us. He went back to the place that he had
  never left, for "the world was made by him."[104] In this
  world he was, and into this world he came, to save sinners. To him my soul
  confesses, and he heals it, because it had sinned against him. O sons of men,
  how long will you be so slow of heart? Even now after Life itself has come down
  to you, will you not ascend and live? But where will you climb if you are
  already on a pinnacle and have set your mouth against the heavens? First come
  down that you may climb up, climb up to God. For you have fallen by trying to
  climb against him. Tell this to the souls you love that they may weep in the
  valley of tears, and so bring them along with you to God, because it is by his
  spirit that you speak thus to them, if, as you speak, you burn with the fire of
  love. 
 CHAPTER XIII
 20. These things I did not understand at that time, and I loved those inferior
  beauties, and I was sinking down to the very depths. And I said to my friends:
  "Do we love anything but the beautiful? What then is the beautiful? And what is
  beauty? What is it that allures and unites us to the things we love; for unless
  there were a grace and beauty in them, they could not possibly attract us to
  them?" And I reflected on this and saw that in the objects themselves there is
  a kind of beauty which comes from their forming a whole and another kind of
  beauty that comes from mutual fitness--as the harmony of one part of the body
  with its whole, or a shoe with a foot, and so on. And this idea sprang up in my
  mind out of my inmost heart, and I wrote some books--two or three, I
  think--On the Beautiful and the Fitting.[105] Thou
  knowest them, O Lord; they have escaped my memory. I no longer have them;
  somehow they have been mislaid.  
 CHAPTER XIV
 21. What was it, O Lord my God, that prompted me to dedicate these books to
  Hierius, an orator of Rome, a man I did not know by sight but whom I loved for
  his reputation of learning, in which he was famous--and also for some words of
  his that I had heard which had pleased me? But he pleased me more because he
  pleased others, who gave him high praise and expressed amazement that a Syrian,
  who had first studied Greek eloquence, should thereafter become so wonderful a
  Latin orator and also so well versed in philosophy. Thus a man we have never
  seen is commended and loved. Does a love like this come into the heart of the
  hearer from the mouth of him who sings the other's praise? Not so. Instead, one
  catches the spark of love from one who loves. This is why we love one who is
  praised when the eulogist is believed to give his praise from an unfeigned
  heart; that is, when he who loves him praises him. 
 22. Thus it was that I loved men on the basis of other men's judgment, and not
  thine, O my God, in whom no man is deceived. But why is it that the feeling I
  had for such men was not like my feeling toward the renowned charioteer, or the
  great gladiatorial hunter, famed far and wide and popular with the mob?
  Actually, I admired the orator in a different and more serious fashion, as I
  would myself desire to be admired. For I did not want them to praise and love
  me as actors were praised and loved--although I myself praise and love them
  too. I would prefer being unknown than known in that way, or even being hated
  than loved that way. How are these various influences and divers sorts of loves
  distributed within one soul? What is it that I am in love with in another
  which, if I did not hate, I should neither detest nor repel from myself, seeing
  that we are equally men? For it does not follow that because the good horse is
  admired by a man who would not be that horse--even if he could--the same kind
  of admiration should be given to an actor, who shares our nature. Do I then
  love that in a man, which I also, a man, would hate to be? Man is himself a
  great deep. Thou dost number his very hairs, O Lord, and they do not fall to
  the ground without thee, and yet the hairs of his head are more readily
  numbered than are his affections and the movements of his heart. 
 23. But that orator whom I admired so much was the kind of man I wished myself
  to be. Thus I erred through a swelling pride and "was carried about with every
  wind,"[106] but through it all I was being piloted by
  thee, though most secretly. And how is it that I know--whence comes my
  confident confession to thee--that I loved him more because of the love of
  those who praised him than for the things they praised in him? Because if he
  had gone unpraised, and these same people had criticized him and had spoken the
  same things of him in a tone of scorn and disapproval, I should never have been
  kindled and provoked to love him. And yet his qualities would not have been
  different, nor would he have been different himself; only the appraisals of the
  spectators. See where the helpless soul lies prostrate that is not yet
  sustained by the stability of truth! Just as the breezes of speech blow from
  the breast of the opinionated, so also the soul is tossed this way and that,
  driven forward and backward, and the light is obscured to it and the truth not
  seen. And yet, there it is in front of us. And to me it was a great matter that
  both my literary work and my zest for learning should be known by that man. For
  if he approved them, I would be even more fond of him; but if he disapproved,
  this vain heart of mine, devoid of thy steadfastness, would have been offended.
  And so I meditated on the problem "of the beautiful and the fitting" and
  dedicated my essay on it to him. I regarded it admiringly, though no one else
  joined me in doing so. 
 CHAPTER XV
 24. But I had not seen how the main point in these great issues [concerning the
  nature of beauty] lay really in thy craftsmanship, O Omnipotent One, "who alone
  doest great wonders."[107] And so my mind ranged through
  the corporeal forms, and I defined and distinguished as "beautiful" that which
  is so in itself and as "fit" that which is beautiful in relation to some other
  thing. This argument I supported by corporeal examples. And I turned my
  attention to the nature of the mind, but the false opinions which I held
  concerning spiritual things prevented me from seeing the truth. Still, the very
  power of truth forced itself on my gaze, and I turned my throbbing soul away
  from incorporeal substance to qualities of line and color and shape, and,
  because I could not perceive these with my mind, I concluded that I could not
  perceive my mind. And since I loved the peace which is in virtue, and hated the
  discord which is in vice, I distinguished between the unity there is in virtue
  and the discord there is in vice. I conceived that unity consisted of the
  rational soul and the nature of truth and the highest good. But I imagined that
  in the disunity there was some kind of substance of irrational life and some
  kind of entity in the supreme evil. This evil I thought was not only a
  substance but real life as well, and yet I believed that it did not come from
  thee, O my God, from whom are all things. And the first I called a Monad, as if
  it were a soul without sex. The other I called a Dyad, which showed itself in
  anger in deeds of violence, in deeds of passion and lust--but I did not know
  what I was talking about. For I had not understood nor had I been taught that
  evil is not a substance at all and that our soul is not that supreme and
  unchangeable good.
 25. For just as in violent acts, if the emotion of the soul from whence the
  violent impulse springs is depraved and asserts itself insolently and
  mutinously--and just as in the acts of passion, if the affection of the soul
  which gives rise to carnal desires is unrestrained--so also, in the same way,
  errors and false opinions contaminate life if the rational soul itself is
  depraved. Thus it was then with me, for I was ignorant that my soul had to be
  enlightened by another light, if it was to be partaker of the truth, since it
  is not itself the essence of truth. "For thou wilt light my lamp; the Lord my
  God will lighten my darkness"[108]; and "of his fullness
  have we all received,"[109] for "that was the true Light
  that lighteth every man that cometh into the world"[110];
  for "in thee there is no variableness, neither shadow of turning."[111]
  26. But I pushed on toward thee, and was pressed back by thee that I might know
  the taste of death, for "thou resistest the proud."[112] And what greater pride could there be for me than, with a marvelous madness, to
  assert myself to be that nature which thou art? I was mutable--this much was
  clear enough to me because my very longing to become wise arose out of a wish
  to change from worse to better--yet I chose rather to think thee mutable than
  to think that I was not as thou art. For this reason I was thrust back; thou
  didst resist my fickle pride. Thus I went on imagining corporeal forms, and,
  since I was flesh I accused the flesh, and, since I was "a wind that passes
  away,"[113] I did not return to thee but went wandering
  and wandering on toward those things that have no being--neither in thee nor in
  me, nor in the body. These fancies were not created for me by thy truth but
  conceived by my own vain conceit out of sensory notions. And I used to ask thy
  faithful children--my own fellow citizens, from whom I stood unconsciously
  exiled--I used flippantly and foolishly to ask them, "Why, then, does the soul,
  which God created, err?" But I would not allow anyone to ask me, "Why, then,
  does God err?" I preferred to contend that thy immutable substance was involved
  in error through necessity rather than admit that my own mutable substance had
  gone astray of its own free will and had fallen into error as its punishment.
 27. I was about twenty-six or twenty-seven when I wrote those books, analyzing
  and reflecting upon those sensory images which clamored in the ears of my
  heart. I was straining those ears to hear thy inward melody, O sweet Truth,
  pondering on "the beautiful and the fitting" and longing to stay and hear thee,
  and to rejoice greatly at "the Bridegroom's voice."[114] Yet I could not, for by the clamor of my own errors I was hurried outside
  myself, and by the weight of my own pride I was sinking ever lower. You did not
  "make me to hear joy and gladness," nor did the bones rejoice which were not
  yet humbled.[115]
 28. And what did it profit me that, when I was scarcely twenty years old, a
  book of Aristotle's entitled The Ten Categories[116] fell into my hands? On the very title of this I
  hung as on something great and divine, since my rhetoric master at Carthage and
  others who had reputations for learning were always referring to it with such
  swelling pride. I read it by myself and understood it. And what did it mean
  that when I discussed it with others they said that even with the assistance of
  tutors--who not only explained it orally, but drew many diagrams in the
  sand--they scarcely understood it and 
  could tell me no more about it than I had
  acquired in the reading of it by myself alone? For the book appeared to me to
  speak plainly enough about substances, such as a man; and of their qualities,
  such as the shape of a man, his kind, his stature, how many feet high, and his
  family relationship, his status, when born, whether he is sitting or standing,
  is shod or armed, or is doing something or having something done to him--and
  all the innumerable things that are classified under these nine categories (of
  which I have given some examples) or under the chief category of substance.
 29. What did all this profit me, since it actually hindered me when I imagined
  that whatever existed was comprehended within those ten categories? I tried to
  interpret them, O my God, so that even thy wonderful and unchangeable unity
  could be understood as subjected to thy own magnitude or beauty, as if they
  existed in thee as their Subject--as they do in corporeal bodies--whereas thou
  art thyself thy own magnitude and beauty. A body is not great or fair because
  it is a body, because, even if it were less great or less beautiful, it would
  still be a body. But my conception of thee was falsity, not truth. It was a
  figment of my own misery, not the stable ground of thy blessedness. For thou
  hadst commanded, and it was carried out in me, that the earth should bring
  forth briars and thorns for me, and that with heavy labor I should gain my
  bread.[117] 
 30. And what did it profit me that I could read and understand for myself all
  the books I could get in the so-called "liberal arts," when I was actually a
  worthless slave of wicked lust? I took delight in them, not knowing the real
  source of what it was in them that was true and certain. For I had my back
  toward the light, and my face toward the things on which the light falls, so
  that my face, which looked toward the illuminated things, was not itself
  illuminated. Whatever was written in any of the fields of rhetoric or logic,
  geometry, music, or arithmetic, I could understand without any great difficulty
  and without the instruction of another man. All this thou knowest, O Lord my
  God, because both quickness in understanding and acuteness in insight are thy
  gifts. Yet for such gifts I made no thank offering to thee. Therefore, my
  abilities served not my profit but rather my loss, since I went about trying to
  bring so large a part of my substance into my own power. And I did not store up
  my strength for thee, but went away from thee into the far country to
  prostitute my gifts in disordered appetite.[118] And what
  did these abilities profit me, if I did not put them to good use? I did not
  realize that those arts were understood with great difficulty, even by the
  studious and the intelligent, until I tried to explain them to others and
  discovered that even the most proficient in them followed my explanations all
  too slowly.
 31. And yet what did this profit me, since I still supposed that thou, O Lord
  God, the Truth, wert a bright and vast body and that I was a particle of that
  body? O perversity gone too far! But so it was with me. And I do not blush, O
  my God, to confess thy mercies to me in thy presence, or to call upon thee--any
  more than I did not blush when I openly avowed my blasphemies before men, and
  bayed, houndlike, against thee. What good was it for me that my nimble wit
  could run through those studies and disentangle all those knotty volumes,
  without help from a human teacher, since all the while I was erring so
  hatefully and with such sacrilege as far as the right substance of pious faith
  was concerned? And what kind of burden was it for thy little ones to have a far
  slower wit, since they did not use it to depart from thee, and since they
  remained in the nest of thy Church to become safely fledged and to nourish the
  wings of love by the food of a sound faith.
 O Lord our God, under the shadow of thy wings let us hope--defend us and
  support us.[119] Thou wilt bear us up when we are little
  and even down to our gray hairs thou wilt carry us. For our stability, when it
  is in thee, is stability indeed; but when it is in ourselves, then it is all
  unstable. Our good lives forever with thee, and when we turn from thee with
  aversion, we fall into our own perversion. Let us now, O Lord, return that we
  be not overturned, because with thee our good lives without blemish--for our
  good is thee thyself. And we need not fear that we shall find no place to
  return to because we fell away from it. For, in our absence, our home--which is
  thy eternity--does not fall away.
  
  
BOOK FIVE
A year of decision. Faustus comes to Carthage and Augustine is
  disenchanted in his hope for solid demonstration of the truth of Manichean
  doctrine. He decides to flee from his known troubles at Carthage to troubles
  yet unknown at Rome. His experiences at Rome prove disappointing and he applies
  for a teaching post at Milan. Here he meets Ambrose, who confronts him as an
  impressive witness for Catholic Christianity and opens out the possibilities of
  the allegorical interpretation of Scripture. Augustine decides to become a
  Christian catechumen.
 CHAPTER I
 1. Accept this sacrifice of my confessions from the hand of my tongue. Thou
  didst form it and hast prompted it to praise thy name. Heal all my bones and
  let them say, "O Lord, who is like unto thee?"[120] It is
  not that one who confesses to thee instructs thee as to what goes on within
  him. For the closed heart does not bar thy sight into it, nor does the hardness
  of our heart hold back thy hands, for thou canst soften it at will, either by
  mercy or in vengeance, "and there is no one who can hide himself from thy
  heat."[121] But let my soul praise thee, that it may love
  thee, and let it confess thy mercies to thee, that it may praise thee. Thy
  whole creation praises thee without ceasing: the spirit of man, by his own
  lips, by his own voice, lifted up to thee; animals and lifeless matter by the
  mouths of those who meditate upon them. Thus our souls may climb out of their
  weariness toward thee and lean on those things which thou hast created and pass
  through them to thee, who didst create them in a marvelous way. With thee,
  there is refreshment and true strength. 
 CHAPTER II
 2. Let the restless and the unrighteous depart, and flee away from thee. Even
  so, thou seest them and thy eye pierces through the shadows in which they run.
  For lo, they live in a world of beauty and yet are themselves most foul. And
  how have they harmed thee? Or in what way have they discredited thy power,
  which is just and perfect in its rule even to the last item in creation?
  Indeed, where would they fly when they fled from thy presence? Wouldst thou be
  unable to find them? But they fled that they might not see thee, who sawest
  them; that they might be blinded and stumble into thee. But thou forsakest
  nothing that thou hast made. The unrighteous stumble against thee that they may
  be justly plagued, fleeing from thy gentleness and colliding with thy justice,
  and falling on their own rough paths. For in truth they do not know that thou
  art everywhere; that no place contains thee, and that only thou art near even
  to those who go farthest from thee. Let them, therefore, turn back and seek
  thee, because even if they have abandoned thee, their Creator, thou hast not
  abandoned thy creatures. Let them turn back and seek thee--and lo, thou art
  there in their hearts, there in the hearts of those who confess to thee. Let
  them cast themselves upon thee, and weep on thy bosom, after all their weary
  wanderings; and thou wilt gently wipe away their tears.[122] And they weep the more and rejoice in their weeping,
  since thou, O Lord, art not a man of flesh and blood. Thou art the Lord, who
  canst remake what thou didst make and canst comfort them. And where was I when
  I was seeking thee? There thou wast, before me; but I had gone away, even from
  myself, and I could not find myself, much less thee. 
 CHAPTER III
 3. Let me now lay bare in the sight of God the twenty-ninth year of my age.
  There had just come to Carthage a certain bishop of the Manicheans, Faustus by
  name, a great snare of the devil; and many were entangled by him through the
  charm of his eloquence. Now, even though I found this eloquence admirable, I
  was beginning to distinguish the charm of words from the truth of things, which
  I was eager to learn. Nor did I consider the dish as much as I did the kind of
  meat that their famous Faustus served up to me in it. His fame had run before
  him, as one very skilled in an honorable learning and pre-eminently skilled in
  the liberal arts.
 And as I had already read and stored up in memory many of the injunctions of
  the philosophers, I began to compare some of their doctrines with the tedious
  fables of the Manicheans; and it struck me that the probability was on the side
  of the philosophers, whose power reached far enough to enable them to form a
  fair judgment of the world, even though they had not discovered the sovereign
  Lord of it all. For thou art great, O Lord, and thou hast respect unto the
  lowly, but the proud thou knowest afar off.[123] Thou
  drawest near to none but the contrite in heart, and canst not be found by the
  proud, even if in their inquisitive skill they may number the stars and the
  sands, and map out the constellations, and trace the courses of the planets.
 4. For it is by the mind and the intelligence which thou gavest them that they
  investigate these things. They have discovered much; and have foretold, many
  years in advance, the day, the hour, and the extent of the eclipses of those
  luminaries, the sun and the moon. Their calculations did not fail, and it came
  to pass as they predicted. And they wrote down the rules they had discovered,
  so that to this day they may be read and from them may be calculated in what
  year and month and day and hour of the day, and at what quarter of its light,
  either the moon or the sun will be eclipsed, and it will come to pass just as
  predicted. And men who are ignorant in these matters marvel and are amazed; and
  those who understand them exult and are exalted. Both, by an impious pride,
  withdraw from thee and forsake thy light. They foretell an eclipse of the sun
  before it happens, but they do not see their own eclipse which is even now
  occurring. For they do not ask, as religious men should, what is the source of
  the intelligence by which they investigate these matters. Moreover, when they
  discover that thou didst make them, they do not give themselves up to thee that
  thou mightest preserve what thou hast made. Nor do they offer, as sacrifice to
  thee, what they have made of themselves. For they do not slaughter their own
  pride--as they do the sacrificial fowls--nor their own curiosities by which,
  like the fishes of the sea, they wander through the unknown paths of the deep.
  Nor do they curb their own extravagances as they do those of "the beasts of the
  field,"[124] so that thou, O Lord, "a consuming fire,"[125] mayest burn up their mortal cares and renew them unto
  immortality. 
  5. They do not know the way which is thy word, by which thou didst create all
  the things that are and also the men who measure them, and the senses by which
  they perceive what they measure, and the intelligence whereby they discern the
  patterns of measure. Thus they know not that thy wisdom is not a matter of
  measure.[126] But the Only Begotten hath been "made unto
  us wisdom, and righteousness, and sanctification"[127] and
  hath been numbered among us and paid tribute to Caesar.[128] And they do not know this "Way" by which they could
  descend from themselves to him in order to ascend through him to him. They did
  not know this "Way," and so they fancied themselves exalted to the stars and
  the shining heavens. And lo, they fell upon the earth, and "their foolish heart
  was darkened."[129] They saw many true things about the
  creature but they do not seek with true piety for the Truth, the Architect of
  Creation, and hence they do not find him. Or, if they do find him, and know
  that he is God, they do not glorify him as God; neither are they thankful but
  become vain in their imagination, and say that they themselves are wise, and
  attribute to themselves what is thine. At the same time, with the most perverse
  blindness, they wish to attribute to thee their own quality--so that they load
  their lies on thee who art the Truth, "changing the glory of the incorruptible
  God for an image of corruptible man, and birds, and four-footed beasts, and
  creeping things."[130] "They exchanged thy truth for a
  lie, and worshiped and served the creature rather than the Creator."[131] 
 6. Yet I remembered many a true saying of the philosophers about the creation,
  and I saw the confirmation of their calculations in the orderly sequence of
  seasons and in the visible evidence of the stars. And I compared this with the
  doctrines of Mani, who in his voluminous folly wrote many books on these
  subjects. But I could not discover there any account, of either the solstices
  or the equinoxes, or the eclipses of the sun and moon, or anything of the sort
  that I had learned in the books of secular philosophy. But still I was ordered
  to believe, even where the ideas did not correspond with--even when they
  contradicted--the rational theories established by mathematics and my own eyes,
  but were very different. 
 CHAPTER IV
 7. Yet, O Lord God of Truth, is any man pleasing to thee because he knows these
  things? No, for surely that man is unhappy who knows these things and does not
  know thee. And that man is happy who knows thee, even though he does not know
  these things. He who knows both thee and these things is not the more blessed
  for his learning, for thou only art his blessing, if knowing thee as God he
  glorifies thee and gives thanks and does not become vain in his thoughts.
 For just as that man who knows how to possess a tree, and give thanks to thee
  for the use of it--although he may not know how many feet high it is or how
  wide it spreads--is better than the man who can measure it and count all its
  branches, but neither owns it nor knows or loves its Creator: just so is a
  faithful man who possesses the world's wealth as though he had nothing, and
  possesses all things through his union through thee, whom all things serve,
  even though he does not know the circlings of the Great Bear. Just so it is
  foolish to doubt that this faithful man may truly be better than the one who
  can measure the heavens and number the stars and weigh the elements, but who is
  forgetful of thee "who hast set in order all things in number, weight, and
  measure."[132] 
 CHAPTER V
 8. And who ordered this Mani to write about these things, knowledge of which is
  not necessary to piety? For thou hast said to man, "Behold, godliness is
  wisdom"[133]--and of this he might have been ignorant,
  however perfectly he may have known these other things. Yet, since he did not
  know even these other things, and most impudently dared to teach them, it is
  clear that he had no knowledge of piety. For, even when we have a knowledge of
  this worldly lore, it is folly to make a profession of it, when piety
  comes from confession to thee. From piety, therefore, Mani had gone
  astray, and all his show of learning only enabled the truly learned to
  perceive, from his ignorance of what they knew, how little he was to be trusted
  to make plain these more really difficult matters. For he did not aim to be
  lightly esteemed, but went around trying to persuade men that the Holy Spirit,
  the Comforter and Enricher of thy faithful ones, was personally resident in him
  with full authority. And, therefore, when he was detected in manifest errors
  about the sky, the stars, the movements of the sun and moon, even though these
  things do not relate to religious doctrine, the impious presumption of the man
  became clearly evident; for he not only taught things about which he was
  ignorant but also perverted them, and this with pride so foolish and mad that
  he sought to claim that his own utterances were as if they had been those of a
  divine person.
 9. When I hear of a Christian brother, ignorant of these things, or in error
  concerning them, I can tolerate his uninformed opinion; and I do not see that
  any lack of knowledge as to the form or nature of this material creation can do
  him much harm, as long as he does not hold a belief in anything which is
  unworthy of thee, O Lord, the Creator of all. But if he thinks that his secular
  knowledge pertains to the essence of the doctrine of piety, or ventures to
  assert dogmatic opinions in matters in which he is ignorant--there lies the
  injury. And yet even a weakness such as this, in the infancy of our faith, is
  tolerated by our Mother Charity until the new man can grow up "unto a perfect
  man," and not be "carried away with every wind of doctrine."[134]
 But Mani had presumed to be at once the teacher, author, guide, and leader of
  all whom he could persuade to believe this, so that all who followed him
  believed that they were following not an ordinary man but thy Holy Spirit. And
  who would not judge that such great madness, when it once stood convicted of
  false teaching, should then be abhorred and utterly rejected? But I had not yet
  clearly decided whether the alternation of day and night, and of longer and
  shorter days and nights, and the eclipses of sun and moon, and whatever else I
  read about in other books could be explained consistently with his theories. If
  they could have been so explained, there would still have remained a doubt in
  my mind whether the theories were right or wrong. Yet I was prepared, on the
  strength of his reputed godliness, to rest my faith on his authority.  
 CHAPTER VI
 10. For almost the whole of the nine years that I listened with unsettled mind
  to the Manichean teaching I had been looking forward with unbounded eagerness
  to the arrival of this Faustus. For all the other members of the sect that I
  happened to meet, when they were unable to answer the questions I raised,
  always referred me to his coming. They promised that, in discussion with him,
  these and even greater difficulties, if I had them, would be quite easily and
  amply cleared away. When at last he did come, I found him to be a man of
  pleasant speech, who spoke of the very same things they themselves did,
  although more fluently and in a more agreeable style. But what profit was there
  to me in the elegance of my cupbearer, since he could not offer me the more
  precious draught for which I thirsted? My ears had already had their fill of
  such stuff, and now it did not seem any better because it was better expressed
  nor more true because it was dressed up in rhetoric; nor could I think the
  man's soul necessarily wise because his face was comely and his language
  eloquent. But they who extolled him to me were not competent judges. They
  thought him able and wise because his eloquence delighted them. At the same
  time I realized that there is another kind of man who is suspicious even of
  truth itself, if it is expressed in smooth and flowing language. But thou, O my
  God, hadst already taught me in wonderful and marvelous ways, and therefore I
  believed--because it is true--that thou didst teach me and that beside thee
  there is no other teacher of truth, wherever truth shines forth. Already I had
  learned from thee that because a thing is eloquently expressed it should not be
  taken to be as necessarily true; nor because it is uttered with stammering lips
  should it be supposed false. Nor, again, is it necessarily true because rudely
  uttered, nor untrue because the language is brilliant. Wisdom and folly both
  are like meats that are wholesome and unwholesome, and courtly or simple words
  are like town-made or rustic vessels--both kinds of food may be served in
  either kind of dish.
 11. That eagerness, therefore, with which I had so long awaited this man, was
  in truth delighted with his action and feeling in a disputation, and with the
  fluent and apt words with which he clothed his ideas. I was delighted,
  therefore, and I joined with others--and even exceeded them--in exalting and
  praising him. Yet it was a source of annoyance to me that, in his lecture room,
  I was not allowed to introduce and raise any of those questions that troubled
  me, in a familiar exchange of discussion with him. As soon as I found an
  opportunity for this, and gained his ear at a time when it was not inconvenient
  for him to enter into a discussion with me and my friends, I laid before him
  some of my doubts. I discovered at once that he knew nothing of the liberal
  arts except grammar, and that only in an ordinary way. He had, however, read
  some of Tully's orations, a very few books of Seneca, and some of the poets,
  and such few books of his own sect as were written in good Latin. With this
  meager learning and his daily practice in speaking, he had acquired a sort of
  eloquence which proved the more delightful and enticing because it was under
  the direction of a ready wit and a sort of native grace. Was this not even as I
  now recall it, O Lord my God, Judge of my conscience? My heart and my memory
  are laid open before thee, who wast even then guiding me by the secret impulse
  of thy providence and wast setting my shameful errors before my face so that I
  might see and hate them. 
 CHAPTER VII
 12. For as soon as it became plain to me that Faustus was ignorant in those
  arts in which I had believed him eminent, I began to despair of his being able
  to clarify and explain all these perplexities that troubled me--though I
  realized that such ignorance need not have affected the authenticity of his
  piety, if he had not been a Manichean. For their books are full of long fables
  about the sky and the stars, the sun and the moon; and I had ceased to believe
  him able to show me in any satisfactory fashion what I so ardently desired:
  whether the explanations contained in the Manichean books were better or at
  least as good as the mathematical explanations I had read elsewhere. But when I
  proposed that these subjects should be considered and discussed, he quite
  modestly did not dare to undertake the task, for he was aware that he had no
  knowledge of these things and was not ashamed to confess it. For he was not one
  of those talkative people--from whom I had endured so much--who undertook to
  teach me what I wanted to know, and then said nothing. Faustus had a heart
  which, if not right toward thee, was at least not altogether false toward
  himself; for he was not ignorant of his own ignorance, and he did not choose to
  be entangled in a controversy from which he could not draw back or retire
  gracefully. For this I liked him all the more. For the modesty of an ingenious
  mind is a finer thing than the acquisition of that knowledge I desired; and
  this I found to be his attitude toward all abstruse and difficult questions.
 13. Thus the zeal with which I had plunged into the Manichean system was
  checked, and I despaired even more of their other teachers, because Faustus who
  was so famous among them had turned out so poorly in the various matters that
  puzzled me. And so I began to occupy myself with him in the study of his own
  favorite pursuit, that of literature, in which I was already teaching a class
  as a professor of rhetoric among the young Carthaginian students. With Faustus
  then I read whatever he himself wished to read, or what I judged suitable to
  his bent of mind. But all my endeavors to make further progress in Manicheism
  came completely to an end through my acquaintance with that man. I did not
  wholly separate myself from them, but as one who had not yet found anything
  better I decided to content myself, for the time being, with what I had
  stumbled upon one way or another, until by chance something more desirable
  should present itself. Thus that Faustus who had entrapped so many to their
  death--though neither willing nor witting it--now began to loosen the snare in
  which I had been caught. For thy hands, O my God, in the hidden design of thy
  providence did not desert my soul; and out of the blood of my mother's heart,
  through the tears that she poured out by day and by night, there was a
  sacrifice offered to thee for me, and by marvelous ways thou didst deal with
  me. For it was thou, O my God, who didst it: for "the steps of a man are
  ordered by the Lord, and he shall choose his way."[135] How shall we attain salvation without thy hand remaking what it had already
  made?  
 CHAPTER VIII
 14. Thou didst so deal with me, therefore, that I was persuaded to go to Rome
  and teach there what I had been teaching at Carthage. And how I was persuaded
  to do this I will not omit to confess to thee, for in this also the profoundest
  workings of thy wisdom and thy constant mercy toward us must be pondered and
  acknowledged. I did not wish to go to Rome because of the richer fees and the
  higher dignity which my friends promised me there--though these considerations
  did affect my decision. My principal and almost sole motive was that I had been
  informed that the students there studied more quietly and were better kept
  under the control of stern discipline, so that they did not capriciously and
  impudently rush into the classroom of a teacher not their own--indeed, they
  were not admitted at all without the permission of the teacher. At Carthage, on
  the contrary, there was a shameful and intemperate license among the students.
  They burst in rudely and, with furious gestures, would disrupt the discipline
  which the teacher had established for the good of his pupils. Many outrages
  they perpetrated with astounding effrontery, things that would be punishable by
  law if they were not sustained by custom. Thus custom makes plain that such
  behavior is all the more worthless because it allows men to do what thy eternal
  law never will allow. They think that they act thus with impunity, though the
  very blindness with which they act is their punishment, and they suffer far
  greater harm than they inflict.
 The manners that I would not adopt as a student I was compelled as a teacher to
  endure in others. And so I was glad to go where all who knew the situation
  assured me that such conduct was not allowed. But thou, "O my refuge and my
  portion in the land of the living,"[136] didst goad me
  thus at Carthage so that I might thereby be pulled away from it and change my
  worldly habitation for the preservation of my soul. At the same time, thou
  didst offer me at Rome an enticement, through the agency of men enchanted with
  this death-in-life--by their insane conduct in the one place and their empty
  promises in the other. To correct my wandering footsteps, thou didst secretly
  employ their perversity and my own. For those who disturbed my tranquillity
  were blinded by shameful madness and also those who allured me elsewhere had
  nothing better than the earth's cunning. And I who hated actual misery in the
  one place sought fictitious happiness in the other.
 15. Thou knewest the cause of my going from one country to the other, O God,
  but thou didst not disclose it either to me or to my mother, who grieved deeply
  over my departure and followed me down to the sea. She clasped me tight in her
  embrace, willing either to keep me back or to go with me, but I deceived her,
  pretending that I had a friend whom I could not leave until he had a favorable
  wind to set sail. Thus I lied to my mother--and such a mother!--and escaped.
  For this too thou didst mercifully pardon me--fool that I was--and didst
  preserve me from the waters of the sea for the water of thy grace; so that,
  when I was purified by that, the fountain of my mother's eyes, from which she
  had daily watered the ground for me as she prayed to thee, should be dried.
  And, since she refused to return without me, I persuaded her, with some
  difficulty, to remain that night in a place quite close to our ship, where
  there was a shrine in memory of the blessed Cyprian. That night I slipped away
  secretly, and she remained to pray and weep. And what was it, O Lord, that she
  was asking of thee in such a flood of tears but that thou wouldst not allow me
  to sail? But thou, taking thy own secret counsel and noting the real point to
  her desire, didst not grant what she was then asking in order to grant to her
  the thing that she had always been asking.
 The wind blew and filled our sails, and the shore dropped out of sight. Wild
  with grief, she was there the next morning and filled thy ears with complaints
  and groans which thou didst disregard, although, at the very same time, thou
  wast using my longings as a means and wast hastening me on to the fulfillment
  of all longing. Thus the earthly part of her love to me was justly purged by
  the scourge of sorrow. Still, like all mothers--though even more than
  others--she loved to have me with her, and did not know what joy thou wast
  preparing for her through my going away. Not knowing this secret end, she wept
  and mourned and saw in her agony the inheritance of Eve--seeking in sorrow what
  she had brought forth in sorrow. And yet, after accusing me of perfidy and
  cruelty, she still continued her intercessions for me to thee. She returned to
  her own home, and I went on to Rome. 
 CHAPTER IX
 16. And lo, I was received in Rome by the scourge of bodily sickness; and I was
  very near to falling into hell, burdened with all the many and grievous sins I
  had committed against thee, myself, and others--all over and above that fetter
  of original sin whereby we all die in Adam. For thou hadst forgiven me none of
  these things in Christ, neither had he abolished by his cross the enmity[137] that I had incurred from thee through my sins. For how
  could he do so by the crucifixion of a phantom, which was all I supposed him to
  be? The death of my soul was as real then as the death of his flesh appeared to
  me unreal. And the life of my soul was as false, because it was as unreal as
  the death of his flesh was real, though I believed it not.
 My fever increased, and I was on the verge of passing away and perishing; for,
  if I had passed away then, where should I have gone but into the fiery torment
  which my misdeeds deserved, measured by the truth of thy rule? My mother knew
  nothing of this; yet, far away, she went on praying for me. And thou, present
  everywhere, didst hear her where she was and had pity on me where I was, so
  that I regained my bodily health, although I was still disordered in my
  sacrilegious heart. For that peril of death did not make me wish to be
  baptized. I was even better when, as a lad, I entreated baptism of my mother's
  devotion, as I have already related and confessed.[138] But now I had since increased in dishonor, and I madly scoffed at all the
  purposes of thy medicine which would not have allowed me, though a sinner such
  as I was, to die a double death. Had my mother's heart been pierced with this
  wound, it never could have been cured, for I cannot adequately tell of the love
  she had for me, or how she still travailed for me in the spirit with a far
  keener anguish than when she bore me in the flesh.
 17. I cannot conceive, therefore, how she could have been healed if my death
  (still in my sins) had pierced her inmost love. Where, then, would have been
  all her earnest, frequent, and ceaseless prayers to thee? Nowhere but with
  thee. But couldst thou, O most merciful God, despise the "contrite and humble
  heart"[139] of that pure and prudent widow, who was so
  constant in her alms, so gracious and attentive to thy saints, never missing a
  visit to church twice a day, morning and evening--and this not for vain
  gossiping, nor old wives' fables, but in order that she might listen to thee in
  thy sermons, and thou to her in her prayers? Couldst thou, by whose gifts she
  was so inspired, despise and disregard the tears of such a one without coming
  to her aid--those tears by which she entreated thee, not for gold or silver,
  and not for any changing or fleeting good, but for the salvation of the soul of
  her son? By no means, O Lord. It is certain that thou wast near and wast
  hearing and wast carrying out the plan by which thou hadst predetermined it
  should be done. Far be it from thee that thou shouldst have deluded her in
  those visions and the answers she had received from thee--some of which I have
  mentioned, and others not--which she kept in her faithful heart, and, forever
  beseeching, urged them on thee as if they had thy own signature. For thou,
  "because thy mercy endureth forever,"[140] hast so
  condescended to those whose debts thou hast pardoned that thou likewise dost
  become a debtor by thy promises.  
 CHAPTER X
 18. Thou didst restore me then from that illness, and didst heal the son of thy
  handmaid in his body, that he might live for thee and that thou mightest endow
  him with a better and more certain health. After this, at Rome, I again joined
  those deluding and deluded "saints"; and not their "hearers" only, such as the
  man was in whose house I had fallen sick, but also with those whom they called
  "the elect." For it still seemed to me "that it is not we who sin, but some
  other nature sinned in us." And it gratified my pride to be beyond blame, and
  when I did anything wrong not to have to confess that I had done
  wrong--"that thou mightest heal my soul because it had sinned against thee"[141]--and I loved to excuse my soul and to accuse something
  else inside me (I knew not what) but which was not I. But, assuredly, it was I,
  and it was my impiety that had divided me against myself. That sin then was all
  the more incurable because I did not deem myself a sinner. It was an execrable
  iniquity, O God Omnipotent, that I would have preferred to have thee defeated
  in me, to my destruction, than to be defeated by thee to my salvation. Not yet,
  therefore, hadst thou set a watch upon my mouth and a door around my lips that
  my heart might not incline to evil speech, to make excuse for sin with men that
  work iniquity.[142] And, therefore, I continued still in
  the company of their "elect."
 19. But now, hopeless of gaining any profit from that false doctrine, I began
  to hold more loosely and negligently even to those points which I had decided
  to rest content with, if I could find nothing better. I was now half inclined
  to believe that those philosophers whom they call "The Academics"[143] were wiser than the rest in holding that we ought to
  doubt everything, and in maintaining that man does not have the power of
  comprehending any certain truth, for, although I had not yet understood their
  meaning, I was fully persuaded that they thought just as they are commonly
  reputed to do. And I did not fail openly to dissuade my host from his
  confidence which I observed that he had in those fictions of which the works of
  Mani are full. For all this, I was still on terms of more intimate friendship
  with these people than with others who were not of their heresy. I did not
  indeed defend it with my former ardor; but my familiarity with that group--and
  there were many of them concealed in Rome at that time[144]--made me slower to seek any other way. This was
  particularly easy since I had no hope of finding in thy Church the truth from
  which they had turned me aside, O Lord of heaven and earth, Creator of all
  things visible and invisible. And it still seemed to me most unseemly to
  believe that thou couldst have the form of human flesh and be bounded by the
  bodily shape of our limbs. And when I desired to meditate on my God, I did not
  know what to think of but a huge extended body--for what did not have bodily
  extension did not seem to me to exist--and this was the greatest and almost the
  sole cause of my unavoidable errors.
 20. And thus I also believed that evil was a similar kind of substance, and
  that it had its own hideous and deformed extended body--either in a dense form
  which they called the earth or in a thin and subtle form as, for example, the
  substance of the air, which they imagined as some malignant spirit penetrating
  that earth. And because my piety--such as it was--still compelled me to believe
  that the good God never created any evil substance, I formed the idea of two
  masses, one opposed to the other, both infinite but with the evil more
  contracted and the good more expansive. And from this diseased beginning, the
  other sacrileges followed after.
 For when my mind tried to turn back to the Catholic faith, I was cast down,
  since the Catholic faith was not what I judged it to be. And it seemed to me a
  greater piety to regard thee, my God--to whom I make confession of thy
  mercies--as infinite in all respects save that one: where the extended mass of
  evil stood opposed to thee, where I was compelled to confess that thou art
  finite--than if I should think that thou couldst be confined by the form of a
  human body on every side. And it seemed better to me to believe that no evil
  had been created by thee--for in my ignorance evil appeared not only to be some
  kind of substance but a corporeal one at that. This was because I had, thus
  far, no conception of mind, except as a subtle body diffused throughout local
  spaces. This seemed better than to believe that anything could emanate from
  thee which had the character that I considered evil to be in its nature. And I
  believed that our Saviour himself also--thy Only Begotten--had been brought
  forth, as it were, for our salvation out of the mass of thy bright shining
  substance. So that I could believe nothing about him except what I was able to
  harmonize with these vain imaginations. I thought, therefore, that such a
  nature could not be born of the Virgin Mary without being mingled with the
  flesh, and I could not see how the divine substance, as I had conceived it,
  could be mingled thus without being contaminated. I was afraid, therefore, to
  believe that he had been born in the flesh, lest I should also be compelled to
  believe that he had been contaminated by the flesh. Now will thy spiritual ones
  smile blandly and lovingly at me if they read these confessions. Yet such was I. 
 CHAPTER XI
 21. Furthermore, the things they censured in thy Scriptures I thought
  impossible to be defended. And yet, occasionally, I desired to confer on
  various matters with someone well learned in those books, to test what he
  thought of them. For already the words of one Elpidius, who spoke and disputed
  face to face against these same Manicheans, had begun to impress me, even when
  I was at Carthage; because he brought forth things out of the Scriptures that
  were not easily withstood, to which their answers appeared to me feeble. One of
  their answers they did not give forth publicly, but only to us in private--when
  they said that the writings of the New Testament had been tampered with by
  unknown persons who desired to ingraft the Jewish law into the Christian faith.
  But they themselves never brought forward any uncorrupted copies. Still
  thinking in corporeal categories and very much ensnared and to some extent
  stifled, I was borne down by those conceptions of bodily substance. I panted
  under this load for the air of thy truth, but I was not able to breathe it pure
  and undefiled. 
 CHAPTER XII
 22. I set about diligently to practice what I came to Rome to do--the teaching
  of rhetoric. The first task was to bring together in my home a few people to
  whom and through whom I had begun to be known. And lo, I then began to learn
  that other offenses were committed in Rome which I had not had to bear in
  Africa. Just as I had been told, those riotous disruptions by young blackguards
  were not practiced here. Yet, now, my friends told me, many of the Roman
  students--breakers of faith, who, for the love of money, set a small value on
  justice--would conspire together and suddenly transfer to another teacher, to
  evade paying their master's fees. My heart hated such people, though not with a
  "perfect hatred"[145]; for doubtless I hated them more
  because I was to suffer from them than on account of their own illicit acts.
  Still, such people are base indeed; they fornicate against thee, for they love
  the transitory mockeries of temporal things and the filthy gain which begrimes
  the hand that grabs it; they embrace the fleeting world and scorn thee, who
  abidest and invitest us to return to thee and who pardonest the prostituted
  human soul when it does return to thee. Now I hate such crooked and perverse
  men, although I love them if they will be corrected and come to prefer the
  learning they obtain to money and, above all, to prefer thee to such learning,
  O God, the truth and fullness of our positive good, and our most pure peace.
  But then the wish was stronger in me for my own sake not to suffer evil from
  them than was my desire that they should become good for thy sake. 
 CHAPTER XIII
 23. When, therefore, the officials of Milan sent to Rome, to the prefect of the
  city, to ask that he provide them with a teacher of rhetoric for their city and
  to send him at the public expense, I applied for the job through those same
  persons, drunk with the Manichean vanities, to be freed from whom I was going
  away--though neither they nor I were aware of it at the time. They recommended
  that Symmachus, who was then prefect, after he had proved me by audition,
  should appoint me.
 And to Milan I came, to Ambrose the bishop, famed through the whole world as
  one of the best of men, thy devoted servant. His eloquent discourse in those
  times abundantly provided thy people with the flour of thy wheat, the gladness
  of thy oil, and the sober intoxication of thy wine.[146] To him I was led by thee without my knowledge, that by him I might be led to
  thee in full knowledge. That man of God received me as a father would, and
  welcomed my coming as a good bishop should. And I began to love him, of course,
  not at the first as a teacher of the truth, for I had entirely despaired of
  finding that in thy Church--but as a friendly man. And I studiously listened to
  him--though not with the right motive--as he preached to the people. I was
  trying to discover whether his eloquence came up to his reputation, and whether
  it flowed fuller or thinner than others said it did. And thus I hung on his
  words intently, but, as to his subject matter, I was only a careless and
  contemptuous listener. I was delighted with the charm of his speech, which was
  more erudite, though less cheerful and soothing, than Faustus' style. As for
  subject matter, however, there could be no comparison, for the latter was
  wandering around in Manichean deceptions, while the former was teaching
  salvation most soundly. But "salvation is far from the wicked,"[147] such as I was then when I stood before him. Yet I was
  drawing nearer, gradually and unconsciously. 
 CHAPTER XIV
 24. For, although I took no trouble to learn what he said, but only to hear how
  he said it--for this empty concern remained foremost with me as long as I
  despaired of finding a clear path from man to thee--yet, along with the
  eloquence I prized, there also came into my mind the ideas which I ignored; for
  I could not separate them. And, while I opened my heart to acknowledge how
  skillfully he spoke, there also came an awareness of how truly he
  spoke--but only gradually. First of all, his ideas had already begun to appear
  to me defensible; and the Catholic faith, for which I supposed that nothing
  could be said against the onslaught of the Manicheans, I now realized could be
  maintained without presumption. This was especially clear after I had heard one
  or two parts of the Old Testament explained allegorically--whereas before this,
  when I had interpreted them literally, they had "killed" me spiritually.[148] However, when many of these passages in those books
  were expounded to me thus, I came to blame my own despair for having believed
  that no reply could be given to those who hated and scoffed at the Law and the
  Prophets. Yet I did not see that this was reason enough to follow the Catholic
  way, just because it had learned advocates who could answer objections
  adequately and without absurdity. Nor could I see that what I had held to
  heretofore should now be condemned, because both sides were equally defensible.
  For that way did not appear to me yet vanquished; but neither did it seem yet
  victorious.
 25. But now I earnestly bent my mind to require if there was possible any way
  to prove the Manicheans guilty of falsehood. If I could have conceived of a
  spiritual substance, all their strongholds would have collapsed and been cast
  out of my mind. But I could not. Still, concerning the body of this world,
  nature as a whole--now that I was able to consider and compare such things more
  and more--I now decided that the majority of the philosophers held the more
  probable views. So, in what I thought was the method of the Academics--doubting
  everything and fluctuating between all the options--I came to the conclusion
  that the Manicheans were to be abandoned. For I judged, even in that period of
  doubt, that I could not remain in a sect to which I preferred some of the
  philosophers. But I refused to commit the cure of my fainting soul to the
  philosophers, because they were without the saving name of Christ. I resolved,
  therefore, to become a catechumen in the Catholic Church--which my parents had
  so much urged upon me--until something certain shone forth by which I might
  guide my course.
  
  
BOOK SIX
Turmoil in the twenties. Monica follows Augustine to Milan and
  finds him a catechumen in the Catholic Church. Both admire Ambrose but
  Augustine gets no help from him on his personal problems. Ambition spurs and
  Alypius and Nebridius join him in a confused quest for the happy life.
  Augustine becomes engaged, dismisses his first mistress, takes another, and
  continues his fruitless search for truth.
 CHAPTER I
 1. O Hope from my youth,[149] where wast thou to me and
  where hadst thou gone away?[150] For hadst thou not
  created me and differentiated me from the beasts of the field and the birds of
  the air, making me wiser than they? And yet I was wandering about in a dark and
  slippery way, seeking thee outside myself and thus not finding the God of my
  heart. I had gone down into the depths of the sea and had lost faith, and had
  despaired of ever finding the truth.
 By this time my mother had come to me, having mustered the courage of piety,
  following over sea and land, secure in thee through all the perils of the
  journey. For in the dangers of the voyage she comforted the sailors--to whom
  the inexperienced voyagers, when alarmed, were accustomed to go for
  comfort--and assured them of a safe arrival because she had been so assured by
  thee in a vision.
 She found me in deadly peril through my despair of ever finding the truth. But
  when I told her that I was now no longer a Manichean, though not yet a Catholic
  Christian, she did not leap for joy as if this were unexpected; for she had
  already been reassured about that part of my misery for which she had mourned
  me as one dead, but also as one who would be raised to thee. She had carried me
  out on the bier of her thoughts, that thou mightest say to the widow's son,
  "Young man, I say unto you, arise!"[151] and then he would
  revive and begin to speak, and thou wouldst deliver him to his mother.
  Therefore, her heart was not agitated with any violent exultation when she
  heard that so great a part of what she daily entreated thee to do had actually
  already been done--that, though I had not yet grasped the truth, I was rescued
  from falsehood. Instead, she was fully confident that thou who hadst promised
  the whole would give her the rest, and thus most calmly, and with a fully
  confident heart, she replied to me that she believed, in Christ, that before
  she died she would see me a faithful Catholic. And she said no more than this
  to me. But to thee, O Fountain of mercy, she poured out still more frequent
  prayers and tears that thou wouldst hasten thy aid and enlighten my darkness,
  and she hurried all the more zealously to the church and hung upon the words of
  Ambrose, praying for the fountain of water that springs up into everlasting
  life.[152] For she loved that man as an angel of God,
  since she knew that it was by him that I had been brought thus far to that
  wavering state of agitation I was now in, through which she was fully persuaded
  I should pass from sickness to health, even though it would be after a still
  sharper convulsion which physicians call "the crisis." 
 CHAPTER II
 2. So also my mother brought to certain oratories, erected in the memory of the
  saints, offerings of porridge, bread, and wine--as had been her custom in
  Africa--and she was forbidden to do so by the doorkeeper [ostiarius].
  And as soon as she learned that it was the bishop who had forbidden it, she
  acquiesced so devoutly and obediently that I myself marveled how readily she
  could bring herself to turn critic of her own customs, rather than question his
  prohibition. For winebibbing had not taken possession of her spirit, nor did
  the love of wine stimulate her to hate the truth, as it does too many, both
  male and female, who turn as sick at a hymn to sobriety as drunkards do at a
  draught of water. When she had brought her basket with the festive gifts, which
  she would taste first herself and give the rest away, she would never allow
  herself more than one little cup of wine, diluted according to her own
  temperate palate, which she would taste out of courtesy. And, if there were
  many oratories of departed saints that ought to be honored in the same way, she
  still carried around with her the same little cup, to be used everywhere. This
  became not only very much watered but also quite tepid with carrying it about.
  She would distribute it by small sips to those around, for she sought to
  stimulate their devotion, not pleasure.
 But as soon as she found that this custom was forbidden by that famous preacher
  and most pious prelate, even to those who would use it in moderation, lest
  thereby it might be an occasion of gluttony for those who were already drunken
  (and also because these funereal memorials were very much like some of the
  superstitious practices of the pagans), she most willingly abstained from it.
  And, in place of a basket filled with fruits of the earth, she had learned to
  bring to the oratories of the martyrs a heart full of purer petitions, and to
  give all that she could to the poor--so that the Communion of the Lord's body
  might be rightly celebrated in those places where, after the example of his
  Passion, the martyrs had been sacrificed and crowned. But yet it seems to me, O
  Lord my God--and my heart thinks of it this way in thy sight--that my mother
  would probably not have given way so easily to the rejection of this custom if
  it had been forbidden by another, whom she did not love as she did Ambrose.
  For, out of her concern for my salvation, she loved him most dearly; and he
  loved her truly, on account of her faithful religious life, in which she
  frequented the church with good works, "fervent in spirit."[153] Thus he would, when he saw me, often burst forth into
  praise of her, congratulating me that I had such a mother--little knowing what
  a son she had in me, who was still a skeptic in all these matters and who could
  not conceive that the way of life could be found out.  
 CHAPTER III
 3. Nor had I come yet to groan in my prayers that thou wouldst help me. My mind
  was wholly intent on knowledge and eager for disputation. Ambrose himself I
  esteemed a happy man, as the world counted happiness, because great personages
  held him in honor. Only his celibacy appeared to me a painful burden. But what
  hope he cherished, what struggles he had against the temptations that beset his
  high station, what solace in adversity, and what savory joys thy bread
  possessed for the hidden mouth of his heart when feeding on it, I could neither
  conjecture nor experience. 
 Nor did he know my own frustrations, nor the pit of my danger. For I could not
  request of him what I wanted as I wanted it, because I was debarred from
  hearing and speaking to him by crowds of busy people to whose infirmities he
  devoted himself. And when he was not engaged with them--which was never for
  long at a time--he was either refreshing his body with necessary food or his
  mind with reading. 
 Now, as he read, his eyes glanced over the pages and his heart searched out the
  sense, but his voice and tongue were silent. Often when we came to his
  room--for no one was forbidden to enter, nor was it his custom that the arrival
  of visitors should be announced to him--we would see him thus reading to
  himself. After we had sat for a long time in silence--for who would dare
  interrupt one so intent?--we would then depart, realizing that he was unwilling
  to be distracted in the little time he could gain for the recruiting of his
  mind, free from the clamor of other men's business. Perhaps he was fearful
  lest, if the author he was studying should express himself vaguely, some
  doubtful and attentive hearer would ask him to expound it or discuss some of
  the more abstruse questions, so that he could not get over as much material as
  he wished, if his time was occupied with others. And even a truer reason for
  his reading to himself might have been the care for preserving his voice, which
  was very easily weakened. Whatever his motive was in so doing, it was
  doubtless, in such a man, a good one. 
 4. But actually I could find no opportunity of putting the questions I desired
  to that holy oracle of thine in his heart, unless it was a matter which could
  be dealt with briefly. However, those surgings in me required that he should
  give me his full leisure so that I might pour them out to him; but I never
  found him so. I heard him, indeed, every Lord's Day, "rightly dividing the word
  of truth"[154] among the people. And I became all the more
  convinced that all those knots of crafty calumnies which those deceivers of
  ours had knit together against the divine books could be unraveled. 
 I soon understood that the statement that man was made after the image of Him
  that created him[155] was not understood by thy spiritual
  sons--whom thou hadst regenerated through the Catholic Mother[156] through grace--as if they believed and imagined that
  thou wert bounded by a human form, although what was the nature of a spiritual
  substance I had not the faintest or vaguest notion. Still rejoicing, I blushed
  that for so many years I had bayed, not against the Catholic faith, but against
  the fables of fleshly imagination. For I had been both impious and rash in
  this, that I had condemned by pronouncement what I ought to have learned by
  inquiry. For thou, O Most High, and most near, most secret, yet most present,
  who dost not have limbs, some of which are larger and some smaller, but who art
  wholly everywhere and nowhere in space, and art not shaped by some corporeal
  form: thou didst create man after thy own image and, see, he dwells in space,
  both head and feet. 
 CHAPTER IV
 5. Since I could not then understand how this image of thine could subsist, I
  should have knocked on the door and propounded the doubt as to how it was to be
  believed, and not have insultingly opposed it as if it were actually believed.
  Therefore, my anxiety as to what I could retain as certain gnawed all the more
  sharply into my soul, and I felt quite ashamed because during the long time I
  had been deluded and deceived by the [Manichean] promises of certainties, I
  had, with childish petulance, prated of so many uncertainties as if they were
  certain. That they were falsehoods became apparent to me only afterward.
  However, I was certain that they were uncertain and since I had held them as
  certainly uncertain I had accused thy Catholic Church with a blind
  contentiousness. I had not yet discovered that it taught the truth, but I now
  knew that it did not teach what I had so vehemently accused it of. In this
  respect, at least, I was confounded and converted; and I rejoiced, O my God,
  that the one Church, the body of thy only Son--in which the name of Christ had
  been sealed upon me as an infant--did not relish these childish trifles and did
  not maintain in its sound doctrine any tenet that would involve pressing thee,
  the Creator of all, into space, which, however extended and immense, would
  still be bounded on all sides--like the shape of a human body.
 6. I was also glad that the old Scriptures of the Law and the Prophets were
  laid before me to be read, not now with an eye to what had seemed absurd in
  them when formerly I censured thy holy ones for thinking thus, when they
  actually did not think in that way. And I listened with delight to Ambrose, in
  his sermons to the people, often recommending this text most diligently as a
  rule: "The letter kills, but the spirit gives life,"[157] while at the same time he drew aside the mystic veil and opened to view the
  spiritual meaning of what seemed to teach perverse doctrine if it were taken
  according to the letter. I found nothing in his teachings that offended me,
  though I could not yet know for certain whether what he taught was true. For
  all this time I restrained my heart from assenting to anything, fearing to fall
  headlong into error. Instead, by this hanging in suspense, I was being
  strangled.[158] For my desire was to be as certain of
  invisible things as I was that seven and three are ten. I was not so deranged
  as to believe that this could not be comprehended, but my desire was to
  have other things as clear as this, whether they were physical objects, which
  were not present to my senses, or spiritual objects, which I did not know how
  to conceive of except in physical terms.
 If I could have believed, I might have been cured, and, with the sight of my
  soul cleared up, it might in some way have been directed toward thy truth,
  which always abides and fails in nothing. But, just as it happens that a man
  who has tried a bad physician fears to trust himself with a good one, so it was
  with the health of my soul, which could not be healed except by believing. But
  lest it should believe falsehoods, it refused to be cured, resisting thy hand,
  who hast prepared for us the medicines of faith and applied them to the
  maladies of the whole world, and endowed them with such great efficacy.  
 CHAPTER V
 7. Still, from this time forward, I began to prefer the Catholic doctrine. I
  felt that it was with moderation and honesty that it commanded things to be
  believed that were not demonstrated--whether they could be demonstrated, but
  not to everyone, or whether they could not be demonstrated at all. This was far
  better than the method of the Manicheans, in which our credulity was mocked by
  an audacious promise of knowledge and then many fabulous and absurd things were
  forced upon believers because they were incapable of demonstration.
  After that, O Lord, little by little, with a gentle and most merciful hand,
  drawing and calming my heart, thou didst persuade me that, if I took into
  account the multitude of things I had never seen, nor been present when they
  were enacted--such as many of the events of secular history; and the numerous
  reports of places and cities which I had not seen; or such as my relations with
  many friends, or physicians, or with these men and those--that unless we should
  believe, we should do nothing at all in this life.[159] Finally, I was impressed with what an unalterable assurance I believed which
  two people were my parents, though this was impossible for me to know otherwise
  than by hearsay. By bringing all this into my consideration, thou didst
  persuade me that it was not the ones who believed thy books--which with so
  great authority thou hast established among nearly all nations--but those who
  did not believe them who were to be blamed. Moreover, those men were not to be
  listened to who would say to me, "How do you know that those Scriptures were
  imparted to mankind by the Spirit of the one and most true God?" For this was
  the point that was most of all to be believed, since no wranglings of
  blasphemous questions such as I had read in the books of the self-contradicting
  philosophers could once snatch from me the belief that thou dost
  exist--although what thou art I did not know--and that to thee belongs
  the governance of human affairs.
 8. This much I believed, some times more strongly than other times. But I
  always believed both that thou art and that thou hast a care for us,[160] although I was ignorant both as to what should be
  thought about thy substance and as to which way led, or led back, to thee.
  Thus, since we are too weak by unaided reason to find out truth, and since,
  because of this, we need the authority of the Holy Writings, I had now begun to
  believe that thou wouldst not, under any circumstances, have given such eminent
  authority to those Scriptures throughout all lands if it had not been that
  through them thy will may be believed in and that thou mightest be sought. For,
  as to those passages in the Scripture which had heretofore appeared incongruous
  and offensive to me, now that I had heard several of them expounded reasonably,
  I could see that they were to be resolved by the mysteries of spiritual
  interpretation. The authority of Scripture seemed to me all the more revered
  and worthy of devout belief because, although it was visible for all to read,
  it reserved the full majesty of its secret wisdom within its spiritual
  profundity. While it stooped to all in the great plainness of its language and
  simplicity of style, it yet required the closest attention of the most
  serious-minded--so that it might receive all into its common bosom, and direct
  some few through its narrow passages toward thee, yet many more than would have
  been the case had there not been in it such a lofty authority, which
  nevertheless allured multitudes to its bosom by its holy humility. I continued
  to reflect upon these things, and thou wast with me. I sighed, and thou didst
  hear me. I vacillated, and thou guidedst me. I roamed the broad way of the
  world, and thou didst not desert me. 
 CHAPTER VI
 9. I was still eagerly aspiring to honors, money, and matrimony; and thou didst
  mock me. In pursuit of these ambitions I endured the most bitter hardships, in
  which thou wast being the more gracious the less thou wouldst allow anything
  that was not thee to grow sweet to me. Look into my heart, O Lord, whose
  prompting it is that I should recall all this, and confess it to thee. Now let
  my soul cleave to thee, now that thou hast freed her from that fast-sticking
  glue of death.
 How wretched she was! And thou didst irritate her sore wound so that she might
  forsake all else and turn to thee--who art above all and without whom all
  things would be nothing at all--so that she should be converted and healed. How
  wretched I was at that time, and how thou didst deal with me so as to make me
  aware of my wretchedness, I recall from the incident of the day on which I was
  preparing to recite a panegyric on the emperor. In it I was to deliver many a
  lie, and the lying was to be applauded by those who knew I was lying. My heart
  was agitated with this sense of guilt and it seethed with the fever of my
  uneasiness. For, while walking along one of the streets of Milan, I saw a poor
  beggar--with what I believe was a full belly--joking and hilarious. And I
  sighed and spoke to the friends around me of the many sorrows that flowed from
  our madness, because in spite of all our exertions--such as those I was then
  laboring in, dragging the burden of my unhappiness under the spur of ambition,
  and, by dragging it, increasing it at the same time--still and all we aimed
  only to attain that very happiness which this beggar had reached before us; and
  there was a grim chance that we should never attain it! For what he had
  obtained through a few coins, got by his begging, I was still scheming for by
  many a wretched and tortuous turning--namely, the joy of a passing felicity. He
  had not, indeed, gained true joy, but, at the same time, with all my ambitions,
  I was seeking one still more untrue. Anyhow, he was now joyous and I was
  anxious. He was free from care, and I was full of alarms. Now, if anyone should
  inquire of me whether I should prefer to be merry or anxious, I would reply,
  "Merry." Again, if I had been asked whether I should prefer to be as he was or
  as I myself then was, I would have chosen to be myself; though I was beset with
  cares and alarms. But would not this have been a false choice? Was the contrast
  valid? Actually, I ought not to prefer myself to him because I happened to be
  more learned than he was; for I got no great pleasure from my learning, but
  sought, rather, to please men by its exhibition--and this not to instruct, but
  only to please. Thus thou didst break my bones with the rod of thy
  correction.
 10. Let my soul take its leave of those who say: "It makes a difference as to
  the object from which a man derives his joy. The beggar rejoiced in
  drunkenness; you longed to rejoice in glory." What glory, O Lord? The kind that
  is not in thee, for, just as his was no true joy, so was mine no true glory;
  but it turned my head all the more. He would get over his drunkenness that same
  night, but I had slept with mine many a night and risen again with it, and was
  to sleep again and rise again with it, I know not how many times. It does
  indeed make a difference as to the object from which a man's joy is gained. I
  know this is so, and I know that the joy of a faithful hope is incomparably
  beyond such vanity. Yet, at the same time, this beggar was beyond me, for he
  truly was the happier man--not only because he was thoroughly steeped in his
  mirth while I was torn to pieces with my cares, but because he had gotten his
  wine by giving good wishes to the passers-by while I was following after the
  ambition of my pride by lying. Much to this effect I said to my good
  companions, and I saw how readily they reacted pretty much as I did. Thus I
  found that it went ill with me; and I fretted, and doubled that very ill. And
  if any prosperity smiled upon me, I loathed to seize it, for almost before I
  could grasp it, it would fly away.  
 CHAPTER VII
 11. Those of us who were living like friends together used to bemoan our lot in
  our common talk; but I discussed it with Alypius and Nebridius more especially
  and in very familiar terms. Alypius had been born in the same town as I; his
  parents were of the highest rank there, but he was a bit younger than I. He had
  studied under me when I first taught in our town, and then afterward at
  Carthage. He esteemed me highly because I appeared to him good and learned, and
  I esteemed him for his inborn love of virtue, which was uncommonly marked in a
  man so young. But in the whirlpool of Carthaginian fashion--where frivolous
  spectacles are hotly followed--he had been inveigled into the madness of the
  gladiatorial games. While he was miserably tossed about in this fad, I was
  teaching rhetoric there in a public school. At that time he was not attending
  my classes because of some ill feeling that had arisen between me and his
  father. I then came to discover how fatally he doted upon the circus, and I was
  deeply grieved, for he seemed likely to cast away his very great promise--if,
  indeed, he had not already done so. Yet I had no means of advising him, or any
  way of reclaiming him through restraint, either by the kindness of a friend or
  by the authority of a teacher. For I imagined that his feelings toward me were
  the same as his father's. But this turned out not to be the case. Indeed,
  disregarding his father's will in the matter, he began to be friendly and to
  visit my lecture room, to listen for a while and then depart.
 12. But it slipped my memory to try to deal with his problem, to prevent him
  from ruining his excellent mind in his blind and headstrong passion for
  frivolous sport. But thou, O Lord, who holdest the helm of all that thou hast
  created,[161] thou hadst not forgotten him who was one day
  to be numbered among thy sons, a chief minister of thy sacrament.[162] And in order that his amendment might plainly be
  attributed to thee, thou broughtest it about through me while I knew nothing of
  it.
 One day, when I was sitting in my accustomed place with my scholars before me,
  he came in, greeted me, sat himself down, and fixed his attention on the
  subject I was then discussing. It so happened that I had a passage in hand and,
  while I was interpreting it, a simile occurred to me, taken from the
  gladiatorial games. It struck me as relevant to make more pleasant and plain
  the point I wanted to convey by adding a biting gibe at those whom that madness
  had enthralled. Thou knowest, O our God, that I had no thought at that time of
  curing Alypius of that plague. But he took it to himself and thought that I
  would not have said it but for his sake. And what any other man would have
  taken as an occasion of offense against me, this worthy young man took as a
  reason for being offended at himself, and for loving me the more fervently.
  Thou hast said it long ago and written in thy Book, "Rebuke a wise man, and he
  will love you."[163] Now I had not rebuked him; but thou
  who canst make use of everything, both witting and unwitting, and in the order
  which thou thyself knowest to be best--and that order is right--thou madest my
  heart and tongue into burning coals with which thou mightest cauterize and cure
  the hopeful mind thus languishing. Let him be silent in thy praise who does not
  meditate on thy mercy, which rises up in my inmost parts to confess to thee.
  For after that speech Alypius rushed up out of that deep pit into which he had
  willfully plunged and in which he had been blinded by its miserable pleasures.
  And he roused his mind with a resolve to moderation. When he had done this, all
  the filth of the gladiatorial pleasures dropped away from him, and he went to
  them no more. Then he also prevailed upon his reluctant father to let him be my
  pupil. And, at the son's urging, the father at last consented. Thus Alypius
  began again to hear my lectures and became involved with me in the same
  superstition, loving in the Manicheans that outward display of ascetic
  discipline which he believed was true and unfeigned. It was, however, a
  senseless and seducing continence, which ensnared precious souls who were not
  able as yet to reach the height of true virtue, and who were easily beguiled
  with the veneer of what was only a shadowy and feigned virtue. 
 CHAPTER VIII
 13. He had gone on to Rome before me to study law--which was the worldly way
  which his parents were forever urging him to pursue--and there he was carried
  away again with an incredible passion for the gladiatorial shows. For, although
  he had been utterly opposed to such spectacles and detested them, one day he
  met by chance a company of his acquaintances and fellow students returning from
  dinner; and, with a friendly violence, they drew him, resisting and objecting
  vehemently, into the amphitheater, on a day of those cruel and murderous shows.
  He protested to them: "Though you drag my body to that place and set me down
  there, you cannot force me to give my mind or lend my eyes to these shows. Thus
  I will be absent while present, and so overcome both you and them." When they
  heard this, they dragged him on in, probably interested to see whether he could
  do as he said. When they got to the arena, and had taken what seats they could
  get, the whole place became a tumult of inhuman frenzy. But Alypius kept his
  eyes closed and forbade his mind to roam abroad after such wickedness. Would
  that he had shut his ears also! For when one of the combatants fell in the
  fight, a mighty cry from the whole audience stirred him so strongly that,
  overcome by curiosity and still prepared (as he thought) to despise and rise
  superior to it no matter what it was, he opened his eyes and was struck with a
  deeper wound in his soul than the victim whom he desired to see had been in his
  body. Thus he fell more miserably than the one whose fall had raised that
  mighty clamor which had entered through his ears and unlocked his eyes to make
  way for the wounding and beating down of his soul, which was more audacious
  than truly valiant--also it was weaker because it presumed on its own strength
  when it ought to have depended on Thee. For, as soon as he saw the blood, he
  drank in with it a savage temper, and he did not turn away, but fixed his eyes
  on the bloody pastime, unwittingly drinking in the madness--delighted with the
  wicked contest and drunk with blood lust. He was now no longer the same man who
  came in, but was one of the mob he came into, a true companion of those who had
  brought him thither. Why need I say more? He looked, he shouted, he was
  excited, and he took away with him the madness that would stimulate him to come
  again: not only with those who first enticed him, but even without them;
  indeed, dragging in others besides. And yet from all this, with a most powerful
  and most merciful hand, thou didst pluck him and taught him not to rest his
  confidence in himself but in thee--but not till long after.  
 CHAPTER IX
 14. But this was all being stored up in his memory as medicine for the future.
  So also was that other incident when he was still studying under me at Carthage
  and was meditating at noonday in the market place on what he had to recite--as
  scholars usually have to do for practice--and thou didst allow him to be
  arrested by the police officers in the market place as a thief. I believe, O my
  God, that thou didst allow this for no other reason than that this man who was
  in the future to prove so great should now begin to learn that, in making just
  decisions, a man should not readily be condemned by other men with reckless
  credulity.
 For as he was walking up and down alone before the judgment seat with his
  tablets and pen, lo, a young man--another one of the scholars, who was the real
  thief--secretly brought a hatchet and, without Alypius seeing him, got in as
  far as the leaden bars which protected the silversmith shop and began to hack
  away at the lead gratings. But when the noise of the hatchet was heard the
  silversmiths below began to call to each other in whispers and sent men to
  arrest whomsoever they should find. The thief heard their voices and ran away,
  leaving his hatchet because he was afraid to be caught with it. Now Alypius,
  who had not seen him come in, got a glimpse of him as he went out and noticed
  that he went off in great haste. Being curious to know the reasons, he went up
  to the place, where he found the hatchet, and stood wondering and pondering
  when, behold, those that were sent caught him alone, holding the hatchet which
  had made the noise which had startled them and brought them there. They seized
  him and dragged him away, gathering the tenants of the market place about them
  and boasting that they had caught a notorious thief. Thereupon he was led away
  to appear before the judge.
 15. But this is as far as his lesson was to go. For immediately, O Lord, thou
  didst come to the rescue of his innocence, of which thou wast the sole witness.
  As he was being led off to prison or punishment, they were met by the master
  builder who had charge of the public buildings. The captors were especially
  glad to meet him because he had more than once suspected them of stealing the
  goods that had been lost out of the market place. Now, at last, they thought
  they could convince him who it was that had committed the thefts. But the
  custodian had often met Alypius at the house of a certain senator, whose
  receptions he used to attend. He recognized him at once and, taking his hand,
  led him apart from the throng, inquired the cause of all the trouble, and
  learned what had occurred. He then commanded all the rabble still around--and
  very uproarious and full of threatenings they were--to come along with him, and
  they came to the house of the young man who had committed the deed. There,
  before the door, was a slave boy so young that he was not restrained from
  telling the whole story by fear of harming his master. And he had followed his
  master to the market place. Alypius recognized him, and whispered to the
  architect, who showed the boy the hatchet and asked whose it was. "Ours," he
  answered directly. And, being further questioned, he disclosed the whole
  affair. Thus the guilt was shifted to that household and the rabble, who had
  begun to triumph over Alypius, were shamed. And so he went away home, this man
  who was to be the future steward of thy Word and judge of so many causes in thy
  Church--a wiser and more experienced man. 
 CHAPTER X
 16. I found him at Rome, and he was bound to me with the strongest possible
  ties, and he went with me to Milan, in order that he might not be separated
  from me, and also that he might obtain some law practice, for which he had
  qualified with a view to pleasing his parents more than himself. He had already
  sat three times as assessor, showing an integrity that seemed strange to many
  others, though he thought them strange who could prefer gold to integrity. His
  character had also been tested, not only by the bait of covetousness, but by
  the spur of fear. At Rome he was assessor to the secretary of the Italian
  Treasury. There was at that time a very powerful senator to whose favors many
  were indebted, and of whom many stood in fear. In his usual highhanded way he
  demanded to have a favor granted him that was forbidden by the laws. This
  Alypius resisted. A bribe was promised, but he scorned it with all his heart.
  Threats were employed, but he trampled them underfoot--so that all men marveled
  at so rare a spirit, which neither coveted the friendship nor feared the enmity
  of a man at once so powerful and so widely known for his great resources of
  helping his friends and doing harm to his enemies. Even the official whose
  counselor Alypius was--although he was unwilling that the favor should be
  granted--would not openly refuse the request, but passed the responsibility on
  to Alypius, alleging that he would not permit him to give his assent. And the
  truth was that even if the judge had agreed, Alypius would have simply left the
  court.
 There was one matter, however, which appealed to his love of learning, in which
  he was very nearly led astray. He found out that he might have books copied for
  himself at praetorian rates [i.e., at public expense]. But his sense of justice
  prevailed, and he changed his mind for the better, thinking that the rule that
  forbade him was still more profitable than the privilege that his office would
  have allowed him. These are little things, but "he that is faithful in a little
  matter is faithful also in a great one."[164] Nor can that
  possibly be void which was uttered by the mouth of Thy truth: "If, therefore,
  you have not been faithful in the unrighteous mammon, who will commit to your
  trust the true riches? And if you have not been faithful in that which is
  another man's, who shall give you that which is your own?"[165] Such a man was Alypius, who clung to me at that time
  and who wavered in his purpose, just as I did, as to what course of life to
  follow.
 17. Nebridius also had come to Milan for no other reason than that he might
  live with me in a most ardent search after truth and wisdom. He had left his
  native place near Carthage--and Carthage itself, where he usually
  lived--leaving behind his fine family estate, his house, and his mother, who
  would not follow him. Like me, he sighed; like me, he wavered; an ardent seeker
  after the true life and a most acute analyst of the most abstruse questions. So
  there were three begging mouths, sighing out their wants one to the other, and
  waiting upon thee, that thou mightest give them their meat in due season.[166] And in all the vexations with which thy mercy followed
  our worldly pursuits, we sought for the reason why we suffered so--and all was
  darkness! We turned away groaning and exclaiming, "How long shall these things
  be?" And this we often asked, yet for all our asking we did not relinquish
  them; for as yet we had not discovered anything certain which, when we gave
  those others up, we might grasp in their stead.  
 CHAPTER XI
 18. And I especially puzzled and wondered when I remembered how long a time had
  passed since my nineteenth year, in which I had first fallen in love with
  wisdom and had determined as soon as I could find her to abandon the empty
  hopes and mad delusions of vain desires. Behold, I was now getting close to
  thirty, still stuck fast in the same mire, still greedy of enjoying present
  goods which fly away and distract me; and I was still saying, "Tomorrow I shall
  discover it; behold, it will become plain, and I shall see it; behold, Faustus
  will come and explain everything." Or I would say[167]:"O
  you mighty Academics, is there no certainty that man can grasp for the guidance
  of his life? No, let us search the more diligently, and let us not despair.
  See, the things in the Church's books that appeared so absurd to us before do
  not appear so now, and may be otherwise and honestly interpreted. I will set my
  feet upon that step where, as a child, my parents placed me, until the clear
  truth is discovered. But where and when shall it be sought? Ambrose has no
  leisure--we have no leisure to read. Where are we to find the books? How or
  where could I get hold of them? From whom could I borrow them? Let me set a
  schedule for my days and set apart certain hours for the health of the soul. A
  great hope has risen up in us, because the Catholic faith does not teach what
  we thought it did, and vainly accused it of. Its teachers hold it as an
  abomination to believe that God is limited by the form of a human body. And do
  I doubt that I should `knock' in order for the rest also to be `opened' unto
  me? My pupils take up the morning hours; what am I doing with the rest of the
  day? Why not do this? But, then, when am I to visit my influential friends,
  whose favors I need? When am I to prepare the orations that I sell to the
  class? When would I get some recreation and relax my mind from the strain of
  work?
 19. "Perish everything and let us dismiss these idle triflings. Let me devote
  myself solely to the search for truth. This life is unhappy, death uncertain.
  If it comes upon me suddenly, in what state shall I go hence and where shall I
  learn what here I have neglected? Should I not indeed suffer the punishment of
  my negligence here? But suppose death cuts off and finishes all care and
  feeling. This too is a question that calls for inquiry. God forbid that it
  should be so. It is not without reason, it is not in vain, that the stately
  authority of the Christian faith has spread over the entire world, and God
  would never have done such great things for us if the life of the soul perished
  with the death of the body. Why, therefore, do I delay in abandoning my hopes
  of this world and giving myself wholly to seek after God and the blessed
  life?
 "But wait a moment. This life also is pleasant, and it has a sweetness of its
  own, not at all negligible. We must not abandon it lightly, for it would be
  shameful to lapse back into it again. See now, it is important to gain some
  post of honor. And what more should I desire? I have crowds of influential
  friends, if nothing else; and, if I push my claims, a governorship may be
  offered me, and a wife with some money, so that she would not be an added
  expense. This would be the height of my desire. Many men, who are great and
  worthy of imitation, have combined the pursuit of wisdom with a marriage
  life."
 20. While I talked about these things, and the winds of opinions veered about
  and tossed my heart hither and thither, time was slipping away. I delayed my
  conversion to the Lord; I postponed from day to day the life in thee, but I
  could not postpone the daily death in myself. I was enamored of a happy life,
  but I still feared to seek it in its own abode, and so I fled from it while I
  sought it. I thought I should be miserable if I were deprived of the embraces
  of a woman, and I never gave a thought to the medicine that thy mercy has
  provided for the healing of that infirmity, for I had never tried it. As for
  continence, I imagined that it depended on one's own strength, though I found
  no such strength in myself, for in my folly I knew not what is written, "None
  can be continent unless thou dost grant it."[168] Certainly thou wouldst have given it, if I had beseeched thy ears with
  heartfelt groaning, and if I had cast my care upon thee with firm faith. 
 CHAPTER XII
 21. Actually, it was Alypius who prevented me from marrying, urging that if I
  did so it would not be possible for us to live together and to have as much
  undistracted leisure in the love of wisdom as we had long desired. For he
  himself was so chaste that it was wonderful, all the more because in his early
  youth he had entered upon the path of promiscuity, but had not continued in it.
  Instead, feeling sorrow and disgust at it, he had lived from that time down to
  the present most continently. I quoted against him the examples of men who had
  been married and still lovers of wisdom, who had pleased God and had been loyal
  and affectionate to their friends. I fell far short of them in greatness of
  soul, and, enthralled with the disease of my carnality and its deadly
  sweetness, I dragged my chain along, fearing to be loosed of it. Thus I
  rejected the words of him who counseled me wisely, as if the hand that would
  have loosed the chain only hurt my wound. Moreover, the serpent spoke to
  Alypius himself by me, weaving and lying in his path, by my tongue to catch him
  with pleasant snares in which his honorable and free feet might be entangled.
 22. For he wondered that I, for whom he had such a great esteem, should be
  stuck so fast in the gluepot of pleasure as to maintain, whenever we discussed
  the subject, that I could not possibly live a celibate life. And when I urged
  in my defense against his accusing questions that the hasty and stolen delight,
  which he had tasted and now hardly remembered, and therefore too easily
  disparaged, was not to be compared with a settled acquaintance with it; and
  that, if to this stable acquaintance were added the honorable name of marriage,
  he would not then be astonished at my inability to give it up--when I spoke
  thus, then he also began to wish to be married, not because he was overcome by
  the lust for such pleasures, but out of curiosity. For, he said, he longed to
  know what that could be without which my life, which he thought was so happy,
  seemed to me to be no life at all, but a punishment. For he who wore no chain
  was amazed at my slavery, and his amazement awoke the desire for experience,
  and from that he would have gone on to the experiment itself, and then perhaps
  he would have fallen into the very slavery that amazed him in me, since he was
  ready to enter into "a covenant with death,"[169] for "he
  that loves danger shall fall into it."[170]
 Now, the question of conjugal honor in the ordering of a good married life and
  the bringing up of children interested us but slightly. What afflicted me most
  and what had made me already a slave to it was the habit of satisfying an
  insatiable lust; but Alypius was about to be enslaved by a merely curious
  wonder. This is the state we were in until thou, O Most High, who never
  forsakest our lowliness, didst take pity on our misery and didst come to our
  rescue in wonderful and secret ways.  
 CHAPTER XIII
 23. Active efforts were made to get me a wife. I wooed; I was engaged; and my
  mother took the greatest pains in the matter. For her hope was that, when I was
  once married, I might be washed clean in health-giving baptism for which I was
  being daily prepared, as she joyfully saw, taking note that her desires and
  promises were being fulfilled in my faith. Yet, when, at my request and her own
  impulse, she called upon thee daily with strong, heartfelt cries, that thou
  wouldst, by a vision, disclose unto her a leading about my future marriage,
  thou wouldst not. She did, indeed, see certain vain and fantastic things, such
  as are conjured up by the strong preoccupation of the human spirit, and these
  she supposed had some reference to me. And she told me about them, but not with
  the confidence she usually had when thou hadst shown her anything. For she
  always said that she could distinguish, by a certain feeling impossible to
  describe, between thy revelations and the dreams of her own soul. Yet the
  matter was pressed forward, and proposals were made for a girl who was as yet
  some two years too young to marry.[171] And because she
  pleased me, I agreed to wait for her. 
 CHAPTER XIV
 24. Many in my band of friends, consulting about and abhorring the turbulent
  vexations of human life, had often considered and were now almost determined to
  undertake a peaceful life, away from the turmoil of men. This we thought could
  be obtained by bringing together what we severally owned and thus making of it
  a common household, so that in the sincerity of our friendship nothing should
  belong more to one than to the other; but all were to have one purse and the
  whole was to belong to each and to all. We thought that this group might
  consist of ten persons, some of whom were very rich--especially Romanianus, my
  fellow townsman, an intimate friend from childhood days. He had been brought up
  to the court on grave business matters and he was the most earnest of us all
  about the project and his voice was of great weight in commending it because
  his estate was far more ample than that of the others. We had resolved, also,
  that each year two of us should be managers and provide all that was needful,
  while the rest were left undisturbed. But when we began to reflect whether this
  would be permitted by our wives, which some of us had already and others hoped
  to have, the whole plan, so excellently framed, collapsed in our hands and was
  utterly wrecked and cast aside. From this we fell again into sighs and groans,
  and our steps followed the broad and beaten ways of the world; for many
  thoughts were in our hearts, but "Thy counsel standeth fast forever."[172] In thy counsel thou didst mock ours, and didst prepare
  thy own plan, for it was thy purpose "to give us meat in due season, to open
  thy hand, and to fill our souls with blessing."[173] 
 CHAPTER XV
 25. Meanwhile my sins were being multiplied. My mistress was torn from my side
  as an impediment to my marriage, and my heart which clung to her was torn and
  wounded till it bled. And she went back to Africa, vowing to thee never to know
  any other man and leaving with me my natural son by her. But I, unhappy as I
  was, and weaker than a woman, could not bear the delay of the two years that
  should elapse before I could obtain the bride I sought. And so, since I was not
  a lover of wedlock so much as a slave of lust, I procured another mistress--not
  a wife, of course. Thus in bondage to a lasting habit, the disease of my soul
  might be nursed up and kept in its vigor or even increased until it reached the
  realm of matrimony. Nor indeed was the wound healed that had been caused by
  cutting away my former mistress; only it ceased to burn and throb, and began to
  fester, and was more dangerous because it was less painful. 
 CHAPTER XVI
 26. Thine be the praise; unto thee be the glory, O Fountain of mercies. I
  became more wretched and thou didst come nearer. Thy right hand was ever ready
  to pluck me out of the mire and to cleanse me, but I did not know it. Nor did
  anything call me back from a still deeper plunge into carnal pleasure except
  the fear of death and of thy future judgment, which, amid all the waverings of
  my opinions, never faded from my breast. And I discussed with my friends,
  Alypius and Nebridius, the nature of good and evil, maintaining that, in my
  judgment, Epicurus would have carried off the palm if I had not believed what
  Epicurus would not believe: that after death there remains a life for the soul,
  and places of recompense. And I demanded of them: "Suppose we are immortal and
  live in the enjoyment of perpetual bodily pleasure, and that without any fear
  of losing it--why, then, should we not be happy, or why should we search for
  anything else?" I did not know that this was in fact the root of my misery:
  that I was so fallen and blinded that I could not discern the light of virtue
  and of beauty which must be embraced for its own sake, which the eye of flesh
  cannot see, and only the inner vision can see. Nor did I, alas, consider the
  reason why I found delight in discussing these very perplexities, shameful as
  they were, with my friends. For I could not be happy without friends, even
  according to the notions of happiness I had then, and no matter how rich the
  store of my carnal pleasures might be. Yet of a truth I loved my friends for
  their own sakes, and felt that they in turn loved me for my own sake.
 O crooked ways! Woe to the audacious soul which hoped that by forsaking thee it
  would find some better thing! It tossed and turned, upon back and side and
  belly--but the bed is hard, and thou alone givest it rest.[174] And lo, thou art near, and thou deliverest us from our
  wretched wanderings and establishest us in thy way, and thou comfortest us and
  sayest, "Run, I will carry you; yea, I will lead you home and then I will set
  you free."[175]  
 
BOOK SEVEN
The conversion to Neoplatonism. Augustine traces his growing
  disenchantment with the Manichean conceptions of God and evil and the dawning
  understanding of God's incorruptibility. But his thought is still bound by his
  materialistic notions of reality. He rejects astrology and turns to the study of
  Neoplatonism. There follows an analysis of the differences between Platonism
  and Christianity and a remarkable account of his appropriation of Plotinian
  wisdom and his experience of a Plotinian ecstasy. From this, he comes finally
  to the diligent study of the Bible, especially the writings of the apostle
  Paul. His pilgrimage is drawing toward its goal, as he begins to know Jesus
  Christ and to be drawn to him in hesitant faith.
 CHAPTER I
 1. Dead now was that evil and shameful youth of mine, and I was passing into
  full manhood.[176] As I increased in years, the worse was
  my vanity. For I could not conceive of any substance but the sort I could see
  with my own eyes. I no longer thought of thee, O God, by the analogy of a human
  body. Ever since I inclined my ear to philosophy I had avoided this error--and
  the truth on this point I rejoiced to find in the faith of our spiritual
  mother, thy Catholic Church. Yet I could not see how else to conceive thee. And
  I, a man--and such a man!-sought to conceive thee, the sovereign and only true
  God. In my inmost heart, I believed that thou art incorruptible and inviolable
  and unchangeable, because--though I knew not how or why--I could still see
  plainly and without doubt that the corruptible is inferior to the
  incorruptible, the inviolable obviously superior to its opposite, and the
  unchangeable better than the changeable.
 My heart cried out violently against all fantasms,[177] and with this one clear certainty I endeavored to brush away the swarm of
  unclean flies that swarmed around the eyes of my mind. But behold they were
  scarcely scattered before they gathered again, buzzed against my face, and
  beclouded my vision. I no longer thought of God in the analogy of a human body,
  yet I was constrained to conceive thee to be some kind of body in space, either
  infused into the world, or infinitely diffused beyond the world--and this was
  the incorruptible, inviolable, unchangeable substance, which I thought was
  better than the corruptible, the violable, and the changeable.[178] For whatever I conceived to be deprived of the
  dimensions of space appeared to me to be nothing, absolutely nothing; not even
  a void, for if a body is taken out of space, or if space is emptied of all its
  contents (of earth, water, air, or heaven), yet it remains an empty space--a
  spacious nothing, as it were.
 2. Being thus gross-hearted and not clear even to myself, I then held that
  whatever had neither length nor breadth nor density nor solidity, and did not
  or could not receive such dimensions, was absolutely nothing. For at that time
  my mind dwelt only with ideas, which resembled the forms with which my eyes are
  still familiar, nor could I see that the act of thought, by which I formed
  those ideas, was itself immaterial, and yet it could not have formed them if it
  were not itself a measurable entity.
 So also I thought about thee, O Life of my life, as stretched out through
  infinite space, interpenetrating the whole mass of the world, reaching out
  beyond in all directions, to immensity without end; so that the earth should
  have thee, the heaven have thee, all things have thee, and all of them be
  limited in thee, while thou art placed nowhere at all. As the body of the air
  above the earth does not bar the passage of the light of the sun, so that the
  light penetrates it, not by bursting nor dividing, but filling it entirely, so
  I imagined that the body of heaven and air and sea, and even of the earth, was
  all open to thee and, in all its greatest parts as well as the smallest, was
  ready to receive thy presence by a secret inspiration which, from within or
  without all, orders all things thou hast created. This was my conjecture,
  because I was unable to think of anything else; yet it was untrue. For in this
  way a greater part of the earth would contain a greater part of thee; a smaller
  part, a smaller fraction of thee. All things would be full of thee in such a
  sense that there would be more of thee in an elephant than in a sparrow,
  because one is larger than the other and fills a larger space. And this would
  make the portions of thyself present in the several portions of the world in
  fragments, great to the great, small to the small. But thou art not such a one.
  But as yet thou hadst not enlightened my darkness. 
 CHAPTER II
 3. But it was not sufficient for me, O Lord, to be able to oppose those
  deceived deceivers and those dumb orators--dumb because thy Word did not sound
  forth from them--to oppose them with the answer which, in the old Carthaginian
  days, Nebridius used to propound, shaking all of us who heard it: "What could
  this imaginary people of darkness, which the Manicheans usually set up as an
  army opposed to thee, have done to thee if thou hadst declined the combat?" If
  they replied that it could have hurt thee, they would then have made thee
  violable and corruptible. If, on the other hand, the dark could have done thee
  no harm, then there was no cause for any battle at all; there was less cause
  for a battle in which a part of thee, one of thy members, a child of thy own
  substance, should be mixed up with opposing powers, not of thy creation; and
  should be corrupted and deteriorated and changed by them from happiness into
  misery, so that it could not be delivered and cleansed without thy help. This
  offspring of thy substance was supposed to be the human soul to which thy
  Word--free, pure, and entire--could bring help when it was being enslaved,
  contaminated, and corrupted. But on their hypothesis that Word was itself
  corruptible because it is one and the same substance as the soul.
 And therefore if they admitted that thy nature--whatsoever thou art--is
  incorruptible, then all these assertions of theirs are false and should be
  rejected with horror. But if thy substance is corruptible, then this is
  self-evidently false and should be abhorred at first utterance. This line of
  argument, then, was enough against those deceivers who ought to be cast forth
  from a surfeited stomach--for out of this dilemma they could find no way of
  escape without dreadful sacrilege of mind and tongue, when they think and speak
  such things about thee.  
 CHAPTER III
 4. But as yet, although I said and was firmly persuaded that thou our Lord, the
  true God, who madest not only our souls but our bodies as well--and not only
  our souls and bodies but all creatures and all things--wast free from stain and
  alteration and in no way mutable, yet I could not readily and clearly
  understand what was the cause of evil. Whatever it was, I realized that the
  question must be so analyzed as not to constrain me by any answer to believe
  that the immutable God was mutable, lest I should myself become the thing that
  I was seeking out. And so I pursued the search with a quiet mind, now in a
  confident feeling that what had been said by the Manicheans--and I shrank from
  them with my whole heart--could not be true. I now realized that when they
  asked what was the origin of evil their answer was dictated by a wicked pride,
  which would rather affirm that thy nature is capable of suffering evil than
  that their own nature is capable of doing it. 
 5. And I directed my attention to understand what I now was told, that free
  will is the cause of our doing evil and that thy just judgment is the cause of
  our having to suffer from its consequences. But I could not see this clearly.
  So then, trying to draw the eye of my mind up out of that pit, I was plunged
  back into it again, and trying often was just as often plunged back down. But
  one thing lifted me up toward thy light: it was that I had come to know that I
  had a will as certainly as I knew that I had life. When, therefore, I willed or
  was unwilling to do something, I was utterly certain that it was none but
  myself who willed or was unwilling--and immediately I realized that there was
  the cause of my sin. I could see that what I did against my will I suffered
  rather than did; and I did not regard such actions as faults, but rather as
  punishments in which I might quickly confess that I was not unjustly punished,
  since I believed thee to be most just. Who was it that put this in me, and
  implanted in me the root of bitterness, in spite of the fact that I was
  altogether the handiwork of my most sweet God? If the devil is to blame, who
  made the devil himself? And if he was a good angel who by his own wicked will
  became the devil, how did there happen to be in him that wicked will by which
  he became a devil, since a good Creator made him wholly a good angel? By these
  reflections was I again cast down and stultified. Yet I was not plunged into
  that hell of error--where no man confesses to thee--where I thought that thou
  didst suffer evil, rather than that men do it. 
 CHAPTER IV
 6. For in my struggle to solve the rest of my difficulties, I now assumed
  henceforth as settled truth that the incorruptible must be superior to the
  corruptible, and I did acknowledge that thou, whatever thou art, art
  incorruptible. For there never yet was, nor will be, a soul able to conceive of
  anything better than thee, who art the highest and best good.[179] And since most truly and certainly the incorruptible is
  to be placed above the corruptible--as I now admit it--it followed that I could
  rise in my thoughts to something better than my God, if thou wert not
  incorruptible. When, therefore, I saw that the incorruptible was to be
  preferred to the corruptible, I saw then where I ought to seek thee, and where
  I should look for the source of evil: that is, the corruption by which thy
  substance can in no way be profaned. For it is obvious that corruption in no
  way injures our God, by no inclination, by no necessity, by no unforeseen
  chance--because he is our God, and what he wills is good, and he himself is
  that good. But to be corrupted is not good. Nor art thou compelled to do
  anything against thy will, since thy will is not greater than thy power. But it
  would have to be greater if thou thyself wert greater than thyself--for the
  will and power of God are God himself. And what can take thee by surprise,
  since thou knowest all, and there is no sort of nature but thou knowest it? And
  what more should we say about why that substance which God is cannot be
  corrupted; because if this were so it could not be God? 
 CHAPTER V
 7. And I kept seeking for an answer to the question, Whence is evil? And I
  sought it in an evil way, and I did not see the evil in my very search. I
  marshaled before the sight of my spirit all creation: all that we see of earth
  and sea and air and stars and trees and animals; and all that we do not see,
  the firmament of the sky above and all the angels and all spiritual things, for
  my imagination arranged these also, as if they were bodies, in this place or
  that. And I pictured to myself thy creation as one vast mass, composed of
  various kinds of bodies--some of which were actually bodies, some of those
  which I imagined spirits were like. I pictured this mass as vast--of course not
  in its full dimensions, for these I could not know--but as large as I could
  possibly think, still only finite on every side. But thou, O Lord, I imagined
  as environing the mass on every side and penetrating it, still infinite in
  every direction--as if there were a sea everywhere, and everywhere through
  measureless space nothing but an infinite sea; and it contained within itself
  some sort of sponge, huge but still finite, so that the sponge would in all its
  parts be filled from the immeasurable sea.[180]
 Thus I conceived thy creation itself to be finite, and filled by thee, the
  infinite. And I said, "Behold God, and behold what God hath created!" God is
  good, yea, most mightily and incomparably better than all his works. But yet he
  who is good has created them good; behold how he encircles and fills them.
  Where, then, is evil, and whence does it come and how has it crept in? What is
  its root and what its seed? Has it no being at all? Why, then, do we fear and
  shun what has no being? Or if we fear it needlessly, then surely that fear is
  evil by which the heart is unnecessarily stabbed and tortured--and indeed a
  greater evil since we have nothing real to fear, and yet do fear. Therefore,
  either that is evil which we fear, or the act of fearing is in itself evil.
  But, then, whence does it come, since God who is good has made all these things
  good? Indeed, he is the greatest and chiefest Good, and hath created these
  lesser goods; but both Creator and created are all good. Whence, then, is evil?
  Or, again, was there some evil matter out of which he made and formed and
  ordered it, but left something in his creation that he did not convert into
  good? But why should this be? Was he powerless to change the whole lump so that
  no evil would remain in it, if he is the Omnipotent? Finally, why would he make
  anything at all out of such stuff? Why did he not, rather, annihilate it by his
  same almighty power? Could evil exist contrary to his will? And if it were from
  eternity, why did he permit it to be nonexistent for unmeasured intervals of
  time in the past, and why, then, was he pleased to make something out of it
  after so long a time? Or, if he wished now all of a sudden to create something,
  would not an almighty being have chosen to annihilate this evil matter and live
  by himself--the perfect, true, sovereign, and infinite Good? Or, if it were not
  good that he who was good should not also be the framer and creator of what was
  good, then why was that evil matter not removed and brought to nothing, so that
  he might form good matter, out of which he might then create all things? For he
  would not be omnipotent if he were not able to create something good without
  being assisted by that matter which had not been created by himself.
 Such perplexities I revolved in my wretched breast, overwhelmed with gnawing
  cares lest I die before I discovered the truth. And still the faith of thy
  Christ, our Lord and Saviour, as it was taught me by the Catholic Church, stuck
  fast in my heart. As yet it was unformed on many points and diverged from the
  rule of right doctrine, but my mind did not utterly lose it, and every day
  drank in more and more of it.  
 CHAPTER VI
 8. By now I had also repudiated the lying divinations and impious absurdities
  of the astrologers. Let thy mercies, out of the depth of my soul, confess this
  to thee also, O my God. For thou, thou only (for who else is it who calls us
  back from the death of all errors except the Life which does not know how to
  die and the Wisdom which gives light to minds that need it, although it itself
  has no need of light--by which the whole universe is governed, even to the
  fluttering leaves of the trees?)--thou alone providedst also for my obstinacy
  with which I struggled against Vindicianus, a sagacious old man, and Nebridius,
  that remarkably talented young man. The former declared vehemently and the
  latter frequently--though with some reservation--that no art existed by which
  we foresee future things. But men's surmises have oftentimes the help of
  chance, and out of many things which they foretold some came to pass unawares
  to the predictors, who lighted on the truth by making so many guesses.
 And thou also providedst a friend for me, who was not a negligent consulter of
  the astrologers even though he was not thoroughly skilled in the art either--as
  I said, one who consulted them out of curiosity. He knew a good, deal about it,
  which, he said, he had heard from his father, and he never realized how far his
  ideas would help to overthrow my estimation of that art. His name was Firminus
  and he had received a liberal education and was a cultivated rhetorician. It so
  happened that he consulted me, as one very dear to him, as to what I thought
  about some affairs of his in which his worldly hopes had risen, viewed in the
  light of his so-called horoscope. Although I had now begun to learn in this
  matter toward Nebridius' opinion, I did not quite decline to speculate about
  the matter or to tell him what thoughts still came into my irresolute mind,
  although I did add that I was almost persuaded now that these were but empty
  and ridiculous follies. He then told me that his father had been very much
  interested in such books, and that he had a friend who was as much interested
  in them as he was himself. They, in combined study and consultation, fanned the
  flame of their affection for this folly, going so far as to observe the moment
  when the dumb animals which belonged to their household gave birth to young,
  and then observed the position of the heavens with regard to them, so as to
  gather fresh evidence for this so-called art. Moreover, he reported that his
  father had told him that, at the same time his mother was about to give birth
  to him [Firminus], a female slave of a friend of his father's was also
  pregnant. This could not be hidden from her master, who kept records with the
  most diligent exactness of the birth dates even of his dogs. And so it happened
  to pass that--under the most careful observations, one for his wife and the
  other for his servant, with exact calculations of the days, hours, and
  minutes--both women were delivered at the same moment, so that both were
  compelled to cast the selfsame horoscope, down to the minute: the one for his
  son, the other for his young slave. For as soon as the women began to be in
  labor, they each sent word to the other as to what was happening in their
  respective houses and had messengers ready to dispatch to one another as soon
  as they had information of the actual birth--and each, of course, knew
  instantly the exact time. It turned out, Firminus said, that the messengers
  from the respective houses met one another at a point equidistant from either
  house, so that neither of them could discern any difference either in the
  position of the stars or any other of the most minute points. And yet Firminus,
  born in a high estate in his parents' house, ran his course through the
  prosperous paths of this world, was increased in wealth, and elevated to
  honors. At the same time, the slave, the yoke of his condition being still
  unrelaxed, continued to serve his masters as Firminus, who knew him, was able
  to report.
 9. Upon hearing and believing these things related by so reliable a person all
  my resistance melted away. First, I endeavored to reclaim Firminus himself from
  his superstition by telling him that after inspecting his horoscope, I ought,
  if I could foretell truly, to have seen in it parents eminent among their
  neighbors, a noble family in its own city, a good birth, a proper education,
  and liberal learning. But if that servant had consulted me with the same
  horoscope, since he had the same one, I ought again to tell him likewise truly
  that I saw in it the lowliness of his origin, the abjectness of his condition,
  and everything else different and contrary to the former prediction. If, then,
  by casting up the same horoscopes I should, in order to speak the truth, make
  contrary analyses, or else speak falsely if I made identical readings, then
  surely it followed that whatever was truly foretold by the analysis of the
  horoscopes was not by art, but by chance. And whatever was said falsely was not
  from incompetence in the art, but from the error of chance.
 10. An opening being thus made in my darkness, I began to consider other
  implications involved here. Suppose that one of the fools--who followed such an
  occupation and whom I longed to assail, and to reduce to confusion--should urge
  against me that Firminus had given me false information, or that his father had
  informed him falsely. I then turned my thoughts to those that are born twins,
  who generally come out of the womb so near the one to the other that the short
  interval between them--whatever importance they may ascribe to it in the nature
  of things--cannot be noted by human observation or expressed in those tables
  which the astrologer uses to examine when he undertakes to pronounce the truth.
  But such pronouncements cannot be true. For looking into the same horoscopes,
  he must have foretold the same future for Esau and Jacob,[181] whereas the same future did not turn out for them. He
  must therefore speak falsely. If he is to speak truly, then he must read
  contrary predictions into the same horoscopes. But this would mean that it was
  not by art, but by chance, that he would speak truly.
 For thou, O Lord, most righteous ruler of the universe, dost work by a secret
  impulse--whether those who inquire or those inquired of know it or not--so that
  the inquirer may hear what, according to the secret merit of his soul, he ought
  to hear from the deeps of thy righteous judgment. Therefore let no man say to
  thee, "What is this?" or, "Why is that?" Let him not speak thus, for he is only
  a man.  
 CHAPTER VII
 11. By now, O my Helper, thou hadst freed me from those fetters. But still I
  inquired, "Whence is evil?"--and found no answer. But thou didst not allow me
  to be carried away from the faith by these fluctuations of thought. I still
  believed both that thou dost exist and that thy substance is immutable, and
  that thou dost care for and wilt judge all men, and that in Christ, thy Son our
  Lord, and the Holy Scriptures, which the authority of thy Catholic Church
  pressed on me, thou hast planned the way of man's salvation to that life which
  is to come after this death.
 With these convictions safe and immovably settled in my mind, I eagerly
  inquired, "Whence is evil?" What torments did my travailing heart then endure!
  What sighs, O my God! Yet even then thy ears were open and I knew it not, and
  when in stillness I sought earnestly, those silent contritions of my soul were
  loud cries to thy mercy. No man knew, but thou knewest what I endured. How
  little of it could I express in words to the ears of my dearest friends! How
  could the whole tumult of my soul, for which neither time nor speech was
  sufficient, come to them? Yet the whole of it went into thy ears, all of which
  I bellowed out in the anguish of my heart. My desire was before thee, and the
  light of my eyes was not with me; for it was within and I was without. Nor was
  that light in any place; but I still kept thinking only of things that are
  contained in a place, and could find among them no place to rest in. They did
  not receive me in such a way that I could say, "It is sufficient; it is well."
  Nor did they allow me to turn back to where it might be well enough with me.
  For I was higher than they, though lower than thou. Thou art my true joy if I
  depend upon thee, and thou hadst subjected to me what thou didst create lower
  than I. And this was the true mean and middle way of salvation for me, to
  continue in thy image and by serving thee have dominion over the body. But when
  I lifted myself proudly against thee, and "ran against the Lord, even against
  his neck, with the thick bosses of my buckler,"[182] even
  the lower things were placed above me and pressed down on me, so that there was
  no respite or breathing space. They thrust on my sight on every side, in crowds
  and masses, and when I tried to think, the images of bodies obtruded themselves
  into my way back to thee, as if they would say to me, "Where are you going,
  unworthy and unclean one?" And all these had sprung out of my wound, for thou
  hadst humbled the haughty as one that is wounded. By my swelling pride I was
  separated from thee, and my bloated cheeks blinded my eyes. 
 CHAPTER VIII
 12. But thou, O Lord, art forever the same, yet thou art not forever angry with
  us, for thou hast compassion on our dust and ashes.[183] It was pleasing in thy sight to reform my deformity, and by inward stings thou
  didst disturb me so that I was impatient until thou wert made clear to my
  inward sight. By the secret hand of thy healing my swelling was lessened, the
  disordered and darkened eyesight of my mind was from day to day made whole by
  the stinging salve of wholesome grief. 
 CHAPTER IX
 13. And first of all, willing to show me how thou dost "resist the proud, but
  give grace to the humble,"[184] and how mercifully thou
  hast made known to men the way of humility in that thy Word "was made flesh and
  dwelt among men,"[185] thou didst procure for me, through
  one inflated with the most monstrous pride, certain books of the Platonists,
  translated from Greek into Latin.[186] And therein I
  found, not indeed in the same words, but to the selfsame effect, enforced by
  many and various reasons that "in the beginning was the Word, and the Word was
  with God, and the Word was God. The same was in the beginning with God. All
  things were made by him; and without him was not anything made that was made."
  That which was made by him is "life, and the life was the light of men. And the
  light shined in darkness; and the darkness comprehended it not." Furthermore, I
  read that the soul of man, though it "bears witness to the light," yet itself
  "is not the light; but the Word of God, being God, is that true light that
  lights every man who comes into the world." And further, that "he was in the
  world, and the world was made by him, and the world knew him not."[187] But that "he came unto his own, and his own received
  him not. And as many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons
  of God, even to them that believed on his name"[188]--this
  I did not find there.
 14. Similarly, I read there that God the Word was born "not of flesh nor of
  blood, nor of the will of man, nor the will of the flesh, but of God."[189] But, that "the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among
  us"[190]--I found this nowhere there. And I discovered in
  those books, expressed in many and various ways, that "the Son was in the form
  of God and thought it not robbery to be equal in God,"[191] for he was naturally of the same substance. But, that
  "he emptied himself and took upon himself the form of a servant, and was made
  in the likeness of men: and being found in fashion as a man, he humbled
  himself, and became obedient unto death, even the death of the cross. Wherefore
  God also hath highly exalted him" from the dead, "and given him a name above
  every name; that at the name of Jesus every knee should bow, of things in
  heaven, and things in earth, and things under the earth; and that every tongue
  should confess that Jesus Christ is Lord, to the glory of God the Father"[192]--this those books have not. I read further in them that
  before all times and beyond all times, thy only Son remaineth unchangeably
  coeternal with thee, and that of his fullness all souls receive that they may
  be blessed, and that by participation in that wisdom which abides in them, they
  are renewed that they may be wise. But, that "in due time, Christ died for the
  ungodly" and that thou "sparedst not thy only Son, but deliveredst him up for
  us all"[193]--this is not there. "For thou hast hid these
  things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes"[194]; that they "that labor and are heavy laden" might "come
  unto him and he might refresh them" because he is "meek and lowly in heart."[195] "The meek will he guide in judgment; and the meek will
  he teach his way; beholding our lowliness and our trouble and forgiving all our
  sins."[196] But those who strut in the high boots of what
  they deem to be superior knowledge will not hear Him who says, "Learn of me,
  for I am meek and lowly in heart, and you shall find rest for your souls."[197] Thus, though they know God, yet they do not glorify him
  as God, nor are they thankful. Therefore, they "become vain in their
  imaginations; their foolish heart is darkened, and professing themselves to be
  wise they become fools."[198]
 15. And, moreover, I also read there how "they changed the glory of thy
  incorruptible nature into idols and various images--into an image made like
  corruptible man and to birds and four-footed beasts, and creeping things"[199]: namely, into that Egyptian food[200] for which Esau lost his birthright; so that thy
  first-born people worshiped the head of a four-footed beast instead of thee,
  turning back in their hearts toward Egypt and prostrating thy image (their own
  soul) before the image of an ox that eats grass. These things I found there,
  but I fed not on them. For it pleased thee, O Lord, to take away the reproach
  of his minority from Jacob, that the elder should serve the younger and thou
  mightest call the Gentiles, and I had sought strenuously after that gold which
  thou didst allow thy people to take from Egypt, since wherever it was it was
  thine.[201] And thou saidst unto the Athenians by the
  mouth of thy apostle that in thee "we live and move and have our being," as one
  of their own poets had said.[202] And truly these books
  came from there. But I did not set my mind on the idols of Egypt which they
  fashioned of gold, "changing the truth of God into a lie and worshiping and
  serving the creature more than the Creator."[203]  
 CHAPTER X
 16. And being admonished by these books to return into myself, I entered into
  my inward soul, guided by thee. This I could do because thou wast my helper.
  And I entered, and with the eye of my soul--such as it was--saw above the same
  eye of my soul and above my mind the Immutable Light. It was not the common
  light, which all flesh can see; nor was it simply a greater one of the same
  sort, as if the light of day were to grow brighter and brighter, and flood all
  space. It was not like that light, but different, yea, very different from all
  earthly light whatever. Nor was it above my mind in the same way as oil is
  above water, or heaven above earth, but it was higher, because it made me, and
  I was below it, because I was made by it. He who knows the Truth knows that
  Light, and he who knows it knows eternity. Love knows it, O Eternal Truth and
  True Love and Beloved Eternity! Thou art my God, to whom I sigh both night and
  day. When I first knew thee, thou didst lift me up, that I might see that there
  was something to be seen, though I was not yet fit to see it. And thou didst
  beat back the weakness of my sight, shining forth upon me thy dazzling beams of
  light, and I trembled with love and fear. I realized that I was far away from
  thee in the land of unlikeness, as if I heard thy voice from on high: "I am the
  food of strong men; grow and you shall feed on me; nor shall you change me,
  like the food of your flesh into yourself, but you shall be changed into my
  likeness." And I understood that thou chastenest man for his iniquity, and
  makest my soul to be eaten away as though by a spider.[204] And I said, "Is Truth, therefore, nothing, because it
  is not diffused through space--neither finite nor infinite?" And thou didst cry
  to me from afar, "I am that I am."[205] And I heard this,
  as things are heard in the heart, and there was no room for doubt. I should
  have more readily doubted that I am alive than that the Truth exists--the Truth
  which is "clearly seen, being understood by the things that are made."[206]
CHAPTER XI
 17. And I viewed all the other things that are beneath thee, and I realized
  that they are neither wholly real nor wholly unreal. They are real in so far as
  they come from thee; but they are unreal in so far as they are not what thou
  art. For that is truly real which remains immutable. It is good, then, for me
  to hold fast to God, for if I do not remain in him, neither shall I abide in
  myself; but he, remaining in himself, renews all things. And thou art the Lord
  my God, since thou standest in no need of my goodness. 
 CHAPTER XII
 18. And it was made clear to me that all things are good even if they are
  corrupted. They could not be corrupted if they were supremely good; but unless
  they were good they could not be corrupted. If they were supremely good, they
  would be incorruptible; if they were not good at all, there would be nothing in
  them to be corrupted. For corruption harms; but unless it could diminish
  goodness, it could not harm. Either, then, corruption does not harm--which
  cannot be--or, as is certain, all that is corrupted is thereby deprived of
  good. But if they are deprived of all good, they will cease to be. For if they
  are at all and cannot be at all corrupted, they will become better, because
  they will remain incorruptible. Now what can be more monstrous than to maintain
  that by losing all good they have become better? If, then, they are deprived of
  all good, they will cease to exist. So long as they are, therefore, they are
  good. Therefore, whatsoever is, is good. Evil, then, the origin of which I had
  been seeking, has no substance at all; for if it were a substance, it would be
  good. For either it would be an incorruptible substance and so a supreme good,
  or a corruptible substance, which could not be corrupted unless it were good. I
  understood, therefore, and it was made clear to me that thou madest all things
  good, nor is there any substance at all not made by thee. And because all that
  thou madest is not equal, each by itself is good, and the sum of all of them is
  very good, for our God made all things very good.[207] 
 CHAPTER XIII
 19. To thee there is no such thing as evil, and even in thy whole creation
  taken as a whole, there is not; because there is nothing from beyond it that
  can burst in and destroy the order which thou hast appointed for it. But in the
  parts of creation, some things, because they do not harmonize with others, are
  considered evil. Yet those same things harmonize with others and are good, and
  in themselves are good. And all these things which do not harmonize with each
  other still harmonize with the inferior part of creation which we call the
  earth, having its own cloudy and windy sky of like nature with itself. Far be
  it from me, then, to say, "These things should not be." For if I could see
  nothing but these, I should indeed desire something better--but still I ought
  to praise thee, if only for these created things. For that thou art to be
  praised is shown from the fact that "earth, dragons, and all deeps; fire, and
  hail, snow and vapors, stormy winds fulfilling thy word; mountains, and all
  hills, fruitful trees, and all cedars; beasts and all cattle; creeping things,
  and flying fowl; things of the earth, and all people; princes, and all judges
  of the earth; both young men and maidens, old men and children,"[208] praise thy name! But seeing also that in heaven all thy
  angels praise thee, O God, praise thee in the heights, "and all thy hosts, sun
  and moon, all stars and light, the heavens of heavens, and the waters that are
  above the heavens,"[209] praise thy name--seeing this, I
  say, I no longer desire a better world, because my thought ranged over all, and
  with a sounder judgment I reflected that the things above were better than
  those below, yet that all creation together was better than the higher things
  alone. 
 CHAPTER XIV
 20. There is no health in those who find fault with any part of thy creation;
  as there was no health in me when I found fault with so many of thy works. And,
  because my soul dared not be displeased with my God, it would not allow that
  the things which displeased me were from thee. Hence it had wandered into the
  notion of two substances, and could find no rest, but talked foolishly, And
  turning from that error, it had then made for itself a god extended through
  infinite space; and it thought this was thou and set it up in its heart, and it
  became once more the temple of its own idol, an abomination to thee. But thou
  didst soothe my brain, though I was unaware of it, and closed my eyes lest they
  should behold vanity; and thus I ceased from preoccupation with self by a
  little and my madness was lulled to sleep; and I awoke in thee, and beheld thee
  as the Infinite, but not in the way I had thought--and this vision was not
  derived from the flesh.  
CHAPTER XV
 21. And I looked around at other things, and I saw that it was to thee that all
  of them owed their being, and that they were all finite in thee; yet they are
  in thee not as in a space, but because thou holdest all things in the hand of
  thy truth, and because all things are true in so far as they are; and because
  falsehood is nothing except the existence in thought of what does not exist in
  fact. And I saw that all things harmonize, not only in their places but also in
  their seasons. And I saw that thou, who alone art eternal, didst not begin to work after unnumbered periods of time--because all ages, both
  those which are past and those which shall pass, neither go nor come except
  through thy working and abiding. 
 CHAPTER XVI
 22. And I saw and found it no marvel that bread which is distasteful to an
  unhealthy palate is pleasant to a healthy one; or that the light, which is
  painful to sore eyes, is a delight to sound ones. Thy righteousness displeases
  the wicked, and they find even more fault with the viper and the little worm,
  which thou hast created good, fitting in as they do with the inferior parts of
  creation. The wicked themselves also fit in here, and proportionately more so
  as they become unlike thee--but they harmonize with the higher creation
  proportionately as they become like thee. And I asked what wickedness was, and
  I found that it was no substance, but a perversion of the will bent aside from
  thee, O God, the supreme substance, toward these lower things, casting away its
  inmost treasure and becoming bloated with external good.[210] 
 CHAPTER XVII
 23. And I marveled that I now loved thee, and no fantasm in thy stead, and yet
  I was not stable enough to enjoy my God steadily. Instead I was transported to
  thee by thy beauty, and then presently torn away from thee by my own weight,
  sinking with grief into these lower things. This weight was carnal habit. But
  thy memory dwelt with me, and I never doubted in the least that there was One
  for me to cleave to; but I was not yet ready to cleave to thee firmly. For the
  body which is corrupted presses down the soul, and the earthly dwelling weighs
  down the mind, which muses upon many things.[211] My
  greatest certainty was that "the invisible things of thine from the creation of
  the world are clearly seen, being understood by the things that are made, even
  thy eternal power and Godhead."[212] For when I inquired
  how it was that I could appreciate the beauty of bodies, both celestial and
  terrestrial; and what it was that supported me in making correct judgments
  about things mutable; and when I concluded, "This ought to be thus; this ought
  not"--then when I inquired how it was that I could make such judgments
  (since I did, in fact, make them), I realized that I had found the unchangeable
  and true eternity of truth above my changeable mind.
 And thus by degrees I was led upward from bodies to the soul which perceives
  them by means of the bodily senses, and from there on to the soul's inward
  faculty, to which the bodily senses report outward things--and this belongs
  even to the capacities of the beasts--and thence on up to the reasoning power,
  to whose judgment is referred the experience received from the bodily sense.
  And when this power of reason within me also found that it was changeable, it
  raised itself up to its own intellectual principle,[213] and withdrew its thoughts from experience, abstracting itself from the
  contradictory throng of fantasms in order to seek for that light in which it
  was bathed. Then, without any doubting, it cried out that the unchangeable was
  better than the changeable. From this it follows that the mind somehow knew the
  unchangeable, for, unless it had known it in some fashion, it could have had no
  sure ground for preferring it to the changeable. And thus with the flash of a
  trembling glance, it arrived at that which is.[214] And I saw thy invisibility [invisibilia tua] understood by means of the
  things that are made. But I was not able to sustain my gaze. My weakness was
  dashed back, and I lapsed again into my accustomed ways, carrying along with me
  nothing but a loving memory of my vision, and an appetite for what I had, as it
  were, smelled the odor of, but was not yet able to eat. 
 CHAPTER XVIII
 24. I sought, therefore, some way to acquire the strength sufficient to enjoy
  thee; but I did not find it until I embraced that "Mediator between God and
  man, the man Christ Jesus,"[215] "who is over all, God
  blessed forever,"[216] who came calling and saying, "I am
  the way, the truth, and the life,"[217] and mingling with
  our fleshly humanity the heavenly food I was unable to receive. For "the Word
  was made flesh" in order that thy wisdom, by which thou didst create all
  things, might become milk for our infancy. And, as yet, I was not humble enough
  to hold the humble Jesus; nor did I understand what lesson his weakness was
  meant to teach us. For thy Word, the eternal Truth, far exalted above even the
  higher parts of thy creation, lifts his subjects up toward himself. But in this
  lower world, he built for himself a humble habitation of our own clay, so that
  he might pull down from themselves and win over to himself those whom he is to
  bring subject to him; lowering their pride and heightening their love, to the
  end that they might go on no farther in self-confidence--but rather should
  become weak, seeing at their feet the Deity made weak by sharing our coats of
  skin--so that they might cast themselves, exhausted, upon him and be uplifted
  by his rising. 
  CHAPTER XIX
 25. But I thought otherwise. I saw in our Lord Christ only a man of eminent
  wisdom to whom no other man could be compared--especially because he was
  miraculously born of a virgin--sent to set us an example of despising worldly
  things for the attainment of immortality, and thus exhibiting his divine care
  for us. Because of this, I held that he had merited his great authority as
  leader. But concerning the mystery contained in "the Word was made flesh," I
  could not even form a notion. From what I learned from what has been handed
  down to us in the books about him--that he ate, drank, slept, walked, rejoiced
  in spirit, was sad, and discoursed with his fellows--I realized that his flesh
  alone was not bound unto thy Word, but also that there was a bond with the
  human soul and body. Everyone knows this who knows the unchangeableness of thy
  Word, and this I knew by now, as far as I was able, and I had no doubts at all
  about it. For at one time to move the limbs by an act of will, at another time
  not; at one time to feel some emotion, at another time not; at one time to
  speak intelligibly through verbal signs, at another, not--these are all
  properties of a soul and mind subject to change. And if these things were
  falsely written about him, all the rest would risk the imputation of falsehood,
  and there would remain in those books no saving faith for the human race.
 Therefore, because they were written truthfully, I acknowledged a perfect man
  to be in Christ--not the body of a man only, nor, in the body, an animal soul
  without a rational one as well, but a true man. And this man I held to be
  superior to all others, not only because he was a form of the Truth, but also
  because of the great excellence and perfection of his human nature, due to his
  participation in wisdom.
 Alypius, on the other hand, supposed the Catholics to believe that God was so
  clothed with flesh that besides God and the flesh there was no soul in Christ,
  and he did not think that a human mind was ascribed to him.[218] And because he was fully persuaded that the actions
  recorded of him could not have been performed except by a living rational
  creature, he moved the more slowly toward Christian faith.[219] But when he later learned that this was the error of
  the Apollinarian heretics, he rejoiced in the Catholic faith and accepted it.
  For myself, I must confess that it was even later that I learned how in the
  sentence, "The Word was made flesh," the Catholic truth can be distinguished
  from the falsehood of Photinus. For the refutation of heretics[220] makes the tenets of thy Church and sound doctrine to
  stand out boldly. "For there must also be heresies [factions] that those who
  are approved may be made manifest among the weak."[221] 
 CHAPTER XX
 26. By having thus read the books of the Platonists, and having been taught by
  them to search for the incorporeal Truth, I saw how thy invisible things are
  understood through the things that are made. And, even when I was thrown back,
  I still sensed what it was that the dullness of my soul would not allow me to
  contemplate. I was assured that thou wast, and wast infinite, though not
  diffused in finite space or infinity; that thou truly art, who art ever the
  same, varying neither in part nor motion; and that all things are from thee, as
  is proved by this sure cause alone: that they exist.
 Of all this I was convinced, yet I was too weak to enjoy thee. I chattered away
  as if I were an expert; but if I had not sought thy Way in Christ our Saviour,
  my knowledge would have turned out to be not instruction but destruction.[222] For now full of what was in fact my punishment, I had
  begun to desire to seem wise. I did not mourn my ignorance, but rather was
  puffed up with knowledge. For where was that love which builds upon the
  foundation of humility, which is Jesus Christ?[223] Or,
  when would these books teach me this? I now believe that it was thy pleasure
  that I should fall upon these books before I studied thy Scriptures, that it
  might be impressed on my memory how I was affected by them; and then afterward,
  when I was subdued by thy Scriptures and when my wounds were touched by thy
  healing fingers, I might discern and distinguish what a difference there is
  between presumption and confession--between those who saw where they were to go
  even if they did not see the way, and the Way which leads, not only to the
  observing, but also the inhabiting of the blessed country. For had I first been
  molded in thy Holy Scriptures, and if thou hadst grown sweet to me through my
  familiar use of them, and if then I had afterward fallen on those volumes, they
  might have pushed me off the solid ground of godliness--or if I had stood firm
  in that wholesome disposition which I had there acquired, I might have thought
  that wisdom could be attained by the study of those [Platonist] books alone. 
 CHAPTER XXI
 27. With great eagerness, then, I fastened upon the venerable writings of thy
  Spirit and principally upon the apostle Paul. I had thought that he sometimes
  contradicted himself and that the text of his teaching did not agree with the
  testimonies of the Law and the Prophets; but now all these doubts vanished
  away. And I saw that those pure words had but one face, and I learned to
  rejoice with trembling. So I began, and I found that whatever truth I had read
  [in the Platonists] was here combined with the exaltation of thy grace. Thus,
  he who sees must not glory as if he had not received, not only the things that
  he sees, but the very power of sight--for what does he have that he has not
  received as a gift? By this he is not only exhorted to see, but also to be
  cleansed, that he may grasp thee, who art ever the same; and thus he who cannot
  see thee afar off may yet enter upon the road that leads to reaching, seeing,
  and possessing thee. For although a man may "delight in the law of God after
  the inward man," what shall he do with that other "law in his members which
  wars against the law of his mind, and brings him into captivity under the law
  of sin, which is in his members"?[224] Thou art righteous,
  O Lord; but we have sinned and committed iniquities, and have done wickedly.
  Thy hand has grown heavy upon us, and we are justly delivered over to that
  ancient sinner, the lord of death. For he persuaded our wills to become like
  his will, by which he remained not in thy truth. What shall "wretched man" do?
  "Who shall deliver him from the body of this death,"[225] except thy grace through Jesus Christ our Lord; whom thou hast begotten,
  coeternal with thyself, and didst create in the beginning of thy ways[226]--in whom the prince of this world found nothing worthy
  of death, yet he killed him--and so the handwriting which was all against us
  was blotted out?
 The books of the Platonists tell nothing of this. Their pages do not contain
  the expression of this kind of godliness--the tears of confession, thy
  sacrifice, a troubled spirit, a broken and a contrite heart, the salvation of
  thy people, the espoused City, the earnest of the Holy Spirit, the cup of our
  redemption. In them, no man sings: "Shall not my soul be subject unto God, for
  from him comes my salvation? He is my God and my salvation, my defender; I
  shall no more be moved."[227] In them, no one hears him
  calling, "Come unto me all you who labor." They scorn to learn of him because
  he is "meek and lowly of heart"; for "thou hast hidden those things from the
  wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes." For it is one thing to
  see the land of peace from a wooded mountaintop: and fail to find the way
  thither--to attempt impassable ways in vain, opposed and waylaid by fugitives
  and deserters under their captain, the "lion" and "dragon"[228]; but it is quite another thing to keep to the highway
  that leads thither, guarded by the hosts of the heavenly Emperor, on which
  there are no deserters from the heavenly army to rob the passers-by, for they
  shun it as a torment.[229] These thoughts sank wondrously
  into my heart, when I read that "least of thy apostles"[230] and when I had considered all thy works and trembled.
  
BOOK EIGHT
Conversion to Christ. Augustine is deeply impressed by
  Simplicianus' story of the conversion to Christ of the famous orator and
  philosopher, Marius Victorinus. He is stirred to emulate him, but finds himself
  still enchained by his incontinence and preoccupation with worldly affairs. He
  is then visited by a court official, Ponticianus, who tells him and Alypius the
  stories of the conversion of Anthony and also of two imperial "secret service
  agents." These stories throw him into a violent turmoil, in which his divided
  will struggles against himself. He almost succeeds in making the decision for
  continence, but is still held back. Finally, a child's song, overheard by
  chance, sends him to the Bible; a text from Paul resolves the crisis; the
  conversion is a fact. Alypius also makes his decision, and the two inform the
  rejoicing Monica.
 CHAPTER I
 1. O my God, let me remember with gratitude and confess to thee thy mercies
  toward me. Let my bones be bathed in thy love, and let them say: "Lord, who is
  like unto thee?[231] Thou hast broken my bonds in sunder,
  I will offer unto thee the sacrifice of thanksgiving."[232] And how thou didst break them I will declare, and all
  who worship thee shall say, when they hear these things: "Blessed be the Lord
  in heaven and earth, great and wonderful is his name."[233]
 Thy words had stuck fast in my breast, and I was hedged round about by thee on
  every side. Of thy eternal life I was now certain, although I had seen it
  "through a glass darkly."[234] And I had been relieved of
  all doubt that there is an incorruptible substance and that it is the source of
  every other substance. Nor did I any longer crave greater certainty about thee,
  but rather greater steadfastness in thee.
 But as for my temporal life, everything was uncertain, and my heart had to be
  purged of the old leaven. "The Way"--the Saviour himself--pleased me well, but
  as yet I was reluctant to pass through the strait gate.
 And thou didst put it into my mind, and it seemed good in my own sight, to go
  to Simplicianus, who appeared to me a faithful servant of thine, and thy grace
  shone forth in him. I had also been told that from his youth up he had lived in
  entire devotion to thee. He was already an old man, and because of his great
  age, which he had passed in such a zealous discipleship in thy way, he appeared
  to me likely to have gained much wisdom--and, indeed, he had. From all his
  experience, I desired him to tell me--setting before him all my
  agitations--which would be the most fitting way for one who felt as I did to
  walk in thy way.
 2. For I saw the Church full; and one man was going this way and another that.
  Still, I could not be satisfied with the life I was living in the world. Now,
  indeed, my passions had ceased to excite me as of old with hopes of honor and
  wealth, and it was a grievous burden to go on in such servitude. For, compared
  with thy sweetness and the beauty of thy house--which I loved--those things
  delighted me no longer. But I was still tightly bound by the love of women; nor
  did the apostle forbid me to marry, although he exhorted me to something
  better, wishing earnestly that all men were as he himself was.
 But I was weak and chose the easier way, and for this single reason my whole
  life was one of inner turbulence and listless indecision, because from so many
  influences I was compelled--even though unwilling--to agree to a married life
  which bound me hand and foot. I had heard from the mouth of Truth that "there
  are eunuchs who have made themselves eunuchs for the Kingdom of Heaven's
  sake"[235] but, said he, "He that is able to receive it,
  let him receive it." Of a certainty, all men are vain who do not have the
  knowledge of God, or have not been able, from the good things that are seen, to
  find him who is good. But I was no longer fettered in that vanity. I had
  surmounted it, and from the united testimony of thy whole creation had found
  thee, our Creator, and thy Word--God with thee, and together with thee and the
  Holy Spirit, one God--by whom thou hast created all things. There is still
  another sort of wicked men, who "when they knew God, they glorified him not as
  God, neither were thankful."[236] Into this also I had
  fallen, but thy right hand held me up and bore me away, and thou didst place me
  where I might recover. For thou hast said to men, "Behold the fear of the Lord,
  this is wisdom,"[237] and, "Be not wise in your own
  eyes,"[238] because "they that profess themselves to be
  wise become fools."[239] But I had now found the goodly
  pearl; and I ought to have sold all that I had and bought it--yet I hesitated.  
 CHAPTER II
 3. I went, therefore, to Simplicianus, the spiritual father of Ambrose (then a
  bishop), whom Ambrose truly loved as a father. I recounted to him all the mazes
  of my wanderings, but when I mentioned to him that I had read certain books of
  the Platonists which Victorinus--formerly professor of rhetoric at Rome, who
  died a Christian, as I had been told--had translated into Latin, Simplicianus
  congratulated me that I had not fallen upon the writings of other philosophers,
  which were full of fallacies and deceit, "after the beggarly elements of this
  world,"[240] whereas in the Platonists, at every turn, the
  pathway led to belief in God and his Word.
 Then, to encourage me to copy the humility of Christ, which is hidden from the
  wise and revealed to babes, he told me about Victorinus himself, whom he had
  known intimately at Rome. And I cannot refrain from repeating what he told me
  about him. For it contains a glorious proof of thy grace, which ought to be
  confessed to thee: how that old man, most learned, most skilled in all the
  liberal arts; who had read, criticized, and explained so many of the writings
  of the philosophers; the teacher of so many noble senators; one who, as a mark
  of his distinguished service in office had both merited and obtained a statue
  in the Roman Forum--which men of this world esteem a great honor--this man who,
  up to an advanced age, had been a worshiper of idols, a communicant in the
  sacrilegious rites to which almost all the nobility of Rome were wedded; and
  who had inspired the people with the love of Osiris and 
 "The dog Anubis, and a medley crew
 Of monster gods who `gainst Neptune stand in arms 
 `Gainst Venus and Minerva, steel-clad Mars,"[241] 
 whom Rome once conquered, and now worshiped; all of which old Victorinus had
  with thundering eloquence defended for so many years--despite all this, he did
  not blush to become a child of thy Christ, a babe at thy font, bowing his neck
  to the yoke of humility and submitting his forehead to the ignominy of the
  cross.
 4. O Lord, Lord, "who didst bow the heavens and didst descend, who didst touch
  the mountains and they smoked,"[242] by what means didst
  thou find thy way into that breast? He used to read the Holy Scriptures, as
  Simplicianus said, and thought out and studied all the Christian writings most
  studiously. He said to Simplicianus--not openly but secretly as a friend--"You
  must know that I am a Christian." To which Simplicianus replied, "I shall not
  believe it, nor shall I count you among the Christians, until I see you in the
  Church of Christ." Victorinus then asked, with mild mockery, "Is it then the
  walls that make Christians?" Thus he often would affirm that he was already a
  Christian, and as often Simplicianus made the same answer; and just as often
  his jest about the walls was repeated. He was fearful of offending his friends,
  proud demon worshipers, from the height of whose Babylonian dignity, as from
  the tops of the cedars of Lebanon which the Lord had not yet broken down, he
  feared that a storm of enmity would descend upon him.
 But he steadily gained strength from reading and inquiry, and came to fear lest
  he should be denied by Christ before the holy angels if he now was afraid to
  confess him before men. Thus he came to appear to himself guilty of a great
  fault, in being ashamed of the sacraments of the humility of thy Word, when he
  was not ashamed of the sacrilegious rites of those proud demons, whose pride he
  had imitated and whose rites he had shared. From this he became bold-faced
  against vanity and shamefaced toward the truth. Thus, suddenly and
  unexpectedly, he said to Simplicianus--as he himself told me--"Let us go to the
  church; I wish to become a Christian." Simplicianus went with him, scarcely
  able to contain himself for joy. He was admitted to the first sacraments of
  instruction, and not long afterward gave in his name that he might receive the
  baptism of regeneration. At this Rome marveled and the Church rejoiced. The
  proud saw and were enraged; they gnashed their teeth and melted away! But the
  Lord God was thy servant's hope and he paid no attention to their vanity and
  lying madness.
 5. Finally, when the hour arrived for him to make a public profession of his
  faith--which at Rome those who are about to enter into thy grace make from a
  platform in the full sight of the faithful people, in a set form of words
  learned by heart--the presbyters offered Victorinus the chance to make his
  profession more privately, for this was the custom for some who were likely to
  be afraid through bashfulness. But Victorinus chose rather to profess his
  salvation in the presence of the holy congregation. For there was no salvation
  in the rhetoric which he taught: yet he had professed that openly. Why, then,
  should he shrink from naming thy Word before the sheep of thy flock, when he
  had not shrunk from uttering his own words before the mad multitude?
 So, then, when he ascended the platform to make his profession, everyone, as
  they recognized him, whispered his name one to the other, in tones of
  jubilation. Who was there among them that did not know him? And a low murmur
  ran through the mouths of all the rejoicing multitude: "Victorinus!
  Victorinus!" There was a sudden burst of exaltation at the sight of him, and
  suddenly they were hushed that they might hear him. He pronounced the true
  faith with an excellent boldness, and all desired to take him to their very
  heart--indeed, by their love and joy they did take him to their heart. And they
  received him with loving and joyful hands. 
 CHAPTER III
 6. O good God, what happens in a man to make him rejoice more at the salvation
  of a soul that has been despaired of and then delivered from greater danger
  than over one who has never lost hope, or never been in such imminent danger?
  For thou also, O most merciful Father, "dost rejoice more over one that repents
  than over ninety and nine just persons that need no repentance."[243] And we listen with much delight whenever we hear how
  the lost sheep is brought home again on the shepherd's shoulders while the
  angels rejoice; or when the piece of money is restored to its place in the
  treasury and the neighbors rejoice with the woman who found it.[244] And the joy of the solemn festival of thy house
  constrains us to tears when it is read in thy house: about the younger son who
  "was dead and is alive again, was lost and is found." For it is thou who
  rejoicest both in us and in thy angels, who are holy through holy love. For
  thou art ever the same because thou knowest unchangeably all things which
  remain neither the same nor forever.
 7. What, then, happens in the soul when it takes more delight at finding or
  having restored to it the things it loves than if it had always possessed them?
  Indeed, many other things bear witness that this is so--all things are full of
  witnesses, crying out, "So it is." The commander triumphs in victory; yet he
  could not have conquered if he had not fought; and the greater the peril of the
  battle, the more the joy of the triumph. The storm tosses the voyagers,
  threatens shipwreck, and everyone turns pale in the presence of death. Then the
  sky and sea grow calm, and they rejoice as much as they had feared. A loved one
  is sick and his pulse indicates danger; all who desire his safety are
  themselves sick at heart; he recovers, though not able as yet to walk with his
  former strength; and there is more joy now than there was before when he walked
  sound and strong. Indeed, the very pleasures of human life--not only those
  which rush upon us unexpectedly and involuntarily, but also those which are
  voluntary and planned--men obtain by difficulties. There is no pleasure in
  caring and drinking unless the pains of hunger and thirst have preceded.
  Drunkards even eat certain salt meats in order to create a painful thirst--and
  when the drink allays this, it causes pleasure. It is also the custom that the
  affianced bride should not be immediately given in marriage so that the husband
  may not esteem her any less, whom as his betrothed he longed for.
 8. This can be seen in the case of base and dishonorable pleasure. But it is
  also apparent in pleasures that are permitted and lawful: in the sincerity of
  honest friendship; and in him who was dead and lived again, who had been lost
  and was found. The greater joy is everywhere preceded by the greater pain. What
  does this mean, O Lord my God, when thou art an everlasting joy to thyself, and
  some creatures about thee are ever rejoicing in thee? What does it mean that
  this portion of creation thus ebbs and flows, alternately in want and satiety?
  Is this their mode of being and is this all thou hast allotted to them: that,
  from the highest heaven to the lowest earth, from the beginning of the world to
  the end, from the angels to the worm, from the first movement to the last, thou
  wast assigning to all their proper places and their proper seasons--to all the
  kinds of good things and to all thy just works? Alas, how high thou art in the
  highest and how deep in the deepest! Thou never departest from us, and yet only
  with difficulty do we return to thee.  
 CHAPTER IV
 9. Go on, O Lord, and act: stir us up and call us back; inflame us and draw us
  to thee; stir us up and grow sweet to us; let us now love thee, let us run to
  thee. Are there not many men who, out of a deeper pit of darkness than that of
  Victorinus, return to thee--who draw near to thee and are illuminated by that
  light which gives those who receive it power from thee to become thy sons? But
  if they are less well-known, even those who know them rejoice less for them.
  For when many rejoice together the joy of each one is fuller, in that they warm
  one another, catch fire from each other; moreover, those who are well-known
  influence many toward salvation and take the lead with many to follow them.
  Therefore, even those who took the way before them rejoice over them greatly,
  because they do not rejoice over them alone. But it ought never to be that in
  thy tabernacle the persons of the rich should be welcome before the poor, or
  the nobly born before the rest--since "thou hast rather chosen the weak things
  of the world to confound the strong; and hast chosen the base things of the
  world and things that are despised, and the things that are not, in order to
  bring to nought the things that are."[245] It was even
  "the least of the apostles" by whose tongue thou didst sound forth these words.
  And when Paulus the proconsul had his pride overcome by the onslaught of the
  apostle and he was made to pass under the easy yoke of thy Christ and became an
  officer of the great King, he also desired to be called Paul instead of Saul,
  his former name, in testimony to such a great victory.[246] For the enemy is more overcome in one on whom he has a
  greater hold, and whom he has hold of more completely. But the proud he
  controls more readily through their concern about their rank and, through them,
  he controls more by means of their influence. The more, therefore, the world
  prized the heart of Victorinus (which the devil had held in an impregnable
  stronghold) and the tongue of Victorinus (that sharp, strong weapon with which
  the devil had slain so many), all the more exultingly should Thy sons rejoice
  because our King hath bound the strong man, and they saw his vessels taken from
  him and cleansed, and made fit for thy honor and "profitable to the Lord for
  every good work."[247] 
 CHAPTER V
 10. Now when this man of thine, Simplicianus, told me the story of Victorinus,
  I was eager to imitate him. Indeed, this was Simplicianus' purpose in telling
  it to me. But when he went on to tell how, in the reign of the Emperor Julian,
  there was a law passed by which Christians were forbidden to teach literature
  and rhetoric; and how Victorinus, in ready obedience to the law, chose to
  abandon his "school of words" rather than thy Word, by which thou makest
  eloquent the tongues of the dumb--he appeared to me not so much brave as happy,
  because he had found a reason for giving his time wholly to thee. For this was
  what I was longing to do; but as yet I was bound by the iron chain of my own
  will. The enemy held fast my will, and had made of it a chain, and had bound me
  tight with it. For out of the perverse will came lust, and the service of lust
  ended in habit, and habit, not resisted, became necessity. By these links, as
  it were, forged together--which is why I called it "a chain"--a hard bondage
  held me in slavery. But that new will which had begun to spring up in me freely
  to worship thee and to enjoy thee, O my God, the only certain Joy, was not able
  as yet to overcome my former willfulness, made strong by long indulgence. Thus
  my two wills--the old and the new, the carnal and the spiritual--were in
  conflict within me; and by their discord they tore my soul apart.
 11. Thus I came to understand from my own experience what I had read, how "the
  flesh lusts against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh."[248] I truly lusted both ways, yet more in that which I
  approved in myself than in that which I disapproved in myself. For in the
  latter it was not now really I that was involved, because here I was rather an
  unwilling sufferer than a willing actor. And yet it was through me that habit
  had become an armed enemy against me, because I had willingly come to be what I
  unwillingly found myself to be.
 Who, then, can with any justice speak against it, when just punishment follows
  the sinner? I had now no longer my accustomed excuse that, as yet, I hesitated
  to forsake the world and serve thee because my perception of the truth was
  uncertain. For now it was certain. But, still bound to the earth, I refused to
  be thy soldier; and was as much afraid of being freed from all entanglements as
  we ought to fear to be entangled.
 12. Thus with the baggage of the world I was sweetly burdened, as one in
  slumber, and my musings on thee were like the efforts of those who desire to
  awake, but who are still overpowered with drowsiness and fall back into deep
  slumber. And as no one wishes to sleep forever (for all men rightly count
  waking better)--yet a man will usually defer shaking off his drowsiness when
  there is a heavy lethargy in his limbs; and he is glad to sleep on even when
  his reason disapproves, and the hour for rising has struck--so was I assured
  that it was much better for me to give myself up to thy love than to go on
  yielding myself to my own lust. Thy love satisfied and vanquished me; my lust
  pleased and fettered me.[249] I had no answer to thy
  calling to me, "Awake, you who sleep, and arise from the dead, and Christ shall
  give you light."[250] On all sides, thou didst show me
  that thy words are true, and I, convicted by the truth, had nothing at all to
  reply but the drawling and drowsy words: "Presently; see, presently. Leave me
  alone a little while." But "presently, presently," had no present; and my
  "leave me alone a little while" went on for a long while. In vain did I
  "delight in thy law in the inner man" while "another law in my members warred
  against the law of my mind and brought me into captivity to the law of sin
  which is in my members." For the law of sin is the tyranny of habit, by which
  the mind is drawn and held, even against its will. Yet it deserves to be so
  held because it so willingly falls into the habit. "O wretched man that I am!
  Who shall deliver me from the body of this death" but thy grace alone, through
  Jesus Christ our Lord?[251]  
 CHAPTER VI
 13. And now I will tell and confess unto thy name, O Lord, my helper and my
  redeemer, how thou didst deliver me from the chain of sexual desire by which I
  was so tightly held, and from the slavery of worldly business.[252] With increasing anxiety I was going about my usual
  affairs, and daily sighing to thee. I attended thy church as frequently as my
  business, under the burden of which I groaned, left me free to do so. Alypius
  was with me, disengaged at last from his legal post, after a third term as
  assessor, and now waiting for private clients to whom he might sell his legal
  advice as I sold the power of speaking (as if it could be supplied by
  teaching). But Nebridius had consented, for the sake of our friendship, to
  teach under Verecundus--a citizen of Milan and professor of grammar, and a very
  intimate friend of us all--who ardently desired, and by right of friendship
  demanded from us, the faithful aid he greatly needed. Nebridius was not drawn
  to this by any desire of gain--for he could have made much more out of his
  learning had he been so inclined--but as he was a most sweet and kindly friend,
  he was unwilling, out of respect for the duties of friendship, to slight our
  request. But in this he acted very discreetly, taking care not to become known
  to those persons who had great reputations in the world. Thus he avoided all
  distractions of mind, and reserved as many hours as possible to pursue or read
  or listen to discussions about wisdom.
 14. On a certain day, then, when Nebridius was away--for some reason I cannot
  remember--there came to visit Alypius and me at our house one Ponticianus, a
  fellow countryman of ours from Africa, who held high office in the emperor's
  court. What he wanted with us I do not know; but we sat down to talk together,
  and it chanced that he noticed a book on a game table before us. He took it up,
  opened it, and, contrary to his expectation, found it to be the apostle Paul,
  for he imagined that it was one of my wearisome rhetoric textbooks. At this, he
  looked up at me with a smile and expressed his delight and wonder that he had
  so unexpectedly found this book and only this one, lying before my eyes; for he
  was indeed a Christian and a faithful one at that, and often he prostrated
  himself before thee, our God, in the church in constant daily prayer. When I
  had told him that I had given much attention to these writings, a conversation
  followed in which he spoke of Anthony, the Egyptian monk, whose name was in
  high repute among thy servants, although up to that time not familiar to me.
  When he learned this, he lingered on the topic, giving us an account of this
  eminent man, and marveling at our ignorance. We in turn were amazed to hear of
  thy wonderful works so fully manifested in recent times--almost in our
  own--occurring in the true faith and the Catholic Church. We all wondered--we,
  that these things were so great, and he, that we had never heard of them. 
 15. From this, his conversation turned to the multitudes in the monasteries and
  their manners so fragrant to thee, and to the teeming solitudes of the
  wilderness, of which we knew nothing at all. There was even a monastery at
  Milan, outside the city's walls, full of good brothers under the fostering care
  of Ambrose--and we were ignorant of it. He went on with his story, and we
  listened intently and in silence. He then told us how, on a certain afternoon,
  at Trier,[253] when the emperor was occupied watching the
  gladiatorial games, he and three comrades went out for a walk in the gardens
  close to the city walls. There, as they chanced to walk two by two, one
  strolled away with him, while the other two went on by themselves. As they
  rambled, these first two came upon a certain cottage where lived some of thy
  servants, some of the "poor in spirit" ("of such is the Kingdom of Heaven"),
  where they found the book in which was written the life of Anthony! One of them
  began to read it, to marvel and to be inflamed by it. While reading, he
  meditated on embracing just such a life, giving up his worldly employment to
  seek thee alone. These two belonged to the group of officials called "secret
  service agents."[254] Then, suddenly being overwhelmed
  with a holy love and a sober shame and as if in anger with himself, he fixed
  his eyes on his friend, exclaiming: "Tell me, I beg you, what goal are we
  seeking in all these toils of ours? What is it that we desire? What is our
  motive in public service? Can our hopes in the court rise higher than to be
  `friends of the emperor'[255]? But how frail, how beset
  with peril, is that pride! Through what dangers must we climb to a greater
  danger? And when shall we succeed? But if I chose to become a friend of God,
  see, I can become one now." Thus he spoke, and in the pangs of the travail of
  the new life he turned his eyes again onto the page and continued reading; he
  was inwardly changed, as thou didst see, and the world dropped away from his
  mind, as soon became plain to others. For as he read with a heart like a stormy
  sea, more than once he groaned. Finally he saw the better course, and resolved
  on it. Then, having become thy servant, he said to his friend: "Now I have
  broken loose from those hopes we had, and I am determined to serve God; and I
  enter into that service from this hour in this place. If you are reluctant to
  imitate me, do not oppose me." The other replied that he would continue bound
  in his friendship, to share in so great a service for so great a prize. So both
  became thine, and began to "build a tower", counting the cost--namely, of
  forsaking all that they had and following thee.[256] Shortly after, Ponticianus and his companion, who had walked with him in the
  other part of the garden, came in search of them to the same place, and having
  found them reminded them to return, as the day was declining. But the first
  two, making known to Ponticianus their resolution and purpose, and how a
  resolve had sprung up and become confirmed in them, entreated them not to take
  it ill if they refused to join themselves with them. But Ponticianus and his
  friend, although not changed from their former course, did nevertheless (as he
  told us) bewail themselves and congratulated their friends on their godliness,
  recommending themselves to their prayers. And with hearts inclining again
  toward earthly things, they returned to the palace. But the other two, setting
  their affections on heavenly things, remained in the cottage. Both of them had
  affianced brides who, when they heard of this, likewise dedicated their
  virginity to thee.  
 CHAPTER VII
 16. Such was the story Ponticianus told. But while he was speaking, thou, O
  Lord, turned me toward myself, taking me from behind my back, where I had put
  myself while unwilling to exercise self-scrutiny. And now thou didst set me
  face to face with myself, that I might see how ugly I was, and how crooked and
  sordid, bespotted and ulcerous. And I looked and I loathed myself; but whither
  to fly from myself I could not discover. And if I sought to turn my gaze away
  from myself, he would continue his narrative, and thou wouldst oppose me to
  myself and thrust me before my own eyes that I might discover my iniquity and
  hate it. I had known it, but acted as though I knew it not--I winked at it and
  forgot it.
 17. But now, the more ardently I loved those whose wholesome affections I heard
  reported--that they had given themselves up wholly to thee to be cured--the
  more did I abhor myself when compared with them. For many of my years--perhaps
  twelve--had passed away since my nineteenth, when, upon the reading of Cicero's
  Hortensius, I was roused to a desire for wisdom. And here I was, still
  postponing the abandonment of this world's happiness to devote myself to the
  search. For not just the finding alone, but also the bare search for it, ought
  to have been preferred above the treasures and kingdoms of this world; better
  than all bodily pleasures, though they were to be had for the taking. But,
  wretched youth that I was--supremely wretched even in the very outset of my
  youth--I had entreated chastity of thee and had prayed, "Grant me chastity and
  continence, but not yet." For I was afraid lest thou shouldst hear me too soon,
  and too soon cure me of my disease of lust which I desired to have satisfied
  rather than extinguished. And I had wandered through perverse ways of godless
  superstition--not really sure of it, either, but preferring it to the other,
  which I did not seek in piety, but opposed in malice.
 18. And I had thought that I delayed from day to day in rejecting those worldly
  hopes and following thee alone because there did not appear anything certain by
  which I could direct my course. And now the day had arrived in which I was laid
  bare to myself and my conscience was to chide me: "Where are you, O my tongue?
  You said indeed that you were not willing to cast off the baggage of vanity for
  uncertain truth. But behold now it is certain, and still that burden oppresses
  you. At the same time those who have not worn themselves out with searching for
  it as you have, nor spent ten years and more in thinking about it, have had
  their shoulders unburdened and have received wings to fly away." Thus was I
  inwardly confused, and mightily confounded with a horrible shame, while
  Ponticianus went ahead speaking such things. And when he had finished his story
  and the business he came for, he went his way. And then what did I not say to
  myself, within myself? With what scourges of rebuke did I not lash my soul to
  make it follow me, as I was struggling to go after thee? Yet it drew back. It
  refused. It would not make an effort. All its arguments were exhausted and
  confuted. Yet it resisted in sullen disquiet, fearing the cutting off of that
  habit by which it was being wasted to death, as if that were death itself. 
 CHAPTER VIII
 19. Then, as this vehement quarrel, which I waged with my soul in the chamber
  of my heart, was raging inside my inner dwelling, agitated both in mind and
  countenance, I seized upon Alypius and exclaimed: "What is the matter with us?
  What is this? What did you hear? The uninstructed start up and take heaven, and
  we--with all our learning but so little heart--see where we wallow in flesh and
  blood! Because others have gone before us, are we ashamed to follow, and not
  rather ashamed at our not following?" I scarcely knew what I said, and in my
  excitement I flung away from him, while he gazed at me in silent astonishment.
  For I did not sound like myself: my face, eyes, color, tone expressed my
  meaning more clearly than my words.
 There was a little garden belonging to our lodging, of which we had the use--as
  of the whole house--for the master, our landlord, did not live there. The
  tempest in my breast hurried me out into this garden, where no one might
  interrupt the fiery struggle in which I was engaged with myself, until it came
  to the outcome that thou knewest though I did not. But I was mad for health,
  and dying for life; knowing what evil thing I was, but not knowing what good
  thing I was so shortly to become.
 I fled into the garden, with Alypius following step by step; for I had no
  secret in which he did not share, and how could he leave me in such distress?
  We sat down, as far from the house as possible. I was greatly disturbed in
  spirit, angry at myself with a turbulent indignation because I had not entered
  thy will and covenant, O my God, while all my bones cried out to me to enter,
  extolling it to the skies. The way therein is not by ships or chariots or
  feet--indeed it was not as far as I had come from the house to the place where
  we were seated. For to go along that road and indeed to reach the goal is
  nothing else but the will to go. But it must be a strong and single will, not
  staggering and swaying about this way and that--a changeable, twisting,
  fluctuating will, wrestling with itself while one part falls as another
  rises.
 20. Finally, in the very fever of my indecision, I made many motions with my
  body; like men do when they will to act but cannot, either because they do not
  have the limbs or because their limbs are bound or weakened by disease, or
  incapacitated in some other way. Thus if I tore my hair, struck my forehead,
  or, entwining my fingers, clasped my knee, these I did because I willed it. But
  I might have willed it and still not have done it, if the nerves had not obeyed
  my will. Many things then I did, in which the will and power to do were not the
  same. Yet I did not do that one thing which seemed to me infinitely more
  desirable, which before long I should have power to will because shortly when I
  willed, I would will with a single will. For in this, the power of willing is
  the power of doing; and as yet I could not do it. Thus my body more readily
  obeyed the slightest wish of the soul in moving its limbs at the order of my
  mind than my soul obeyed itself to accomplish in the will alone its great
  resolve. 
 CHAPTER IX
 21. How can there be such a strange anomaly? And why is it? Let thy mercy shine
  on me, that I may inquire and find an answer, amid the dark labyrinth of human
  punishment and in the darkest contritions of the sons of Adam. Whence such an
  anomaly? And why should it be? The mind commands the body, and the body obeys.
  The mind commands itself and is resisted. The mind commands the hand to be
  moved and there is such readiness that the command is scarcely distinguished
  from the obedience in act. Yet the mind is mind, and the hand is body. The mind
  commands the mind to will, and yet though it be itself it does not obey itself.
  Whence this strange anomaly and why should it be? I repeat: The will commands
  itself to will, and could not give the command unless it wills; yet what is
  commanded is not done. But actually the will does not will entirely; therefore
  it does not command entirely. For as far as it wills, it commands. And as far
  as it does not will, the thing commanded is not done. For the will commands
  that there be an act of will--not another, but itself. But it does not command
  entirely. Therefore, what is commanded does not happen; for if the will were
  whole and entire, it would not even command it to be, because it would already
  be. It is, therefore, no strange anomaly partly to will and partly to be
  unwilling. This is actually an infirmity of mind, which cannot wholly rise,
  while pressed down by habit, even though it is supported by the truth. And so
  there are two wills, because one of them is not whole, and what is present in
  this one is lacking in the other.  
 CHAPTER X 
 22. Let them perish from thy presence, O God, as vain talkers, and deceivers of
  the soul perish, who, when they observe that there are two wills in the act of
  deliberation, go on to affirm that there are two kinds of minds in us: one
  good, the other evil. They are indeed themselves evil when they hold these evil
  opinions--and they shall become good only when they come to hold the truth and
  consent to the truth that thy apostle may say to them: "You were formerly in
  darkness, but now are you in the light in the Lord."[257] But they desired to be light, not "in the Lord," but in themselves. They
  conceived the nature of the soul to be the same as what God is, and thus have
  become a thicker darkness than they were; for in their dread arrogance they
  have gone farther away from thee, from thee "the true Light, that lights every
  man that comes into the world." Mark what you say and blush for shame; draw
  near to him and be enlightened, and your faces shall not be ashamed.[258]
 While I was deliberating whether I would serve the Lord my God now, as I had
  long purposed to do, it was I who willed and it was also I who was unwilling.
  In either case, it was I. I neither willed with my whole will nor was I wholly
  unwilling. And so I was at war with myself and torn apart by myself. And this
  strife was against my will; yet it did not show the presence of another mind,
  but the punishment of my own. Thus it was no more I who did it, but the sin
  that dwelt in me--the punishment of a sin freely committed by Adam, and I was a
  son of Adam. 
 23. For if there are as many opposing natures as there are opposing wills,
  there will not be two but many more. If any man is trying to decide whether he
  should go to their conventicle or to the theater, the Manicheans at once cry
  out, "See, here are two natures--one good, drawing this way, another bad,
  drawing back that way; for how else can you explain this indecision between
  conflicting wills?" But I reply that both impulses are bad--that which draws to
  them and that which draws back to the theater. But they do not believe that the
  will which draws to them can be anything but good. Suppose, then, that one of
  us should try to decide, and through the conflict of his two wills should waver
  whether he should go to the theater or to our Church. Would not those also
  waver about the answer here? For either they must confess, which they are
  unwilling to do, that the will that leads to our church is as good as that
  which carries their own adherents and those captivated by their mysteries; or
  else they must imagine that there are two evil natures and two evil minds in
  one man, both at war with each other, and then it will not be true what they
  say, that there is one good and another bad. Else they must be converted to the
  truth, and no longer deny that when anyone deliberates there is one soul
  fluctuating between conflicting wills.
 24. Let them no longer maintain that when they perceive two wills to be
  contending with each other in the same man the contest is between two opposing
  minds, of two opposing substances, from two opposing principles, the one good
  and the other bad. Thus, O true God, thou dost reprove and confute and convict
  them. For both wills may be bad: as when a man tries to decide whether he
  should kill a man by poison or by the sword; whether he should take possession
  of this field or that one belonging to someone else, when he cannot get both;
  whether he should squander his money to buy pleasure or hold onto his money
  through the motive of covetousness; whether he should go to the circus or to
  the theater, if both are open on the same day; or, whether he should take a
  third course, open at the same time, and rob another man's house; or, a fourth
  option, whether he should commit adultery, if he has the opportunity--all these
  things concurring in the same space of time and all being equally longed for,
  although impossible to do at one time. For the mind is pulled four ways by four
  antagonistic wills--or even more, in view of the vast range of human
  desires--but even the Manicheans do not affirm that there are these many
  different substances. The same principle applies as in the action of good
  wills. For I ask them, "Is it a good thing to have delight in reading the
  apostle, or is it a good thing to delight in a sober psalm, or is it a good
  thing to discourse on the gospel?" To each of these, they will answer, "It is
  good." But what, then, if all delight us equally and all at the same time? Do
  not different wills distract the mind when a man is trying to decide what he
  should choose? Yet they are all good, and are at variance with each other until
  one is chosen. When this is done the whole united will may go forward on a
  single track instead of remaining as it was before, divided in many ways. So
  also, when eternity attracts us from above, and the pleasure of earthly delight
  pulls us down from below, the soul does not will either the one or the other
  with all its force, but still it is the same soul that does not will this or
  that with a united will, and is therefore pulled apart with grievous
  perplexities, because for truth's sake it prefers this, but for custom's sake
  it does not lay that aside.  
 CHAPTER XI
 25. Thus I was sick and tormented, reproaching myself more bitterly than ever,
  rolling and writhing in my chain till it should be utterly broken. By now I was
  held but slightly, but still was held. And thou, O Lord, didst press upon me in
  my inmost heart with a severe mercy, redoubling the lashes of fear and shame;
  lest I should again give way and that same slender remaining tie not be broken
  off, but recover strength and enchain me yet more securely.
 I kept saying to myself, "See, let it be done now; let it be done now." And as
  I said this I all but came to a firm decision. I all but did it--yet I did not
  quite. Still I did not fall back to my old condition, but stood aside for a
  moment and drew breath. And I tried again, and lacked only a very little of
  reaching the resolve--and then somewhat less, and then all but touched and
  grasped it. Yet I still did not quite reach or touch or grasp the goal, because
  I hesitated to die to death and to live to life. And the worse way, to which I
  was habituated, was stronger in me than the better, which I had not tried. And
  up to the very moment in which I was to become another man, the nearer the
  moment approached, the greater horror did it strike in me. But it did not
  strike me back, nor turn me aside, but held me in suspense.
 26. It was, in fact, my old mistresses, trifles of trifles and vanities of
  vanities, who still enthralled me. They tugged at my fleshly garments and
  softly whispered: "Are you going to part with us? And from that moment will we
  never be with you any more? And from that moment will not this and that be
  forbidden you forever?" What were they suggesting to me in those words "this or
  that"? What is it they suggested, O my God? Let thy mercy guard the soul of thy
  servant from the vileness and the shame they did suggest! And now I scarcely
  heard them, for they were not openly showing themselves and opposing me face to
  face; but muttering, as it were, behind my back; and furtively plucking at me
  as I was leaving, trying to make me look back at them. Still they delayed me,
  so that I hesitated to break loose and shake myself free of them and leap over
  to the place to which I was being called--for unruly habit kept saying to me,
  "Do you think you can live without them?"
 27. But now it said this very faintly; for in the direction I had set my face,
  and yet toward which I still trembled to go, the chaste dignity of continence
  appeared to me--cheerful but not wanton, modestly alluring me to come and doubt
  nothing, extending her holy hands, full of a multitude of good examples--to
  receive and embrace me. There were there so many young men and maidens, a
  multitude of youth and every age, grave widows and ancient virgins; and
  continence herself in their midst: not barren, but a fruitful mother of
  children--her joys--by thee, O Lord, her husband. And she smiled on me with a
  challenging smile as if to say: "Can you not do what these young men and
  maidens can? Or can any of them do it of themselves, and not rather in the Lord
  their God? The Lord their God gave me to them. Why do you stand in your own
  strength, and so stand not? Cast yourself on him; fear not. He will not flinch
  and you will not fall. Cast yourself on him without fear, for he will receive
  and heal you." And I blushed violently, for I still heard the muttering of
  those "trifles" and hung suspended. Again she seemed to speak: "Stop your ears
  against those unclean members of yours, that they may be mortified. They tell
  you of delights, but not according to the law of the Lord thy God." This
  struggle raging in my heart was nothing but the contest of self against self.
  And Alypius kept close beside me, and awaited in silence the outcome of my
  extraordinary agitation. 
 CHAPTER XII
 28. Now when deep reflection had drawn up out of the secret depths of my soul
  all my misery and had heaped it up before the sight of my heart, there arose a
  mighty storm, accompanied by a mighty rain of tears. That I might give way
  fully to my tears and lamentations, I stole away from Alypius, for it seemed to
  me that solitude was more appropriate for the business of weeping. I went far
  enough away that I could feel that even his presence was no restraint upon me.
  This was the way I felt at the time, and he realized it. I suppose I had said
  something before I started up and he noticed that the sound of my voice was
  choked with weeping. And so he stayed alone, where we had been sitting
  together, greatly astonished. I flung myself down under a fig tree--how I know
  not--and gave free course to my tears. The streams of my eyes gushed out an
  acceptable sacrifice to thee. And, not indeed in these words, but to this
  effect, I cried to thee: "And thou, O Lord, how long? How long, O Lord? Wilt
  thou be angry forever? Oh, remember not against us our former iniquities."[259] For I felt that I was still enthralled by them. I sent
  up these sorrowful cries: "How long, how long? Tomorrow and tomorrow? Why not
  now? Why not this very hour make an end to my uncleanness?"
 29. I was saying these things and weeping in the most bitter contrition of my
  heart, when suddenly I heard the voice of a boy or a girl I know not
  which--coming from the neighboring house, chanting over and over again, "Pick
  it up, read it; pick it up, read it."[260] Immediately I
  ceased weeping and began most earnestly to think whether it was usual for
  children in some kind of game to sing such a song, but I could not remember
  ever having heard the like. So, damming the torrent of my tears, I got to my
  feet, for I could not but think that this was a divine command to open the
  Bible and read the first passage I should light upon. For I had heard[261] how Anthony, accidentally coming into church while the
  gospel was being read, received the admonition as if what was read had been
  addressed to him: "Go and sell what you have and give it to the poor, and you
  shall have treasure in heaven; and come and follow me."[262] By such an oracle he was forthwith converted to thee.
 So I quickly returned to the bench where Alypius was sitting, for there I had
  put down the apostle's book when I had left there. I snatched it up, opened it,
  and in silence read the paragraph on which my eyes first fell: "Not in rioting
  and drunkenness, not in chambering and wantonness, not in strife and envying,
  but put on the Lord Jesus Christ, and make no provision for the flesh to
  fulfill the lusts thereof."[263] I wanted to read no
  further, nor did I need to. For instantly, as the sentence ended, there was
  infused in my heart something like the light of full certainty and all the
  gloom of doubt vanished away.[264]
 30. Closing the book, then, and putting my finger or something else for a mark
  I began--now with a tranquil countenance--to tell it all to Alypius. And he in
  turn disclosed to me what had been going on in himself, of which I knew
  nothing. He asked to see what I had read. I showed him, and he looked on even
  further than I had read. I had not known what followed. But indeed it was this,
  "Him that is weak in the faith, receive."[265] This he
  applied to himself, and told me so. By these words of warning he was
  strengthened, and by exercising his good resolution and purpose--all very much
  in keeping with his character, in which, in these respects, he was always far
  different from and better than I--he joined me in full commitment without any
  restless hesitation.
 Then we went in to my mother, and told her what happened, to her great joy. We
  explained to her how it had occurred--and she leaped for joy triumphant; and
  she blessed thee, who art "able to do exceedingly abundantly above all that we
  ask or think."[266] For she saw that thou hadst granted
  her far more than she had ever asked for in all her pitiful and doleful
  lamentations. For thou didst so convert me to thee that I sought neither a wife
  nor any other of this world's hopes, but set my feet on that rule of faith
  which so many years before thou hadst showed her in her dream about me. And so
  thou didst turn her grief into gladness more plentiful than she had ventured to
  desire, and dearer and purer than the desire she used to cherish of having
  grandchildren of my flesh.
  
BOOK NINE
The end of the autobiography. Augustine tells of his resigning
  from his professorship and of the days at Cassiciacum in preparation for
  baptism. He is baptized together with Adeodatus and Alypius. Shortly
  thereafter, they start back for Africa. Augustine recalls the ecstasy he and
  his mother shared in Ostia and then reports her death and burial and his grief.
  The book closes with a moving prayer for the souls of Monica, Patricius, and
  all his fellow citizens of the heavenly Jerusalem.
 CHAPTER I
 1. "O Lord, I am thy servant; I am thy servant and the son of thy handmaid.
  Thou hast loosed my bonds. I will offer to thee the sacrifice of
  thanksgiving."[267] Let my heart and my tongue praise
  thee, and let all my bones say, "Lord, who is like unto thee?" Let them say so,
  and answer thou me and say unto my soul, "I am your salvation."
 Who am I, and what is my nature? What evil is there not in me and my deeds; or
  if not in my deeds, my words; or if not in my words, my will? But thou, O Lord,
  art good and merciful, and thy right hand didst reach into the depth of my
  death and didst empty out the abyss of corruption from the bottom of my heart.
  And this was the result: now I did not will to do what I willed, and began to
  will to do what thou didst will.
 But where was my free will during all those years and from what deep and secret
  retreat was it called forth in a single moment, whereby I gave my neck to thy
  "easy yoke" and my shoulders to thy "light burden," O Christ Jesus, "my
  Strength and my Redeemer"? How sweet did it suddenly become to me to be without
  the sweetness of trifles! And it was now a joy to put away what I formerly
  feared to lose. For thou didst cast them away from me, O true and highest
  Sweetness. Thou didst cast them away, and in their place thou didst enter in
  thyself--sweeter than all pleasure, though not to flesh and blood; brighter
  than all light, but more veiled than all mystery; more exalted than all honor,
  though not to them that are exalted in their own eyes. Now was my soul free
  from the gnawing cares of seeking and getting, of wallowing in the mire and
  scratching the itch of lust. And I prattled like a child to thee, O Lord my
  God--my light, my riches, and my salvation. 
 CHAPTER II
 2. And it seemed right to me, in thy sight, not to snatch my tongue's service
  abruptly out of the speech market, but to withdraw quietly, so that the young
  men who were not concerned about thy law or thy peace, but with mendacious
  follies and forensic strifes, might no longer purchase from my mouth weapons
  for their frenzy. Fortunately, there were only a few days before the "vintage
  vacation"[268]; and I determined to endure them, so that I
  might resign in due form and, now bought by thee, return for sale no more.
 My plan was known to thee, but, save for my own friends, it was not known to
  other men. For we had agreed that it should not be made public; although, in
  our ascent from the "valley of tears" and our singing of "the song of degrees,"
  thou hadst given us sharp arrows and hot burning coals to stop that deceitful
  tongue which opposes under the guise of good counsel, and devours what it loves
  as though it were food.
 3. Thou hadst pierced our heart with thy love, and we carried thy words, as it
  were, thrust through our vitals. The examples of thy servants whom thou hadst
  changed from black to shining white, and from death to life, crowded into the
  bosom of our thoughts and burned and consumed our sluggish temper, that we
  might not topple back into the abyss. And they fired us exceedingly, so that
  every breath of the deceitful tongue of our detractors might fan the flame and
  not blow it out.
 Though this vow and purpose of ours should find those who would loudly praise
  it--for the sake of thy name, which thou hast sanctified throughout the
  earth--it nevertheless looked like a self-vaunting not to wait until the
  vacation time now so near. For if I had left such a public office ahead of
  time, and had made the break in the eye of the general public, all who took
  notice of this act of mine and observed how near was the vintage time that I
  wished to anticipate would have talked about me a great deal, as if I were
  trying to appear a great person. And what purpose would it serve that people
  should consider and dispute about my conversion so that my good should be evil
  spoken of?
 4. Furthermore, this same summer my lungs had begun to be weak from too much
  literary labor. Breathing was difficult; the pains in my chest showed that the
  lungs were affected and were soon fatigued by too loud or prolonged speaking.
  This had at first been a trial to me, for it would have compelled me almost of
  necessity to lay down that burden of teaching; or, if I was to be cured and
  become strong again, at least to take a leave for a while. But as soon as the
  full desire to be still that I might know that thou art the Lord[269] arose and was confirmed in me, thou knowest, my God,
  that I began to rejoice that I had this excuse ready--and not a feigned one,
  either--which might somewhat temper the displeasure of those who for their
  sons' freedom wished me never to have any freedom of my own.
 Full of joy, then, I bore it until my time ran out--it was perhaps some twenty
  days--yet it was some strain to go through with it, for the greediness which
  helped to support the drudgery had gone, and I would have been overwhelmed had
  not its place been taken by patience. Some of thy servants, my brethren, may
  say that I sinned in this, since having once fully and from my heart enlisted
  in thy service, I permitted myself to sit a single hour in the chair of
  falsehood. I will not dispute it. But hast thou not, O most merciful Lord,
  pardoned and forgiven this sin in the holy water[270] also, along with all the others, horrible and deadly as they were?  
 CHAPTER III
 5. Verecundus was severely disturbed by this new happiness of mine, since he
  was still firmly held by his bonds and saw that he would lose my companionship.
  For he was not yet a Christian, though his wife was; and, indeed, he was more
  firmly enchained by her than by anything else, and held back from that journey
  on which we had set out. Furthermore, he declared he did not wish to be a
  Christian on any terms except those that were impossible. However, he invited
  us most courteously to make use of his country house so long as we would stay
  there. O Lord, thou wilt recompense him for this "in the resurrection of the
  just,"[271] seeing that thou hast already given him "the
  lot of the righteous."[272] For while we were absent at
  Rome, he was overtaken with bodily sickness, and during it he was made a
  Christian and departed this life as one of the faithful. Thus thou hadst mercy
  on him, and not on him only, but on us as well; lest, remembering the exceeding
  kindness of our friend to us and not able to count him in thy flock, we should
  be tortured with intolerable grief. Thanks be unto thee, our God; we are thine.
  Thy exhortations, consolations, and faithful promises assure us that thou wilt
  repay Verecundus for that country house at Cassiciacum--where we found rest in
  thee from the fever of the world--with the perpetual freshness of thy paradise
  in which thou hast forgiven him his earthly sins, in that mountain flowing with
  milk, that fruitful mountain--thy own.
 6. Thus Verecundus was full of grief; but Nebridius was joyous. For he was not
  yet a Christian, and had fallen into the pit of deadly error, believing that
  the flesh of thy Son, the Truth, was a phantom.[273] Yet
  he had come up out of that pit and now held the same belief that we did. And
  though he was not as yet initiated in any of the sacraments of thy Church, he
  was a most earnest inquirer after truth. Not long after our conversion and
  regeneration by thy baptism, he also became a faithful member of the Catholic
  Church, serving thee in perfect chastity and continence among his own people in
  Africa, and bringing his whole household with him to Christianity. Then thou
  didst release him from the flesh, and now he lives in Abraham's bosom. Whatever
  is signified by that term "bosom," there lives my Nebridius, my sweet friend,
  thy son by adoption, O Lord, and not a freedman any longer. There he lives; for
  what other place could there be for such a soul? There he lives in that abode
  about which he used to ask me so many questions--poor ignorant one that I was.
  Now he does not put his ear up to my mouth, but his spiritual mouth to thy
  fountain, and drinks wisdom as he desires and as he is able--happy without end.
  But I do not believe that he is so inebriated by that draught as to forget me;
  since thou, O Lord, who art the draught, art mindful of us.
 Thus, then, we were comforting the unhappy Verecundus--our friendship
  untouched--reconciling him to our conversion and exhorting him to a faith fit
  for his condition (that is, to his being married). We tarried for Nebridius to
  follow us, since he was so close, and this he was just about to do when at last
  the interim ended. The days had seemed long and many because of my eagerness
  for leisure and liberty in which I might sing to thee from my inmost part, "My
  heart has said to thee, I have sought thy face; thy face, O Lord, will I
  seek."[274] 
 CHAPTER IV
 7. Finally the day came on which I was actually to be relieved from the
  professorship of rhetoric, from which I had already been released in intention.
  And it was done. And thou didst deliver my tongue as thou hadst already
  delivered my heart; and I blessed thee for it with great joy, and retired with
  my friends to the villa.[275] My books testify to what I
  got done there in writing, which was now hopefully devoted to thy service;
  though in this pause it was still as if I were panting from my exertions in the
  school of pride.[276] These were the books in which I
  engaged in dialogue with my friends, and also those in soliloquy before thee
  alone.[277] And there are my letters to Nebridius, who was
  still absent.[278]
 When would there be enough time to recount all thy great blessings which thou
  didst bestow on us in that time, especially as I am hastening on to still
  greater mercies? For my memory recalls them to me and it is pleasant to confess
  them to thee, O Lord: the inward goads by which thou didst subdue me and how
  thou broughtest me low, leveling the mountains and hills of my thoughts,
  straightening my crookedness, and smoothing my rough ways. And I remember by
  what means thou also didst subdue Alypius, my heart's brother, to the name of
  thy only Son, our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ--which he at first refused to
  have inserted in our writings. For at first he preferred that they should smell
  of the cedars of the schools[279] which the Lord hath now
  broken down, rather than of the wholesome herbs of the Church, hostile to
  serpents.[280]
 8. O my God, how did I cry to thee when I read the psalms of David, those hymns
  of faith, those paeans of devotion which leave no room for swelling pride! I
  was still a novice in thy true love, a catechumen keeping holiday at the villa,
  with Alypius, a catechumen like myself. My mother was also with us--in woman's
  garb, but with a man's faith, with the peacefulness of age and the fullness of
  motherly love and Christian piety. What cries I used to send up to thee in
  those songs, and how I was enkindled toward thee by them! I burned to sing them
  if possible, throughout the whole world, against the pride of the human race.
  And yet, indeed, they are sung throughout the whole world, and none can hide
  himself from thy heat. With what strong and bitter regret was I indignant at
  the Manicheans! Yet I also pitied them; for they were ignorant of those
  sacraments, those medicines[281]--and raved insanely
  against the cure that might have made them sane! I wished they could have been
  somewhere close by, and--without my knowledge--could have seen my face and
  heard my words when, in that time of leisure, I pored over the Fourth Psalm.
  And I wish they could have seen how that psalm affected me.[282] "When I called upon thee, O God of my righteousness,
  thou didst hear me; thou didst enlarge me when I was in distress. Have mercy
  upon me and hear my prayer." I wish they might have heard what I said in
  comment on those words--without my knowing that they heard, lest they should
  think that I was speaking it just on their account. For, indeed, I should not
  have said quite the same things, nor quite in the same way, if I had known that
  I was heard and seen by them. And if I had so spoken, they would not have meant
  the same things to them as they did to me when I spoke by and for myself before
  thee, out of the private affections of my soul.
  9. By turns I trembled with fear and warmed with hope and rejoiced in thy
  mercy, O Father. And all these feelings showed forth in my eyes and voice when
  thy good Spirit turned to us and said, "O sons of men, how long will you be
  slow of heart, how long will you love vanity, and seek after falsehood?" For I
  had loved vanity and sought after falsehood. And thou, O Lord, had already
  magnified thy Holy One, raising him from the dead and setting him at thy right
  hand, that thence he should send forth from on high his promised "Paraclete,
  the Spirit of Truth." Already he had sent him, and I knew it not. He had sent
  him because he was now magnified, rising from the dead and ascending into
  heaven. For till then "the Holy Spirit was not yet given, because Jesus was not
  yet glorified."[283] And the prophet cried out: "How long
  will you be slow of heart? How long will you love vanity, and seek after
  falsehood? Know this, that the Lord hath magnified his Holy One." He cries,
  "How long?" He cries, "Know this," and I--so long "loving vanity, and seeking
  after falsehood"--heard and trembled, because these words were spoken to such a
  one as I remembered that I myself had been. For in those phantoms which I once
  held for truth there was vanity and falsehood. And I spoke many things loudly
  and earnestly--in the contrition of my memory--which I wish they had heard, who
  still "love vanity and seek after falsehood." Perhaps they would have been
  troubled, and have vomited up their error, and thou wouldst have heard them
  when they cried to thee; for by a real death in the flesh He died for us who
  now maketh intercession for us with thee.
 10. I read on further, "Be angry, and sin not." And how deeply was I touched, O
  my God; for I had now learned to be angry with myself for the things past, so
  that in the future I might not sin. Yes, to be angry with good cause, for it
  was not another nature out of the race of darkness that had sinned for me--as
  they affirm who are not angry with themselves, and who store up for themselves
  dire wrath against the day of wrath and the revelation of thy righteous
  judgment. Nor were the good things I saw now outside me, nor were they to be
  seen with the eyes of flesh in the light of the earthly sun. For they that have
  their joys from without sink easily into emptiness and are spilled out on those
  things that are visible and temporal, and in their starving thoughts they lick
  their very shadows. If only they would grow weary with their hunger and would
  say, "Who will show us any good?" And we would answer, and they would hear, "O
  Lord, the light of thy countenance shines bright upon us." For we are not that
  Light that enlightens every man, but we are enlightened by thee, so that we who
  were formerly in darkness may now be alight in thee. If only they could behold
  the inner Light Eternal which, now that I had tasted it, I gnashed my teeth
  because I could not show it to them unless they brought me their heart in their
  eyes--their roving eyes--and said, "Who will show us any good?" But even there,
  in the inner chamber of my soul--where I was angry with myself; where I was
  inwardly pricked, where I had offered my sacrifice, slaying my old man, and
  hoping in thee with the new resolve of a new life with my trust laid in
  thee--even there thou hadst begun to grow sweet to me and to "put gladness in
  my heart." And thus as I read all this, I cried aloud and felt its inward
  meaning. Nor did I wish to be increased in worldly goods which are wasted by
  time, for now I possessed, in thy eternal simplicity, other corn and wine and
  oil.
 11. And with a loud cry from my heart, I read the following verse: "Oh, in
  peace! Oh, in the Selfsame!"[284] See how he says it: "I
  will lay me down and take my rest."[285] For who shall
  withstand us when the truth of this saying that is written is made manifest:
  "Death is swallowed up in victory"[286]? For surely thou,
  who dost not change, art the Selfsame, and in thee is rest and oblivion to all
  distress. There is none other beside thee, nor are we to toil for those many
  things which are not thee, for only thou, O Lord, makest me to dwell in
  hope."
 These things I read and was enkindled--but still I could not discover what to
  do with those deaf and dead Manicheans to whom I myself had belonged; for I had
  been a bitter and blind reviler against these writings, honeyed with the honey
  of heaven and luminous with thy light. And I was sorely grieved at these
  enemies of this Scripture.
 12. When shall I call to mind all that happened during those holidays? I have
  not forgotten them; nor will I be silent about the severity of thy scourge, and
  the amazing quickness of thy mercy. During that time thou didst torture me with
  a toothache; and when it had become so acute that I was not able to speak, it
  came into my heart to urge all my friends who were present to pray for me to
  thee, the God of all health. And I wrote it down on the tablet and gave it to
  them to read. Presently, as we bowed our knees in supplication, the pain was
  gone. But what pain? How did it go? I confess that I was terrified, O Lord my
  God, because from my earliest years I had never experienced such pain. And thy
  purposes were profoundly impressed upon me; and rejoicing in faith, I praised
  thy name. But that faith allowed me no rest in respect of my past sins, which
  were not yet forgiven me through thy baptism. 
 CHAPTER V
 13. Now that the vintage vacation was ended, I gave notice to the citizens of
  Milan that they might provide their scholars with another word-merchant. I gave
  as my reasons my determination to serve thee and also my insufficiency for the
  task, because of the difficulty in breathing and the pain in my chest.
 And by letters I notified thy bishop, the holy man Ambrose, of my former errors
  and my present resolution. And I asked his advice as to which of thy books it
  was best for me to read so that I might be the more ready and fit for the
  reception of so great a grace. He recommended Isaiah the prophet; and I believe
  it was because Isaiah foreshows more clearly than others the gospel, and the
  calling of the Gentiles. But because I could not understand the first part and
  because I imagined the rest to be like it, I laid it aside with the intention
  of taking it up again later, when better practiced in our Lord's words.  
 CHAPTER VI
 14. When the time arrived for me to give in my name, we left the country and
  returned to Milan. Alypius also resolved to be born again in thee at the same
  time. He was already clothed with the humility that befits thy sacraments, and
  was so brave a tamer of his body that he would walk the frozen Italian soil
  with his naked feet, which called for unusual fortitude. We took with us the
  boy Adeodatus, my son after the flesh, the offspring of my sin. Thou hadst made
  of him a noble lad. He was barely fifteen years old, but his intelligence
  excelled that of many grave and learned men. I confess to thee thy gifts, O
  Lord my God, creator of all, who hast power to reform our deformities--for
  there was nothing of me in that boy but the sin. For it was thou who didst
  inspire us to foster him in thy discipline, and none other--thy gifts I confess
  to thee. There is a book of mine, entitled De Magistro.[287] It is a dialogue between Adeodatus and me, and thou
  knowest that all things there put into the mouth of my interlocutor are his,
  though he was then only in his sixteenth year. Many other gifts even more
  wonderful I found in him. His talent was a source of awe to me. And who but
  thou couldst be the worker of such marvels? And thou didst quickly remove his
  life from the earth, and even now I recall him to mind with a sense of
  security, because I fear nothing for his childhood or youth, nor for his whole
  career. We took him for our companion, as if he were the same age in grace with
  ourselves, to be trained with ourselves in thy discipline. And so we were
  baptized and the anxiety about our past life left us.
 Nor did I ever have enough in those days of the wondrous sweetness of
  meditating on the depth of thy counsels concerning the salvation of the human
  race. How freely did I weep in thy hymns and canticles; how deeply was I moved
  by the voices of thy sweet-speaking Church! The voices flowed into my ears; and
  the truth was poured forth into my heart, where the tide of my devotion
  overflowed, and my tears ran down, and I was happy in all these things. 
 CHAPTER VII
 15. The church of Milan had only recently begun to employ this mode of
  consolation and exaltation with all the brethren singing together with great
  earnestness of voice and heart. For it was only about a year--not much
  more--since Justina, the mother of the boy-emperor Valentinian, had persecuted
  thy servant Ambrose on behalf of her heresy, in which she had been seduced by
  the Arians. The devoted people kept guard in the church, prepared to die with
  their bishop, thy servant. Among them my mother, thy handmaid, taking a leading
  part in those anxieties and vigils, lived there in prayer. And even though we
  were still not wholly melted by the heat of thy Spirit, we were nevertheless
  excited by the alarmed and disturbed city.
 This was the time that the custom began, after the manner of the Eastern
  Church, that hymns and psalms should be sung, so that the people would not be
  worn out with the tedium of lamentation. This custom, retained from then till
  now, has been imitated by many, indeed, by almost all thy congregations
  throughout the rest of the world.[288]
 16. Then by a vision thou madest known to thy renowned bishop the spot where
  lay the bodies of Gervasius and Protasius, the martyrs, whom thou hadst
  preserved uncorrupted for so many years in thy secret storehouse, so that thou
  mightest produce them at a fit time to check a woman's fury--a woman indeed,
  but also a queen! When they were discovered and dug up and brought with due
  honor to the basilica of Ambrose, as they were borne along the road many who
  were troubled by unclean spirits--the devils confessing themselves--were
  healed. And there was also a certain man, a well-known citizen of the city,
  blind many years, who, when he had asked and learned the reason for the
  people's tumultuous joy, rushed out and begged his guide to lead him to the
  place. When he arrived there, he begged to be permitted to touch with his
  handkerchief the bier of thy saints, whose death is precious in thy sight. When
  he had done this, and put it to his eyes, they were immediately opened. The
  fame of all this spread abroad; from this thy glory shone more brightly. And
  also from this the mind of that angry woman, though not enlarged to the sanity
  of a full faith, was nevertheless restrained from the fury of persecution.
 Thanks to thee, O my God. Whence and whither hast thou led my memory, that I
  should confess such things as these to thee--for great as they were, I had
  forgetfully passed them over? And yet at that time, when the sweet savor of thy
  ointment was so fragrant, I did not run after thee.[289] Therefore, I wept more bitterly as I listened to thy hymns, having so long
  panted after thee. And now at length I could breathe as much as the space
  allows in this our straw house.[290]  
 CHAPTER VIII 
 17. Thou, O Lord, who makest men of one mind to dwell in a single house, also
  broughtest Evodius to join our company. He was a young man of our city, who,
  while serving as a secret service agent, was converted to thee and baptized
  before us. He had relinquished his secular service, and prepared himself for
  thine. We were together, and we were resolved to live together in our devout
  purpose. 
 We cast about for some place where we might be most useful in our service to
  thee, and had planned on going back together to Africa. And when we had got as
  far as Ostia on the Tiber, my mother died. 
 I am passing over many things, for I must hasten. Receive, O my God, my
  confessions and thanksgiving for the unnumbered things about which I am silent.
  But I will not omit anything my mind has brought back concerning thy handmaid
  who brought me forth--in her flesh, that I might be born into this world's
  light, and in her heart, that I might be born to life eternal. I will not speak
  of her gifts, but of thy gift in her; for she neither made herself nor trained
  herself. Thou didst create her, and neither her father nor her mother knew what
  kind of being was to come forth from them. And it was the rod of thy Christ,
  the discipline of thy only Son, that trained her in thy fear, in the house of
  one of thy faithful ones who was a sound member of thy Church. Yet my mother
  did not attribute this good training of hers as much to the diligence of her
  own mother as to that of a certain elderly maidservant who had nursed her
  father, carrying him around on her back, as big girls carried babies. Because
  of her long-time service and also because of her extreme age and excellent
  character, she was much respected by the heads of that Christian household. The
  care of her master's daughters was also committed to her, and she performed her
  task with diligence. She was quite earnest in restraining them with a holy
  severity when necessary and instructing them with a sober sagacity. Thus,
  except at mealtimes at their parents' table--when they were fed very
  temperately--she would not allow them to drink even water, however parched they
  were with thirst. In this way she took precautions against an evil custom and
  added the wholesome advice: "You drink water now only because you don't control
  the wine; but when you are married and mistresses of pantry and cellar, you may
  not care for water, but the habit of drinking will be fixed." By such a method
  of instruction, and her authority, she restrained the longing of their tender
  age, and regulated even the thirst of the girls to such a decorous control that
  they no longer wanted what they ought not to have.
 18. And yet, as thy handmaid related to me, her son, there had stolen upon her
  a love of wine. For, in the ordinary course of things, when her parents sent
  her as a sober maiden to draw wine from the cask, she would hold a cup under
  the tap; and then, before she poured the wine into the bottle, she would wet
  the tips of her lips with a little of it, for more than this her taste refused.
  She did not do this out of any craving for drink, but out of the overflowing
  buoyancy of her time of life, which bubbles up with sportiveness and youthful
  spirits, but is usually borne down by the gravity of the old folks. And so,
  adding daily a little to that little--for "he that contemns small things shall
  fall by a little here and a little there"[291]--she
  slipped into such a habit as to drink off eagerly her little cup nearly full of
  wine.
 Where now was that wise old woman and her strict prohibition? Could anything
  prevail against our secret disease if thy medicine, O Lord, did not watch over
  us? Though father and mother and nurturers are absent, thou art present, who
  dost create, who callest, and who also workest some good for our salvation,
  through those who are set over us. What didst thou do at that time, O my God?
  How didst thou heal her? How didst thou make her whole? Didst thou not bring
  forth from another woman's soul a hard and bitter insult, like a surgeon's
  knife from thy secret store, and with one thrust drain off all that
  putrefaction? For the slave girl who used to accompany her to the cellar fell
  to quarreling with her little mistress, as it sometimes happened when she was
  alone with her, and cast in her teeth this vice of hers, along with a very
  bitter insult: calling her "a drunkard." Stung by this taunt, my mother saw her
  own vileness and immediately condemned and renounced it.
 As the flattery of friends corrupts, so often do the taunts of enemies
  instruct. Yet thou repayest them, not for the good thou workest through their
  means, but for the malice they intended. That angry slave girl wanted to
  infuriate her young mistress, not to cure her; and that is why she spoke up
  when they were alone. Or perhaps it was because their quarrel just happened to
  break out at that time and place; or perhaps she was afraid of punishment for
  having told of it so late.
 But thou, O Lord, ruler of heaven and earth, who changest to thy purposes the
  deepest floods and controls the turbulent tide of the ages, thou healest one
  soul by the unsoundness of another; so that no man, when he hears of such a
  happening, should attribute it to his own power if another person whom he
  wishes to reform is reformed through a word of his. 
 CHAPTER IX
 19. Thus modestly and soberly brought up, she was made subject to her parents
  by thee, rather more than by her parents to thee. She arrived at a marriageable
  age, and she was given to a husband whom she served as her lord. And she busied
  herself to gain him to thee, preaching thee to him by her behavior, in which
  thou madest her fair and reverently amiable, and admirable to her husband. For
  she endured with patience his infidelity and never had any dissension with her
  husband on this account. For she waited for thy mercy upon him until, by
  believing in thee, he might become chaste.
 Moreover, even though he was earnest in friendship, he was also violent in
  anger; but she had learned that an angry husband should not be resisted, either
  in deed or in word. But as soon as he had grown calm and was tranquil, and she
  saw a fitting moment, she would give him a reason for her conduct, if he had
  been excited unreasonably. As a result, while many matrons whose husbands were
  more gentle than hers bore the marks of blows on their disfigured faces, and
  would in private talk blame the behavior of their husbands, she would blame
  their tongues, admonishing them seriously--though in a jesting manner--that
  from the hour they heard what are called the matrimonial tablets read to them,
  they should think of them as instruments by which they were made servants. So,
  always being mindful of their condition, they ought not to set themselves up in
  opposition to their lords. And, knowing what a furious, bad-tempered husband
  she endured, they marveled that it had never been rumored, nor was there any
  mark to show, that Patricius had ever beaten his wife, or that there had been
  any domestic strife between them, even for a day. And when they asked her
  confidentially the reason for this, she taught them the rule I have mentioned.
  Those who observed it confirmed the wisdom of it and rejoiced; those who did
  not observe it were bullied and vexed.
  20. Even her mother-in-law, who was at first prejudiced against her by the
  whisperings of malicious servants, she conquered by submission, persevering in
  it with patience and meekness; with the result that the mother-in-law told her
  son of the tales of the meddling servants which had disturbed the domestic
  peace between herself and her daughter-in-law and begged him to punish them for
  it. In conformity with his mother's wish, and in the interest of family
  discipline to insure the future harmony of its members, he had those servants
  beaten who were pointed out by her who had discovered them; and she promised a
  similar reward to anyone else who, thinking to please her, should say anything
  evil of her daughter-in-law. After this no one dared to do so, and they lived
  together with a wonderful sweetness of mutual good will.
 21. This other great gift thou also didst bestow, O my God, my Mercy, upon that
  good handmaid of thine, in whose womb thou didst create me. It was that
  whenever she could she acted as a peacemaker between any differing and
  discordant spirits, and when she heard very bitter things on either side of a
  controversy--the kind of bloated and undigested discord which often belches
  forth bitter words, when crude malice is breathed out by sharp tongues to a
  present friend against an absent enemy--she would disclose nothing about the
  one to the other except what might serve toward their reconciliation. This
  might seem a small good to me if I did not know to my sorrow countless persons
  who, through the horrid and far-spreading infection of sin, not only repeat to
  enemies mutually enraged things said in passion against each other, but also
  add some things that were never said at all. It ought not to be enough in a
  truly humane man merely not to incite or increase the enmities of men by
  evil-speaking; he ought likewise to endeavor by kind words to extinguish them.
  Such a one was she--and thou, her most intimate instructor, didst teach her in
  the school of her heart. 
 22. Finally, her own husband, now toward the end of his earthly existence, she
  won over to thee. Henceforth, she had no cause to complain of unfaithfulness in
  him, which she had endured before he became one of the faithful. She was also
  the servant of thy servants. All those who knew her greatly praised, honored,
  and loved thee in her because, through the witness of the fruits of a holy
  life, they recognized thee present in her heart. For she had "been the wife of
  one man,"[292] had honored her parents, had guided her
  house in piety, was highly reputed for good works, and brought up her children,
  travailing in labor with them as often as she saw them swerving from thee.
  Lastly, to all of us, O Lord--since of thy favor thou allowest thy servants to
  speak--to all of us who lived together in that association before her death in
  thee she devoted such care as she might have if she had been mother of us all;
  she served us as if she had been the daughter of us all. 
 CHAPTER X
 23. As the day now approached on which she was to depart this life--a day which
  thou knewest, but which we did not--it happened (though I believe it was by thy
  secret ways arranged) that she and I stood alone, leaning in a certain window
  from which the garden of the house we occupied at Ostia could be seen. Here in
  this place, removed from the crowd, we were resting ourselves for the voyage
  after the fatigues of a long journey.
 We were conversing alone very pleasantly and "forgetting those things which are
  past, and reaching forward toward those things which are future."[293] We were in the present--and in the presence of Truth
  (which thou art)--discussing together what is the nature of the eternal life of
  the saints: which eye has not seen, nor ear heard, neither has entered into the
  heart of man.[294] We opened wide the mouth of our heart,
  thirsting for those supernal streams of thy fountain, "the fountain of life"
  which is with thee,[295] that we might be sprinkled with
  its waters according to our capacity and might in some measure weigh the truth
  of so profound a mystery.
 24. And when our conversation had brought us to the point where the very
  highest of physical sense and the most intense illumination of physical light
  seemed, in comparison with the sweetness of that life to come, not worthy of
  comparison, nor even of mention, we lifted ourselves with a more ardent love
  toward the Selfsame,[296] and we gradually passed through
  all the levels of bodily objects, and even through the heaven itself, where the
  sun and moon and stars shine on the earth. Indeed, we soared higher yet by an
  inner musing, speaking and marveling at thy works.
 And we came at last to our own minds and went beyond them, that we might climb
  as high as that region of unfailing plenty where thou feedest Israel forever
  with the food of truth, where life is that Wisdom by whom all things are made,
  both which have been and which are to be. Wisdom is not made, but is as she has
  been and forever shall be; for "to have been" and "to be hereafter" do not
  apply to her, but only "to be," because she is eternal and "to have been" and
  "to be hereafter" are not eternal.
 And while we were thus speaking and straining after her, we just barely touched
  her with the whole effort of our hearts. Then with a sigh, leaving the first
  fruits of the Spirit bound to that ecstasy, we returned to the sounds of our
  own tongue, where the spoken word had both beginning and end.[297] But what is like to thy Word, our Lord, who remaineth
  in himself without becoming old, and "makes all things new"[298]?
 25. What we said went something like this: "If to any man the tumult of the
  flesh were silenced; and the phantoms of earth and waters and air were
  silenced; and the poles were silent as well; indeed, if the very soul grew
  silent to herself, and went beyond herself by not thinking of herself; if
  fancies and imaginary revelations were silenced; if every tongue and every sign
  and every transient thing--for actually if any man could hear them, all these
  would say, `We did not create ourselves, but were created by Him who abides
  forever'--and if, having uttered this, they too should be silent, having
  stirred our ears to hear him who created them; and if then he alone spoke, not
  through them but by himself, that we might hear his word, not in fleshly tongue
  or angelic voice, nor sound of thunder, nor the obscurity of a parable, but
  might hear him--him for whose sake we love these things--if we could hear him
  without these, as we two now strained ourselves to do, we then with rapid
  thought might touch on that Eternal Wisdom which abides over all. And if this
  could be sustained, and other visions of a far different kind be taken away,
  and this one should so ravish and absorb and envelop its beholder in these
  inward joys that his life might be eternally like that one moment of knowledge
  which we now sighed after--would not this be the reality of the saying,
  `Enter into the joy of thy Lord'[299]? But when shall such
  a thing be? Shall it not be `when we all shall rise again,' and shall it not be
  that `all things will be changed'[300]?"
 26. Such a thought I was expressing, and if not in this manner and in these
  words, still, O Lord, thou knowest that on that day we were talking thus and
  that this world, with all its joys, seemed cheap to us even as we spoke. Then
  my mother said: "Son, for myself I have no longer any pleasure in anything in
  this life. Now that my hopes in this world are satisfied, I do not know what
  more I want here or why I am here. There was indeed one thing for which I
  wished to tarry a little in this life, and that was that I might see you a
  Catholic Christian before I died. My God hath answered this more than
  abundantly, so that I see you now made his servant and spurning all earthly
  happiness. What more am I to do here?"  
 CHAPTER XI
 27. I do not well remember what reply I made to her about this. However, it was
  scarcely five days later--certainly not much more--that she was prostrated by
  fever. While she was sick, she fainted one day and was for a short time quite
  unconscious. We hurried to her, and when she soon regained her senses, she
  looked at me and my brother[301] as we stood by her, and
  said, in inquiry, "Where was I?" Then looking intently at us, dumb in our
  grief, she said, "Here in this place shall you bury your mother." I was silent
  and held back my tears; but my brother said something, wishing her the happier
  lot of dying in her own country and not abroad. When she heard this, she fixed
  him with her eye and an anxious countenance, because he savored of such earthly
  concerns, and then gazing at me she said, "See how he speaks." Soon after, she
  said to us both: "Lay this body anywhere, and do not let the care of it be a
  trouble to you at all. Only this I ask: that you will remember me at the Lord's
  altar, wherever you are." And when she had expressed her wish in such words as
  she could, she fell silent, in heavy pain with her increasing sickness.
 28. But as I thought about thy gifts, O invisible God, which thou plantest in
  the heart of thy faithful ones, from which such marvelous fruits spring up, I
  rejoiced and gave thanks to thee, remembering what I had known of how she had
  always been much concerned about her burial place, which she had provided and
  prepared for herself by the body of her husband. For as they had lived very
  peacefully together, her desire had always been--so little is the human mind
  capable of grasping things divine--that this last should be added to all that
  happiness, and commented on by others: that, after her pilgrimage beyond the
  sea, it would be granted her that the two of them, so united on earth, should
  lie in the same grave.
 When this vanity, through the bounty of thy goodness, had begun to be no longer
  in her heart, I do not know; but I joyfully marveled at what she had thus
  disclosed to me--though indeed in our conversation in the window, when she
  said, "What is there here for me to do any more?" she appeared not to desire to
  die in her own country. I heard later on that, during our stay in Ostia, she
  had been talking in maternal confidence to some of my friends about her
  contempt of this life and the blessing of death. When they were amazed at the
  courage which was given her, a woman, and had asked her whether she did not
  dread having her body buried so far from her own city, she replied: "Nothing is
  far from God. I do not fear that, at the end of time, he should not know the
  place whence he is to resurrect me." And so on the ninth day of her sickness,
  in the fifty-sixth year of her life and the thirty-third of mine,[302] that religious and devout soul was set loose from the
  body. 
 CHAPTER XII
 29. I closed her eyes; and there flowed in a great sadness on my heart and it
  was passing into tears, when at the strong behest of my mind my eyes sucked
  back the fountain dry, and sorrow was in me like a convulsion. As soon as she
  breathed her last, the boy Adeodatus burst out wailing; but he was checked by
  us all, and became quiet. Likewise, my own childish feeling which was, through
  the youthful voice of my heart, seeking escape in tears, was held back and
  silenced. For we did not consider it fitting to celebrate that death with
  tearful wails and groanings. This is the way those who die unhappy or are
  altogether dead are usually mourned. But she neither died unhappy nor did she
  altogether die.[303] For of this we were assured by the
  witness of her good life, her "faith unfeigned,"[304] and
  other manifest evidence.
 30. What was it, then, that hurt me so grievously in my heart except the newly
  made wound, caused from having the sweet and dear habit of living together with
  her suddenly broken? I was full of joy because of her testimony in her last
  illness, when she praised my dutiful attention and called me kind, and recalled
  with great affection of love that she had never heard any harsh or reproachful
  sound from my mouth against her. But yet, O my God who made us, how can that
  honor I paid her be compared with her service to me? I was then left destitute
  of a great comfort in her, and my soul was stricken; and that life was torn
  apart, as it were, which had been made but one out of hers and mine together.[305]
 31. When the boy was restrained from weeping, Evodius took up the Psalter and
  began to sing, with the whole household responding, the psalm, "I will sing of
  mercy and judgment unto thee, O Lord."[306] And when they
  heard what we were doing, many of the brethren and religious women came
  together. And while those whose office it was to prepare for the funeral went
  about their task according to custom, I discoursed in another part of the
  house, with those who thought I should not be left alone, on what was
  appropriate to the occasion. By this balm of truth, I softened the anguish
  known to thee. They were unconscious of it and listened intently and thought me
  free of any sense of sorrow. But in thy ears, where none of them heard, I
  reproached myself for the mildness of my feelings, and restrained the flow of
  my grief which bowed a little to my will. The paroxysm returned again, and I
  knew what I repressed in my heart, even though it did not make me burst forth
  into tears or even change my countenance; and I was greatly annoyed that these
  human things had such power over me, which in the due order and destiny of our
  natural condition must of necessity happen. And so with a new sorrow I sorrowed
  for my sorrow and was wasted with a twofold sadness.
 32. So, when the body was carried forth, we both went and returned without
  tears. For neither in those prayers which we poured forth to thee, when the
  sacrifice of our redemption was offered up to thee for her--with the body
  placed by the side of the grave as the custom is there, before it is lowered
  down into it--neither in those prayers did I weep. But I was most grievously
  sad in secret all the day, and with a troubled mind entreated thee, as I could,
  to heal my sorrow; but thou didst not. I now believe that thou wast fixing in
  my memory, by this one lesson, the power of the bonds of all habit, even on a
  mind which now no longer feeds upon deception. It then occurred to me that it
  would be a good thing to go and bathe, for I had heard that the word for bath
  [balneum] took its name from the Greek balaneion [[[beta]][[alpha]][[lambda]][[alpha]][[nu]][[epsilon]][[iota]][[omicron]][[nu]]]
  because it washes anxiety from the mind. Now see, this also I confess to thy
  mercy, "O Father of the fatherless"[307]: I bathed and
  felt the same as I had done before. For the bitterness of my grief was not
  sweated from my heart.
 Then I slept, and when I awoke I found my grief not a little assuaged. And as I
  lay there on my bed, those true verses of Ambrose came to my mind, for thou art
  truly, 
 "Deus, creator omnium, 
 Polique rector, vestiens 
 Diem decoro lumine, 
 Noctem sopora gratia;
 Artus solutos ut quies 
 Reddat laboris usui 
 Mentesque fessas allevet, 
 Luctusque solvat anxios." 
 "O God, Creator of us all, 
 Guiding the orbs celestial, 
 Clothing the day with lovely light, 
 Appointing gracious sleep by night: 
 Thy grace our wearied limbs restore
 To strengthened labor, as before,
 And ease the grief of tired minds
 From that deep torment which it finds."[308] 
 33. And then, little by little, there came back to me my former memories of thy
  handmaid: her devout life toward thee, her holy tenderness and attentiveness
  toward us, which had suddenly been taken away from me--and it was a solace for
  me to weep in thy sight, for her and for myself, about her and about myself.
  Thus I set free the tears which before I repressed, that they might flow at
  will, spreading them out as a pillow beneath my heart. And it rested on them,
  for thy ears were near me--not those of a man, who would have made a scornful
  comment about my weeping. But now in writing I confess it to thee, O Lord! Read
  it who will, and comment how he will, and if he finds me to have sinned in
  weeping for my mother for part of an hour--that mother who was for a while dead
  to my eyes, who had for many years wept for me that I might live in thy
  eyes--let him not laugh at me; but if he be a man of generous love, let him
  weep for my sins against thee, the Father of all the brethren of thy Christ.  
 CHAPTER XIII
 34. Now that my heart is healed of that wound--so far as it can be charged
  against me as a carnal affection--I pour out to thee, O our God, on behalf of
  thy handmaid, tears of a very different sort: those which flow from a spirit
  broken by the thoughts of the dangers of every soul that dies in Adam. And
  while she had been "made alive" in Christ[309] even before
  she was freed from the flesh, and had so lived as to praise thy name both by
  her faith and by her life, yet I would not dare say that from the time thou
  didst regenerate her by baptism no word came out of her mouth against thy
  precepts. But it has been declared by thy Son, the Truth, that "whosoever shall
  say to his brother, You fool, shall be in danger of hell-fire."[310] And there would be doom even for the life of a
  praiseworthy man if thou judgedst it with thy mercy set aside. But since thou
  dost not so stringently inquire after our sins, we hope with confidence to find
  some place in thy presence. But whoever recounts his actual and true merits to
  thee, what is he doing but recounting to thee thy own gifts? Oh, if only men
  would know themselves as men, then "he that glories" would "glory in the
  Lord"[311]!
 35. Thus now, O my Praise and my Life, O God of my heart, forgetting for a
  little her good deeds for which I give joyful thanks to thee, I now beseech
  thee for the sins of my mother. Hearken unto me, through that Medicine of our
  wounds, who didst hang upon the tree and who sittest at thy right hand "making
  intercession for us."[312] I know that she acted in mercy,
  and from the heart forgave her debtors their debts.[313] I
  beseech thee also to forgive her debts, whatever she contracted during so many
  years since the water of salvation. Forgive her, O Lord, forgive her, I beseech
  thee; "enter not into judgment" with her.[314] Let thy
  mercy be exalted above thy justice, for thy words are true and thou hast
  promised mercy to the merciful, that the merciful shall obtain mercy.[315] This is thy gift, who hast mercy on whom thou wilt and
  who wilt have compassion on whom thou dost have compassion on.[316]
 36. Indeed, I believe thou hast already done what I ask of thee, but "accept
  the freewill offerings of my mouth, O Lord."[317] For when
  the day of her dissolution was so close, she took no thought to have her body
  sumptuously wrapped or embalmed with spices. Nor did she covet a handsome
  monument, or even care to be buried in her own country. About these things she
  gave no commands at all, but only desired to have her name remembered at thy
  altar, where she had served without the omission of a single day, and where she
  knew that the holy sacrifice was dispensed by which that handwriting that was
  against us is blotted out; and that enemy vanquished who, when he summed up our
  offenses and searched for something to bring against us, could find nothing in
  Him, in whom we conquer.
 Who will restore to him the innocent blood? Who will repay him the price with
  which he bought us, so as to take us from him? Thus to the sacrament of our
  redemption did thy hand maid bind her soul by the bond of faith. Let none
  separate her from thy protection. Let not the "lion" and "dragon" bar her way
  by force or fraud. For she will not reply that she owes nothing, lest she be
  convicted and duped by that cunning deceiver. Rather, she will answer that her
  sins are forgiven by Him to whom no one is able to repay the price which he,
  who owed us nothing, laid down for us all. 
 37. Therefore, let her rest in peace with her husband, before and after whom
  she was married to no other man; whom she obeyed with patience, bringing fruit
  to thee that she might also win him for thee. And inspire, O my Lord my God,
  inspire thy servants, my brothers; thy sons, my masters, who with voice and
  heart and writings I serve, that as many of them as shall read these
  confessions may also at thy altar remember Monica, thy handmaid, together with
  Patricius, once her husband; by whose flesh thou didst bring me into this life,
  in a manner I know not. May they with pious affection remember my parents in
  this transitory life, and remember my brothers under thee our Father in our
  Catholic mother; and remember my fellow citizens in the eternal Jerusalem, for
  which thy people sigh in their pilgrimage from birth until their return. So be
  fulfilled what my mother desired of me--more richly in the prayers of so many
  gained for her through these confessions of mine than by my prayers alone. 
  
BOOK TEN
From autobiography to self-analysis. Augustine turns from his
  memories of the past to the inner mysteries of memory itself. In doing so, he
  reviews his motives for these written "confessions," and seeks to chart the
  path by which men come to God. But this brings him into the intricate analysis
  of memory and its relation to the self and its powers. This done, he explores
  the meaning and mode of true prayer. In conclusion, he undertakes a detailed
  analysis of appetite and the temptations to which the flesh and the soul are
  heirs, and comes finally to see how necessary and right it was for the Mediator
  between God and man to have been the God-Man.
 CHAPTER I
 1. Let me know thee, O my Knower; let me know thee even as I am known.[318] O Strength of my soul, enter it and prepare it for
  thyself that thou mayest have and hold it, without "spot or blemish."[319] This is my hope, therefore have I spoken; and in this
  hope I rejoice whenever I rejoice aright. But as for the other things of this
  life, they deserve our lamentations less, the more we lament them; and some
  should be lamented all the more, the less men care for them. For see, "Thou
  desirest truth"[320] and "he who does the truth comes to
  the light."[321] This is what I wish to do through
  confession in my heart before thee, and in my writings before many witnesses. 
 CHAPTER II
 2. And what is there in me that could be hidden from thee, Lord, to whose eyes
  the abysses of man's conscience are naked, even if I were unwilling to confess
  it to thee? In doing so I would only hide thee from myself, not myself from
  thee. But now that my groaning is witness to the fact that I am dissatisfied
  with myself, thou shinest forth and satisfiest. Thou art beloved and desired;
  so that I blush for myself, and renounce myself and choose thee, for I can
  neither please thee nor myself except in thee. To thee, then, O Lord, I am laid
  bare, whatever I am, and I have already said with what profit I may confess to
  thee. I do not do it with words and sounds of the flesh but with the words of
  the soul, and with the sound of my thoughts, which thy ear knows. For when I am
  wicked, to confess to thee means nothing less than to be dissatisfied with
  myself; but when I am truly devout, it means nothing less than not to attribute
  my virtue to myself; because thou, O Lord, blessest the righteous, but first
  thou justifiest him while he is yet ungodly. My confession therefore, O my God,
  is made unto thee silently in thy sight--and yet not silently. As far as sound
  is concerned, it is silent. But in strong affection it cries aloud. For neither
  do I give voice to something that sounds right to men, which thou hast not
  heard from me before, nor dost thou hear anything of the kind from me which
  thou didst not first say to me. 
 CHAPTER III
 3. What is it to me that men should hear my confessions as if it were they who
  were going to cure all my infirmities? People are curious to know the lives of
  others, but slow to correct their own. Why are they anxious to hear from me
  what I am, when they are unwilling to hear from thee what they are? And how can
  they tell when they hear what I say about myself whether I speak the truth,
  since no man knows what is in a man "save the spirit of man which is in him"[322]? But if they were to hear from thee something
  concerning themselves, they would not be able to say, "The Lord is lying." For
  what does it mean to hear from thee about themselves but to know themselves?
  And who is he that knows himself and says, "This is false," unless he himself
  is lying? But, because "love believes all things"[323]--at
  least among those who are bound together in love by its bonds--I confess to
  thee, O Lord, so that men may also hear; for if I cannot prove to them that I
  confess the truth, yet those whose ears love opens to me will believe me.
 4. But wilt thou, O my inner Physician, make clear to me what profit I am to
  gain in doing this? For the confessions of my past sins (which thou hast
  "forgiven and covered"[324] that thou mightest make me
  blessed in thee, transforming my soul by faith and thy sacrament), when they are read and heard, may stir up the heart so that it will stop
  dozing along in despair, saying, "I cannot"; but will instead awake in the love
  of thy mercy and the sweetness of thy grace, by which he that is weak is
  strong, provided he is made conscious of his own weakness. And it will please
  those who are good to hear about the past errors of those who are now freed
  from them. And they will take delight, not because they are errors, but because
  they were and are so no longer. What profit, then, O Lord my God--to whom my
  conscience makes her daily confession, far more confident in the hope of thy
  mercy than in her own innocence--what profit is there, I ask thee, in
  confessing to men in thy presence, through this book, both what I am now as
  well as what I have been? For I have seen and spoken of my harvest of things
  past. But what am I now, at this very moment of making my confessions?
  Many different people desire to know, both those who know me and those who do
  not know me. Some have heard about me or from me, but their ear is not close to
  my heart, where I am whatever it is that I am. They have the desire to hear me
  confess what I am within, where they can neither extend eye nor ear nor mind.
  They desire as those willing to believe--but will they understand? For the love
  by which they are good tells them that I am not lying in my confessions, and
  the love in them believes me.  
 CHAPTER IV
 5. But for what profit do they desire this? Will they wish me happiness when
  they learn how near I have approached thee, by thy gifts? And will they pray
  for me when they learn how much I am still kept back by my own weight? To such
  as these I will declare myself. For it is no small profit, O Lord my God, that
  many people should give thanks to thee on my account and that many should
  entreat thee for my sake. Let the brotherly soul love in me what thou teachest
  him should be loved, and let him lament in me what thou teachest him should be
  lamented. Let it be the soul of a brother that does this, and not a
  stranger--not one of those "strange children, whose mouth speaks vanity, and
  whose right hand is the right hand of falsehood."[325] But
  let my brother do it who, when he approves of me, rejoices for me, but when he
  disapproves of me is sorry for me; because whether he approves or disapproves,
  he loves me. To such I will declare myself. Let them be refreshed by my good
  deeds and sigh over my evil ones. My good deeds are thy acts and thy gifts; my
  evil ones are my own faults and thy judgment. Let them breathe expansively at
  the one and sigh over the other. And let hymns and tears ascend in thy sight
  out of their brotherly hearts--which are thy censers.[326] And, O Lord, who takest delight in the incense of thy holy temple, have mercy
  upon me according to thy great mercy, for thy name's sake. And do not, on any
  account whatever, abandon what thou hast begun in me. Go on, rather, to
  complete what is yet imperfect in me.
 6. This, then, is the fruit of my confessions (not of what I was, but of what I
  am), that I may not confess this before thee alone, in a secret exultation with
  trembling and a secret sorrow with hope, but also in the ears of the believing
  sons of men--who are the companions of my joy and sharers of my mortality, my
  fellow citizens and fellow pilgrims--those who have gone before and those who
  are to follow after, as well as the comrades of my present way. These are thy
  servants, my brothers, whom thou desirest to be thy sons. They are my masters,
  whom thou hast commanded me to serve if I desire to live with and in thee. But
  this thy Word would mean little to me if it commanded in words alone, without
  thy prevenient action. I do this, then, both in act and word. I do this under
  thy wings, in a danger too great to risk if it were not that under thy wings my
  soul is subject to thee, and my weakness known to thee. I am insufficient, but
  my Father liveth forever, and my Defender is sufficient for me. For he is the
  Selfsame who didst beget me and who watcheth over me; thou art the Selfsame who
  art all my good. Thou art the Omnipotent, who art with me, even before I am
  with thee. To those, therefore, whom thou commandest me to serve, I will
  declare, not what I was, but what I now am and what I will continue to be. But
  I do not judge myself. Thus, therefore, let me be heard. 
 CHAPTER V
 7. For it is thou, O Lord, who judgest me. For although no man "knows the
  things of a man, save the spirit of the man which is in him,"[327] yet there is something of man which "the spirit of the
  man which is in him" does not know itself. But thou, O Lord, who madest him,
  knowest him completely. And even I--though in thy sight I despise myself and
  count myself but dust and ashes--even I know something about thee which I do
  not know about myself. And it is certain that "now we see through a glass
  darkly," not yet "face to face."[328] Therefore, as long
  as I journey away from thee, I am more present with myself than with thee. I
  know that thou canst not suffer violence, but I myself do not know what
  temptations I can resist, and what I cannot. But there is hope, because thou
  art faithful and thou wilt not allow us to be tempted beyond our ability to
  resist, but wilt with the temptation also make a way of escape that we may be
  able to bear it. I would therefore confess what I know about myself; I will
  also confess what I do not know about myself. What I do know of myself, I know
  from thy enlightening of me; and what I do not know of myself, I will continue
  not to know until the time when my "darkness is as the noonday"[329] in thy sight. 
 CHAPTER VI
 8. It is not with a doubtful consciousness, but one fully certain that I love
  thee, O Lord. Thou hast smitten my heart with thy Word, and I have loved thee.
  And see also the heaven, and earth, and all that is in them--on every side they
  tell me to love thee, and they do not cease to tell this to all men, "so that
  they are without excuse."[330] Wherefore, still more
  deeply wilt thou have mercy on whom thou wilt have mercy, and compassion on
  whom thou wilt have compassion.[331] For otherwise, both
  heaven and earth would tell abroad thy praises to deaf ears.
 But what is it that I love in loving thee? Not physical beauty, nor the
  splendor of time, nor the radiance of the light--so pleasant to our eyes--nor
  the sweet melodies of the various kinds of songs, nor the fragrant smell of
  flowers and ointments and spices; not manna and honey, not the limbs embraced
  in physical love--it is not these I love when I love my God. Yet it is true
  that I love a certain kind of light and sound and fragrance and food and
  embrace in loving my God, who is the light and sound and fragrance and food and
  embracement of my inner man--where that light shines into my soul which no
  place can contain, where time does not snatch away the lovely sound, where no
  breeze disperses the sweet fragrance, where no eating diminishes the food there
  provided, and where there is an embrace that no satiety comes to sunder. This
  is what I love when I love my God.
 9. And what is this God? I asked the earth, and it answered, "I am not he"; and
  everything in the earth made the same confession. I asked the sea and the deeps
  and the creeping things, and they replied, "We are not your God; seek above
  us." I asked the fleeting winds, and the whole air with its inhabitants
  answered, "Anaximenes[332] was deceived; I am not God." I
  asked the heavens, the sun, moon, and stars; and they answered, "Neither are we
  the God whom you seek." And I replied to all these things which stand around
  the door of my flesh: "You have told me about my God, that you are not he. Tell
  me something about him." And with a loud voice they all cried out, "He made
  us." My question had come from my observation of them, and their reply came
  from their beauty of order. And I turned my thoughts into myself and said, "Who
  are you?" And I answered, "A man." For see, there is in me both a body and a
  soul; the one without, the other within. In which of these should I have sought
  my God, whom I had already sought with my body from earth to heaven, as far as
  I was able to send those messengers--the beams of my eyes? But the inner part
  is the better part; for to it, as both ruler and judge, all these messengers of
  the senses report the answers of heaven and earth and all the things therein,
  who said, "We are not God, but he made us." My inner man knew these things
  through the ministry of the outer man, and I, the inner man, knew all this--I,
  the soul, through the senses of my body.[333] I asked the
  whole frame of earth about my God, and it answered, "I am not he, but he made
  me."
 10. Is not this beauty of form visible to all whose senses are unimpaired? Why,
  then, does it not say the same things to all? Animals, both small and great,
  see it but they are unable to interrogate its meaning, because their senses are
  not endowed with the reason that would enable them to judge the evidence which
  the senses report. But man can interrogate it, so that "the invisible things of
  him . . . are clearly seen, being understood by the things that are made."[334] But men love these created things too much; they are
  brought into subjection to them--and, as subjects, are not able to judge. None
  of these created things reply to their questioners unless they can make
  rational judgments. The creatures will not alter their voice--that is, their
  beauty of form--if one man simply sees what another both sees and questions, so
  that the world appears one way to this man and another to that. It appears the
  same way to both; but it is mute to this one and it speaks to that one. Indeed,
  it actually speaks to all, but only they understand it who compare the voice
  received from without with the truth within. For the truth says to me, "Neither
  heaven nor earth nor anybody is your God." Their very nature tells this to the
  one who beholds[335] them. "They are a mass, less in part
  than the whole." Now, O my soul, you are my better part, and to you I speak;
  since you animate the whole mass of your body, giving it life, whereas no body
  furnishes life to a body. But your God is the life of your life.  
 CHAPTER VII
 11. What is it, then, that I love when I love my God? Who is he that is beyond
  the topmost point of my soul? Yet by this very soul will I mount up to him. I
  will soar beyond that power of mine by which I am united to the body, and by
  which the whole structure of it is filled with life. Yet it is not by that
  vital power that I find my God. For then "the horse and the mule, that have no
  understanding,"[336] also might find him, since they have
  the same vital power, by which their bodies also live. But there is, besides
  the power by which I animate my body, another by which I endow my flesh with
  sense--a power that the Lord hath provided for me; commanding that the eye is
  not to hear and the ear is not to see, but that I am to see by the eye and to
  hear by the ear; and giving to each of the other senses its own proper place
  and function, through the diversity of which I, the single mind, act. I will
  soar also beyond this power of mine, for the horse and mule have this too, for
  they also perceive through their bodily senses. 
 CHAPTER VIII
 12. I will soar, then, beyond this power of my nature also, still rising by
  degrees toward him who made me. And I enter the fields and spacious halls of
  memory, where are stored as treasures the countless images that have been
  brought into them from all manner of things by the senses. There, in the
  memory, is likewise stored what we cogitate, either by enlarging or reducing
  our perceptions, or by altering one way or another those things which the
  senses have made contact with; and everything else that has been entrusted to
  it and stored up in it, which oblivion has not yet swallowed up and buried.
 When I go into this storehouse, I ask that what I want should be brought forth.
  Some things appear immediately, but others require to be searched for longer,
  and then dragged out, as it were, from some hidden recess. Other things hurry
  forth in crowds, on the other hand, and while something else is sought and
  inquired for, they leap into view as if to say, "Is it not we, perhaps?" These
  I brush away with the hand of my heart from the face of my memory, until
  finally the thing I want makes its appearance out of its secret cell. Some
  things suggest themselves without effort, and in continuous order, just as they
  are called for--the things that come first give place to those that follow, and
  in so doing are treasured up again to be forthcoming when I want them. All of
  this happens when I repeat a thing from memory.
 13. All these things, each one of which came into memory in its own particular
  way, are stored up separately and under the general categories of
  understanding. For example, light and all colors and forms of bodies came in
  through the eyes; sounds of all kinds by the ears; all smells by the passages
  of the nostrils; all flavors by the gate of the mouth; by the sensation of the
  whole body, there is brought in what is hard or soft, hot or cold, smooth or
  rough, heavy or light, whether external or internal to the body. The vast cave
  of memory, with its numerous and mysterious recesses, receives all these things
  and stores them up, to be recalled and brought forth when required. Each
  experience enters by its own door, and is stored up in the memory. And yet the
  things themselves do not enter it, but only the images of the things perceived
  are there for thought to remember. And who can tell how these images are
  formed, even if it is evident which of the senses brought which perception in
  and stored it up? For even when I am in darkness and silence I can bring out
  colors in my memory if I wish, and discern between black and white and the
  other shades as I wish; and at the same time, sounds do not break in and
  disturb what is drawn in by my eyes, and which I am considering, because the
  sounds which are also there are stored up, as it were, apart. And these too I
  can summon if I please and they are immediately present in memory. And though
  my tongue is at rest and my throat silent, yet I can sing as I will; and those
  images of color, which are as truly present as before, do not interpose
  themselves or interrupt while another treasure which had flowed in through the
  ears is being thought about. Similarly all the other things that were brought
  in and heaped up by all the other senses, I can recall at my pleasure. And I
  distinguish the scent of lilies from that of violets while actually smelling
  nothing; and I prefer honey to mead, a smooth thing to a rough, even though I
  am neither tasting nor handling them, but only remembering them. 
 14. All this I do within myself, in that huge hall of my memory. For in it,
  heaven, earth, and sea are present to me, and whatever I can cogitate about
  them--except what I have forgotten. There also I meet myself and recall
  myself[337]--what, when, or where I did a thing, and how I
  felt when I did it. There are all the things that I remember, either having
  experienced them myself or been told about them by others. Out of the same
  storehouse, with these past impressions, I can construct now this, now that,
  image of things that I either have experienced or have believed on the basis of
  experience--and from these I can further construct future actions, events, and
  hopes; and I can meditate on all these things as if they were present. "I will
  do this or that"--I say to myself in that vast recess of my mind, with its full
  store of so many and such great images--"and this or that will follow upon it."
  "O that this or that could happen!" "God prevent this or that." I speak to
  myself in this way; and when I speak, the images of what I am speaking about
  are present out of the same store of memory; and if the images were absent I
  could say nothing at all about them.
 15. Great is this power of memory, exceedingly great, O my God--a large and
  boundless inner hall! Who has plumbed the depths of it? Yet it is a power of my
  mind, and it belongs to my nature. But I do not myself grasp all that I am.
  Thus the mind is far too narrow to contain itself. But where can that part of
  it be which it does not contain? Is it outside and not in itself? How can it
  be, then, that the mind cannot grasp itself? A great marvel rises in me;
  astonishment seizes me. Men go forth to marvel at the heights of mountains and
  the huge waves of the sea, the broad flow of the rivers, the vastness of the
  ocean, the orbits of the stars, and yet they neglect to marvel at themselves.
  Nor do they wonder how it is that, when I spoke of all these things, I was not
  looking at them with my eyes--and yet I could not have spoken about them had it
  not been that I was actually seeing within, in my memory, those mountains and
  waves and rivers and stars which I have seen, and that ocean which I believe
  in--and with the same vast spaces between them as when I saw them outside me.
  But when I saw them outside me, I did not take them into me by seeing them; and
  the things themselves are not inside me, but only their images. And yet I knew
  through which physical sense each experience had made an impression on me.  
 CHAPTER IX
 16. And yet this is not all that the unlimited capacity of my memory stores up.
  In memory, there are also all that one has learned of the liberal sciences, and
  has not forgotten--removed still further, so to say, into an inner place which
  is not a place. Of these things it is not the images that are retained, but the
  things themselves. For what literature and logic are, and what I know about how
  many different kinds of questions there are--all these are stored in my memory
  as they are, so that I have not taken in the image and left the thing outside.
  It is not as though a sound had sounded and passed away like a voice heard by
  the ear which leaves a trace by which it can be called into memory again, as if
  it were still sounding in mind while it did so no longer outside. Nor is it the
  same as an odor which, even after it has passed and vanished into the wind,
  affects the sense of smell--which then conveys into the memory the image of the smell which is what we recall and re-create; or like food which, once in
  the belly, surely now has no taste and yet does have a kind of taste in the
  memory; or like anything that is felt by the body through the sense of touch,
  which still remains as an image in the memory after the external object is
  removed. For these things themselves are not put into the memory. Only the
  images of them are gathered with a marvelous quickness and stored, as it were,
  in the most wonderful filing system, and are thence produced in a marvelous way
  by the act of remembering. 
 CHAPTER X
 17. But now when I hear that there are three kinds of questions--"Whether a
  thing is? What it is? Of what kind it is?"--I do indeed retain the images of
  the sounds of which these words are composed and I know that those sounds pass
  through the air with a noise and now no longer exist. But the things themselves
  which were signified by those sounds I never could reach by any sense of the
  body nor see them at all except by my mind. And what I have stored in my memory
  was not their signs, but the things signified.
 How they got into me, let them tell who can. For I examine all the gates of my
  flesh, but I cannot find the door by which any of them entered. For the eyes
  say, "If they were colored, we reported that." The ears say, "If they gave any
  sound, we gave notice of that." The nostrils say, "If they smell, they passed
  in by us." The sense of taste says, "If they have no flavor, don't ask me about
  them." The sense of touch says, "If it had no bodily mass, I did not touch it,
  and if I never touched it, I gave no report about it."
 Whence and how did these things enter into my memory? I do not know. For when I
  first learned them, it was not that I believed them on the credit of another
  man's mind, but I recognized them in my own; and I saw them as true, took them
  into my mind and laid them up, so to say, where I could get at them again
  whenever I willed. There they were, then, even before I learned them, but they
  were not in my memory. Where were they, then? How does it come about that when
  they were spoken of, I could acknowledge them and say, "So it is, it is true,"
  unless they were already in the memory, though far back and hidden, as it were,
  in the more secret caves, so that unless they had been drawn out by the
  teaching of another person, I should perhaps never have been able to think of
  them at all? 
 CHAPTER XI
 18. Thus we find that learning those things whose images we do not take in by
  our senses, but which we intuit within ourselves without images and as they
  actually are, is nothing else except the gathering together of those same
  things which the memory already contains--but in an indiscriminate and confused
  manner--and putting them together by careful observation as they are at hand in
  the memory; so that whereas they formerly lay hidden, scattered, or neglected,
  they now come easily to present themselves to the mind which is now familiar
  with them. And how many things of this sort my memory has stored up, which have
  already been discovered and, as I said, laid up for ready reference. These are
  the things we may be said to have learned and to know. Yet, if I cease to
  recall them even for short intervals of time, they are again so submerged--and
  slide back, as it were, into the further reaches of the memory--that they must
  be drawn out again as if new from the same place (for there is nowhere else for
  them to have gone) and must be collected [cogenda] so that they can
  become known. In other words, they must be gathered up [colligenda] from
  their dispersion. This is where we get the word cogitate [cogitare]. For cogo [collect] and cogito [to go on
  collecting] have the same relation to each other as ago [do] and agito [do frequently], and facio [make] and factito [make
  frequently]. But the mind has properly laid claim to this word [cogitate] so
  that not everything that is gathered together anywhere, but only what is
  collected and gathered together in the mind, is properly said to be "cogitated." 
 CHAPTER XII
 19. The memory also contains the principles and the unnumbered laws of numbers
  and dimensions. None of these has been impressed on the memory by a physical
  sense, because they have neither color nor sound, nor taste, nor sense of
  touch. I have heard the sound of the words by which these things are signified
  when they are discussed: but the sounds are one thing, the things another. For
  the sounds are one thing in Greek, another in Latin; but the things themselves
  are neither Greek nor Latin nor any other language. I have seen the lines of
  the craftsmen, the finest of which are like a spider's web, but mathematical
  lines are different. They are not the images of such things as the eye of my
  body has showed me. The man who knows them does so without any cogitation of
  physical objects whatever, but intuits them within himself. I have perceived
  with all the senses of my body the numbers we use in counting; but the numbers
  by which we count are far different from these. They are not the images of
  these; they simply are. Let the man who does not see these things mock me for
  saying them; and I will pity him while he laughs at me.  
 CHAPTER XIII
 20. All these things I hold in my memory, and I remember how I learned them. I
  also remember many things that I have heard quite falsely urged against them,
  which, even if they are false, yet it is not false that I have remembered them.
  And I also remember that I have distinguished between the truths and the false
  objections, and now I see that it is one thing to distinguish these things and
  another to remember that I did distinguish them when I have cogitated on them.
  I remember, then, both that I have often understood these things and also that
  I am now storing away in my memory what I distinguish and comprehend of them so
  that later on I may remember just as I understand them now. Therefore, I
  remember that I remembered, so that if afterward I call to mind that I once was
  able to remember these things it will be through the power of memory that I
  recall it. 
 
CHAPTER XIV
 21. This same memory also contains the feelings of my mind; not in the manner
  in which the mind itself experienced them, but very differently according to a
  power peculiar to memory. For without being joyous now, I can remember that I
  once was joyous, and without being sad, I can recall my past sadness. I can
  remember past fears without fear, and former desires without desire. Again, the
  contrary happens. Sometimes when I am joyous I remember my past sadness, and
  when sad, remember past joy.
 This is not to be marveled at as far as the body is concerned; for the mind is
  one thing and the body another.[338] If, therefore, when I
  am happy, I recall some past bodily pain, it is not so strange. But even as
  this memory is experienced, it is identical with the mind--as when we tell
  someone to remember something we say, "See that you bear this in mind"; and
  when we forget a thing, we say, "It did not enter my mind" or "It slipped my
  mind." Thus we call memory itself mind.
 Since this is so, how does it happen that when I am joyful I can still remember
  past sorrow? Thus the mind has joy, and the memory has sorrow; and the mind is
  joyful from the joy that is in it, yet the memory is not sad from the sadness
  that is in it. Is it possible that the memory does not belong to the mind? Who
  will say so? The memory doubtless is, so to say, the belly of the mind: and joy
  and sadness are like sweet and bitter food, which when they are committed to
  the memory are, so to say, passed into the belly where they can be stored but
  no longer tasted. It is ridiculous to consider this an analogy; yet they are
  not utterly unlike.
 22. But look, it is from my memory that I produce it when I say that there are
  four basic emotions of the mind: desire, joy, fear, sadness. Whatever kind of
  analysis I may be able to make of these, by dividing each into its particular
  species, and by defining it, I still find what to say in my memory and it is
  from my memory that I draw it out. Yet I am not moved by any of these emotions
  when I call them to mind by remembering them. Moreover, before I recalled them
  and thought about them, they were there in the memory; and this is how they
  could be brought forth in remembrance. Perhaps, therefore, just as food is
  brought up out of the belly by rumination, so also these things are drawn up
  out of the memory by recall. But why, then, does not the man who is thinking
  about the emotions, and is thus recalling them, feel in the mouth of his
  reflection the sweetness of joy or the bitterness of sadness? Is the comparison
  unlike in this because it is not complete at every point? For who would
  willingly speak on these subjects, if as often as we used the term sadness or
  fear, we should thereby be compelled to be sad or fearful? And yet we could
  never speak of them if we did not find them in our memories, not merely as the
  sounds of the names, as their images are impressed on it by the physical
  senses, but also the notions of the things themselves--which we did not receive
  by any gate of the flesh, but which the mind itself recognizes by the
  experience of its own passions, and has entrusted to the memory; or else which
  the memory itself has retained without their being entrusted to it. 
 CHAPTER XV
 23. Now whether all this is by means of images or not, who can rightly affirm?
  For I name a stone, I name the sun, and those things themselves are not present
  to my senses, but their images are present in my memory. I name some pain of
  the body, yet it is not present when there is no pain; yet if there were not
  some such image of it in my memory, I could not even speak of it, nor should I
  be able to distinguish it from pleasure. I name bodily health when I am sound
  in body, and the thing itself is indeed present in me. At the same time, unless
  there were some image of it in my memory, I could not possibly call to mind
  what the sound of this name signified. Nor would sick people know what was
  meant when health was named, unless the same image were preserved by the power
  of memory, even though the thing itself is absent from the body. I can name the
  numbers we use in counting, and it is not their images but themselves that are
  in my memory. I name the image of the sun, and this too is in my memory. For I
  do not recall the image of that image, but that image itself, for the image
  itself is present when I remember it. I name memory and I know what I name. But
  where do I know it, except in the memory itself? Is it also present to itself
  by its image, and not by itself?  
 CHAPTER XVI
 24. When I name forgetfulness, and understand what I mean by the name, how
  could I understand it if I did not remember it? And if I refer not to the sound
  of the name, but to the thing which the term signifies, how could I know what
  that sound signified if I had forgotten what the name means? When, therefore, I
  remember memory, then memory is present to itself by itself, but when I
  remember forgetfulness then both memory and forgetfulness are present
  together--the memory by which I remember the forgetfulness which I remember.
  But what is forgetfulness except the privation of memory? How, then, is that
  present to my memory which, when it controls my mind, I cannot remember? But if
  what we remember we store up in our memory; and if, unless we remembered
  forgetfulness, we could never know the thing signified by the term when we
  heard it--then, forgetfulness is contained in the memory. It is present so that
  we do not forget it, but since it is present, we do forget.
 From this it is to be inferred that when we remember forgetfulness, it is not
  present to the memory through itself, but through its image; because if
  forgetfulness were present through itself, it would not lead us to remember,
  but only to forget. Now who will someday work this out? Who can understand how
  it is?
 25. Truly, O Lord, I toil with this and labor in myself. I have become a
  troublesome field that requires hard labor and heavy sweat. For we are not now
  searching out the tracts of heaven, or measuring the distances of the stars or
  inquiring about the weight of the earth. It is I myself--I, the mind--who
  remember. This is not much to marvel at, if what I myself am is not far from
  me. And what is nearer to me than myself? For see, I am not able to comprehend
  the force of my own memory, though I could not even call my own name without
  it. But what shall I say, when it is clear to me that I remember forgetfulness?
  Should I affirm that what I remember is not in my memory? Or should I say that
  forgetfulness is in my memory to the end that I should not forget? Both of
  these views are most absurd. But what third view is there? How can I say that
  the image of forgetfulness is retained by my memory, and not forgetfulness
  itself, when I remember it? How can I say this, since for the image of anything
  to be imprinted on the memory the thing itself must necessarily have been
  present first by which the image could have been imprinted? Thus I remember
  Carthage; thus, also, I remember all the other places where I have been. And I
  remember the faces of men whom I have seen and things reported by the other
  senses. I remember the health or sickness of the body. And when these objects
  were present, my memory received images from them so that they remain present
  in order for me to see them and reflect upon them in my mind, if I choose to
  remember them in their absence. If, therefore, forgetfulness is retained in the
  memory through its image and not through itself, then this means that it itself
  was once present, so that its image might have been imprinted. But when it was
  present, how did it write its image on the memory, since forgetfulness, by its
  presence, blots out even what it finds already written there? And yet in some
  way or other, even though it is incomprehensible and inexplicable, I am still
  quite certain that I also remember forgetfulness, by which we remember that
  something is blotted out. 
 CHAPTER XVII
 26. Great is the power of memory. It is a true marvel, O my God, a profound and
  infinite multiplicity! And this is the mind, and this I myself am. What, then,
  am I, O my God? Of what nature am I? A life various, and manifold, and
  exceedingly vast. Behold in the numberless halls and caves, in the innumerable
  fields and dens and caverns of my memory, full without measure of numberless
  kinds of things--present there either through images as all bodies are; or
  present in the things themselves as are our thoughts; or by some notion or
  observation as our emotions are, which the memory retains even though the mind
  feels them no longer, as long as whatever is in the memory is also in the
  mind--through all these I run and fly to and fro. I penetrate into them on this
  side and that as far as I can and yet there is nowhere any end.
 So great is the power of memory, so great the power of life in man whose life
  is mortal! What, then, shall I do, O thou my true life, my God? I will pass
  even beyond this power of mine that is called memory--I will pass beyond it,
  that I may come to thee, O lovely Light. And what art thou saying to me? See, I
  soar by my mind toward thee, who remainest above me. I will also pass beyond
  this power of mine that is called memory, desiring to reach thee where thou
  canst be reached, and wishing to cleave to thee where it is possible to cleave
  to thee. For even beasts and birds possess memory, or else they could never
  find their lairs and nests again, nor display many other things they know and
  do by habit. Indeed, they could not even form their habits except by their
  memories. I will therefore pass even beyond memory that I may reach Him who has
  differentiated me from the four-footed beasts and the fowls of the air by
  making me a wiser creature. Thus I will pass beyond memory; but where shall I
  find thee, who art the true Good and the steadfast Sweetness? But where shall I
  find thee? If I find thee without memory, then I shall have no memory of thee;
  and how could I find thee at all, if I do not remember thee? 
 CHAPTER XVIII
 27. For the woman who lost her small coin[339] and
  searched for it with a light would never have found it unless she had
  remembered it. For when it was found, how could she have known whether it was
  the same coin, if she had not remembered it? I remember having lost and found
  many things, and I have learned this from that experience: that when I was
  searching for any of them and was asked: "Is this it? Is that it?" I answered,
  "No," until finally what I was seeking was shown to me. But if I had not
  remembered it--whatever it was--even though it was shown to me, I still would
  not have found it because I could not have recognized it. And this is the way
  it always is when we search for and find anything that is lost. Still, if
  anything is accidentally lost from sight--not from memory, as a visible body
  might be--its image is retained within, and the thing is searched for until it
  is restored to sight. And when the thing is found, it is recognized by the
  image of it which is within. And we do not say that we have found what we have
  lost unless we can recognize it, and we cannot recognize it unless we remember
  it. But all the while the thing lost to the sight was retained in the memory.  
 CHAPTER XIX
 28. But what happens when the memory itself loses something, as when we forget
  anything and try to recall it? Where, finally, do we search, but in the memory
  itself? And there, if by chance one thing is offered for another, we refuse it
  until we meet with what we are looking for; and when we do, we recognize that
  this is it. But we could not do this unless we recognized it, nor could we have
  recognized it unless we remembered it. Yet we had indeed forgotten it.
 Perhaps the whole of it had not slipped out of our memory; but a part was
  retained by which the other lost part was sought for, because the memory
  realized that it was not operating as smoothly as usual and was being held up
  by the crippling of its habitual working; hence, it demanded the restoration of
  what was lacking.
 For example, if we see or think of some man we know, and, having forgotten his
  name, try to recall it--if some other thing presents itself, we cannot tie it
  into the effort to remember, because it was not habitually thought of in
  association with him. It is consequently rejected, until something comes into
  the mind on which our knowledge can rightly rest as the familiar and sought-for
  object. And where does this name come back from, save from the memory itself?
  For even when we recognize it by another's reminding us of it, still it is from
  the memory that this comes, for we do not believe it as something new; but when
  we recall it, we admit that what was said was correct. But if the name had been
  entirely blotted out of the mind, we should not be able to recollect it even
  when reminded of it. For we have not entirely forgotten anything if we can
  remember that we have forgotten it. For a lost notion, one that we have
  entirely forgotten, we cannot even search for. 
 CHAPTER XX
 29. How, then, do I seek thee, O Lord? For when I seek thee, my God, I seek a
  happy life. I will seek thee that my soul may live.[340] For my body lives by my soul, and my soul lives by thee. How, then, do I seek a
  happy life, since happiness is not mine till I can rightly say: "It is enough.
  This is it." How do I seek it? Is it by remembering, as though I had forgotten
  it and still knew that I had forgotten it? Do I seek it in longing to learn of
  it as though it were something unknown, which either I had never known or had
  so completely forgotten as not even to remember that I had forgotten it? Is not
  the happy life the thing that all desire, and is there anyone who does not
  desire it at all?[341] But where would they have gotten
  the knowledge of it, that they should so desire it? Where have they seen it
  that they should so love it? It is somehow true that we have it, but how I do
  not know.
 There is, indeed, a sense in which when anyone has his desire he is happy. And
  then there are some who are happy in hope. These are happy in an inferior
  degree to those that are actually happy; yet they are better off than those who
  are happy neither in actuality nor in hope. But even these, if they had not
  known happiness in some degree, would not then desire to be happy. And yet it
  is most certain that they do so desire. How they come to know happiness, I
  cannot tell, but they have it by some kind of knowledge unknown to me, for I am
  very much in doubt as to whether it is in the memory. For if it is in there,
  then we have been happy once on a time--either each of us individually or all
  of us in that man who first sinned and in whom also we all died and from whom
  we are all born in misery. How this is, I do not now ask; but I do ask whether
  the happy life is in the memory. For if we did not know it, we should not love
  it. We hear the name of it, and we all acknowledge that we desire the thing,
  for we are not delighted with the name only. For when a Greek hears it spoken
  in Latin, he does not feel delighted, for he does not know what has been
  spoken. But we are as delighted as he would be in turn if he heard it in Greek,
  because the thing itself is neither Greek nor Latin, this happiness which
  Greeks and Latins and men of all the other tongues long so earnestly to obtain.
  It is, then, known to all; and if all could with one voice be asked whether
  they wished to be happy, there is no doubt they would all answer that they
  would. And this would not be possible unless the thing itself, which we name
  "happiness," were held in the memory. 
 CHAPTER XXI
 30. But is it the same kind of memory as one who having seen Carthage remembers
  it? No, for the happy life is not visible to the eye, since it is not a
  physical object. Is it the sort of memory we have for numbers? No, for the man
  who has these in his understanding does not keep striving to attain more. Now
  we know something about the happy life and therefore we love it, but still we
  wish to go on striving for it that we may be happy. Is the memory of happiness,
  then, something like the memory of eloquence? No, for although some, when they
  hear the term eloquence, call the thing to mind, even if they are not
  themselves eloquent--and further, there are many people who would like to be
  eloquent, from which it follows that they must know something about
  it--nevertheless, these people have noticed through their senses that others
  are eloquent and have been delighted to observe this and long to be this way
  themselves. But they would not be delighted if it were not some interior
  knowledge; and they would not desire to be delighted unless they had been
  delighted. But as for a happy life, there is no physical perception by which we
  experience it in others.
 Do we remember happiness, then, as we remember joy? It may be so, for I
  remember my joy even when I am sad, just as I remember a happy life when I am
  miserable. And I have never, through physical perception, either seen, heard,
  smelled, tasted, or touched my joy. But I have experienced it in my mind when I
  rejoiced; and the knowledge of it clung to my memory so that I can call it to
  mind, sometimes with disdain and at other times with longing, depending on the
  different kinds of things I now remember that I rejoiced in. For I have been
  bathed with a certain joy even by unclean things, which I now detest and
  execrate as I call them to mind. At other times, I call to mind with longing
  good and honest things, which are not any longer near at hand, and I am
  therefore saddened when I recall my former joy.
 31. Where and when did I ever experience my happy life that I can call it to
  mind and love it and long for it? It is not I alone or even a few others who
  wish to be happy, but absolutely everybody. Unless we knew happiness by a
  knowledge that is certain, we should not wish for it with a will which is so
  certain. Take this example: If two men were asked whether they wished to serve
  as soldiers, one of them might reply that he would, and the other that he would
  not; but if they were asked whether they wished to be happy, both of them would
  unhesitatingly say that they would. But the first one would wish to serve as a
  soldier and the other would not wish to serve, both from no other motive than
  to be happy. Is it, perhaps, that one finds his joy in this and another in
  that? Thus they agree in their wish for happiness just as they would also
  agree, if asked, in wishing for joy. Is this joy what they call a happy life?
  Although one could choose his joy in this way and another in that, all have one
  goal which they strive to attain, namely, to have joy. This joy, then, being
  something that no one can say he has not experienced, is therefore found in the
  memory and it is recognized whenever the phrase "a happy life" is heard.  
 CHAPTER XXII
 32. Forbid it, O Lord, put it far from the heart of thy servant, who confesses
  to thee--far be it from me to think I am happy because of any and all the joy I
  have. For there is a joy not granted to the wicked but only to those who
  worship thee thankfully--and this joy thou thyself art. The happy life is
  this--to rejoice to thee, in thee, and for thee. This it is and there is no
  other. But those who think there is another follow after other joys, and not
  the true one. But their will is still not moved except by some image or shadow
  of joy. 
 CHAPTER XXIII
 33. Is it, then, uncertain that all men wish to be happy, since those who do
  not wish to find their joy in thee--which is alone the happy life--do not
  actually desire the happy life? Or, is it rather that all desire this, but
  because "the flesh lusts against the spirit and the spirit against the flesh,"
  so that they "prevent you from doing what you would,"[342] you fall to doing what you are able to do and are content with that. For you do
  not want to do what you cannot do urgently enough to make you able to do it. 
 Now I ask all men whether they would rather rejoice in truth or in falsehood.
  They will no more hesitate to answer, "In truth," than to say that they wish to
  be happy. For a happy life is joy in the truth. Yet this is joy in thee, who
  art the Truth, O God my Light, "the health of my countenance and my God."[343] All wish for this happy life; all wish for this life
  which is the only happy one: joy in the truth is what all men wish. 
 I have had experience with many who wished to deceive, but not one who wished
  to be deceived.[344] Where, then, did they ever know about
  this happy life, except where they knew also what the truth is? For they love
  it, too, since they are not willing to be deceived. And when they love the
  happy life, which is nothing else but joy in the truth, then certainly they
  also love the truth. And yet they would not love it if there were not some
  knowledge of it in the memory. 
 Why, then, do they not rejoice in it? Why are they not happy? Because they are
  so fully preoccupied with other things which do more to make them miserable
  than those which would make them happy, which they remember so little about.
  Yet there is a little light in men. Let them walk--let them walk in it, lest
  the darkness overtake them. 
 34. Why, then, does truth generate hatred, and why does thy servant who
  preaches the truth come to be an enemy to them who also love the happy life,
  which is nothing else than joy in the truth--unless it be that truth is loved
  in such a way that those who love something else besides her wish that to be
  the truth which they do love. Since they are unwilling to be deceived, they are
  unwilling to be convinced that they have been deceived. Therefore, they hate
  the truth for the sake of whatever it is that they love in place of the truth.
  They love truth when she shines on them; and hate her when she rebukes them.
  And since they are not willing to be deceived, but do wish to deceive, they
  love truth when she reveals herself and hate her when she reveals them. On this
  account, she will so repay them that those who are unwilling to be exposed by
  her she will indeed expose against their will, and yet will not disclose
  herself to them. 
 Thus, thus, truly thus: the human mind so blind and sick, so base and
  ill-mannered, desires to lie hidden, but does not wish that anything should be
  hidden from it. And yet the opposite is what happens--the mind itself is not
  hidden from the truth, but the truth is hidden from it. Yet even so, for all
  its wretchedness, it still prefers to rejoice in truth rather than in known
  falsehoods. It will, then, be happy only when without other distractions it
  comes to rejoice in that single Truth through which all things else are true. 
 CHAPTER XXIV
 35. Behold how great a territory I have explored in my memory seeking thee, O
  Lord! And in it all I have still not found thee. Nor have I found anything
  about thee, except what I had already retained in my memory from the time I
  learned of thee. For where I found Truth, there found I my God, who is the
  Truth. From the time I learned this I have not forgotten. And thus since the
  time I learned of thee, thou hast dwelt in my memory, and it is there that I
  find thee whenever I call thee to remembrance, and delight in thee. These are
  my holy delights, which thou hast bestowed on me in thy mercy, mindful of my
  poverty. 
 CHAPTER XXV
 36. But where in my memory dost thou abide, O Lord? Where dost thou dwell
  there? What sort of lodging hast thou made for thyself there? What kind of
  sanctuary hast thou built for thyself? Thou hast done this honor to my memory
  to take up thy abode in it, but I must consider further in what part of it thou
  dost abide. For in calling thee to mind, I soared beyond those parts of memory
  which the beasts also possess, because I did not find thee there among the
  images of corporeal things. From there I went on to those parts where I had
  stored the remembered affections of my mind, and I did not find thee there. And
  I entered into the inmost seat of my mind, which is in my memory, since the
  mind remembers itself also--and thou wast not there. For just as thou art not a
  bodily image, nor the emotion of a living creature (such as we feel when we
  rejoice or are grief-stricken, when we desire, or fear, or remember, or forget,
  or anything of that kind), so neither art thou the mind itself. For thou art
  the Lord God of the mind and of all these things that are mutable; but thou
  abidest immutable over all. Yet thou hast elected to dwell in my memory from
  the time I learned of thee. But why do I now inquire about the part of my
  memory thou dost dwell in, as if indeed there were separate parts in it?
  Assuredly, thou dwellest in it, since I have remembered thee from the time I
  learned of thee, and I find thee in my memory when I call thee to mind.  
 CHAPTER XXVI
 37. Where, then, did I find thee so as to be able to learn of thee? For thou
  wast not in my memory before I learned of thee. Where, then, did I find thee so
  as to be able to learn of thee--save in thyself beyond me.[345] Place there is none. We go "backward" and "forward" and
  there is no place. Everywhere and at once, O Truth, thou guidest all who
  consult thee, and simultaneously answerest all even though they consult thee on
  quite different things. Thou answerest clearly, though all do not hear in
  clarity. All take counsel of thee on whatever point they wish, though they do
  not always hear what they wish. He is thy best servant who does not look to
  hear from thee what he himself wills, but who wills rather to will what he
  hears from thee. 
 CHAPTER XXVII
 38. Belatedly I loved thee, O Beauty so ancient and so new, belatedly I loved
  thee. For see, thou wast within and I was without, and I sought thee out there.
  Unlovely, I rushed heedlessly among the lovely things thou hast made. Thou wast
  with me, but I was not with thee. These things kept me far from thee; even
  though they were not at all unless they were in thee. Thou didst call and cry
  aloud, and didst force open my deafness. Thou didst gleam and shine, and didst
  chase away my blindness. Thou didst breathe fragrant odors and I drew in my
  breath; and now I pant for thee. I tasted, and now I hunger and thirst. Thou
  didst touch me, and I burned for thy peace. 
 CHAPTER XXVIII
 39. When I come to be united to thee with all my being, then there will be no
  more pain and toil for me, and my life shall be a real life, being wholly
  filled by thee. But since he whom thou fillest is the one thou liftest up, I am
  still a burden to myself because I am not yet filled by thee. Joys of sorrow
  contend with sorrows of joy, and on which side the victory lies I do not
  know.
 Woe is me! Lord, have pity on me; my evil sorrows contend with my good joys,
  and on which side the victory lies I do not know. Woe is me! Lord, have pity on
  me. Woe is me! Behold, I do not hide my wounds. Thou art the Physician, I am
  the sick man; thou art merciful, I need mercy. Is not the life of man on earth
  an ordeal? Who is he that wishes for vexations and difficulties? Thou
  commandest them to be endured, not to be loved. For no man loves what he
  endures, though he may love to endure. Yet even if he rejoices to endure, he
  would prefer that there were nothing for him to endure. In adversity, I desire
  prosperity; in prosperity, I fear adversity. What middle place is there, then,
  between these two, where human life is not an ordeal? There is woe in the
  prosperity of this world; there is woe in the fear of misfortune; there is woe
  in the distortion of joy. There is woe in the adversities of this world--a
  second woe, and a third, from the desire of prosperity--because adversity
  itself is a hard thing to bear and makes shipwreck of endurance. Is not the
  life of man upon the earth an ordeal, and that without surcease? 
 CHAPTER XXIX
 40. My whole hope is in thy exceeding great mercy and that alone. Give what
  thou commandest and command what thou wilt. Thou commandest continence from us,
  and when I knew, as it is said, that no one could be continent unless God gave
  it to him, even this was a point of wisdom to know whose gift it was.[346] For by continence we are bound up and brought back
  together in the One, whereas before we were scattered abroad among the many.[347] For he loves thee too little who loves along with thee
  anything else that he does not love for thy sake, O Love, who dost burn forever
  and art never quenched. O Love, O my God, enkindle me! Thou commandest
  continence; give what thou commandest, and command what thou wilt. 
 CHAPTER XXX
 41. Obviously thou commandest that I should be continent from "the lust of the
  flesh, and the lust of the eyes, and the pride of life."[348] Thou commandest me to abstain from fornication, and as
  for marriage itself, thou hast counseled something better than what thou dost
  allow. And since thou gavest it, it was done--even before I became a minister
  of thy sacrament. But there still exist in my memory--of which I have spoken so
  much--the images of such things as my habits had fixed there. These things rush
  into my thoughts with no power when I am awake; but in sleep they rush in not
  only so as to give pleasure, but even to obtain consent and what very closely
  resembles the deed itself. Indeed, the illusion of the image prevails to such
  an extent, in both my soul and my flesh, that the illusion persuades me when
  sleeping to what the reality cannot do when I am awake. Am I not myself at such
  a time, O Lord my God? And is there so much of a difference between myself
  awake and myself in the moment when I pass from waking to sleeping, or return
  from sleeping to waking?
 Where, then, is the power of reason which resists such suggestions when I am
  awake--for even if the things themselves be forced upon it I remain unmoved?
  Does reason cease when the eyes close? Is it put to sleep with the bodily
  senses? But in that case how does it come to pass that even in slumber we often
  resist, and with our conscious purposes in mind, continue most chastely in
  them, and yield no assent to such allurements? Yet there is at least this much
  difference: that when it happens otherwise in dreams, when we wake up, we
  return to peace of conscience. And it is by this difference between sleeping
  and waking that we discover that it was not we who did it, while we still feel
  sorry that in some way it was done in us.
 42. Is not thy hand, O Almighty God, able to heal all the diseases of my soul
  and, by thy more and more abundant grace, to quench even the lascivious motions
  of my sleep? Thou wilt increase thy gifts in me more and more, O Lord, that my
  soul may follow me to thee, wrenched free from the sticky glue of lust so that
  it is no longer in rebellion against itself, even in dreams; that it neither
  commits nor consents to these debasing corruptions which come through sensual
  images and which result in the pollution of the flesh. For it is no great thing
  for the Almighty, who is "able to do . . . more than we can ask or think,"[349] to bring it about that no such influence--not even one
  so slight that a nod might restrain it--should afford gratification to the
  feelings of a chaste person even when sleeping. This could come to pass not
  only in this life but even at my present age. But what I am still in this way
  of wickedness I have confessed unto my good Lord, rejoicing with trembling in
  what thou hast given me and grieving in myself for that in which I am still
  imperfect. I am trusting that thou wilt perfect thy mercies in me, to the
  fullness of that peace which both my inner and outward being shall have with
  thee when death is swallowed up in victory.[350]  
 CHAPTER XXXI
 43. There is yet another "evil of the day"[351] to which I
  wish I were sufficient. By eating and drinking we restore the daily losses of
  the body until that day when thou destroyest both food and stomach, when thou
  wilt destroy this emptiness with an amazing fullness and wilt clothe this
  corruptible with an eternal incorruption. But now the necessity of habit is
  sweet to me, and against this sweetness must I fight, lest I be enthralled by
  it. Thus I carry on a daily war by fasting, constantly "bringing my body into
  subjection,"[352] after which my pains are banished by
  pleasure. For hunger and thirst are actual pain. They consume and destroy like
  fever does, unless the medicine of food is at hand to relieve us. And since
  this medicine at hand comes from the comfort we receive in thy gifts (by means
  of which land and water and air serve our infirmity), even our calamity is
  called pleasure.
 44. This much thou hast taught me: that I should learn to take food as
  medicine. But during that time when I pass from the pinch of emptiness to the
  contentment of fullness, it is in that very moment that the snare of appetite
  lies baited for me. For the passage itself is pleasant; there is no other way
  of passing thither, and necessity compels us to pass. And while health is the
  reason for our eating and drinking, yet a perilous delight joins itself to them
  as a handmaid; and indeed, she tries to take precedence in order that I may
  want to do for her sake what I say I want to do for health's sake. They do not
  both have the same limit either. What is sufficient for health is not enough
  for pleasure. And it is often a matter of doubt whether it is the needful care
  of the body that still calls for food or whether it is the sensual snare of
  desire still wanting to be served. In this uncertainty my unhappy soul
  rejoices, and uses it to prepare an excuse as a defense. It is glad that it is
  not clear as to what is sufficient for the moderation of health, so that under
  the pretense of health it may conceal its projects for pleasure. These
  temptations I daily endeavor to resist and I summon thy right hand to my help
  and cast my perplexities onto thee, for I have not yet reached a firm
  conclusion in this matter.
 45. I hear the voice of my God commanding: "Let not your heart be overcharged
  with surfeiting and drunkenness."[353] Drunkenness is far
  from me. Thou wilt have mercy that it does not come near me. But "surfeiting"
  sometimes creeps upon thy servant. Thou wilt have mercy that it may be put far
  from me. For no man can be continent unless thou give it.[354] Many things that we pray for thou givest us, and
  whatever good we receive before we prayed for it, we receive it from thee, so
  that we might afterward know that we did receive it from thee. I never was a
  drunkard, but I have known drunkards made into sober men by thee. It was also
  thy doing that those who never were drunkards have not been--and likewise, it
  was from thee that those who have been might not remain so always. And it was
  likewise from thee that both might know from whom all this came.
 I heard another voice of thine: "Do not follow your lusts and refrain yourself
  from your pleasures."[355] And by thy favor I have also
  heard this saying in which I have taken much delight: "Neither if we eat are we
  the better; nor if we eat not are we the worse."[356] This
  is to say that neither shall the one make me to abound, nor the other to be
  wretched. I heard still another voice: "For I have learned, in whatsoever state
  I am, therewith to be content. I know how to be abased and I know how to
  abound. . . . I can do all things through Christ who strengtheneth me."[357] See here a soldier of the heavenly army; not the sort
  of dust we are. But remember, O Lord, "that we are dust"[358] and that thou didst create man out of the dust,[359] and that he "was lost, and is found."[360] Of course, he [the apostle Paul] could not do all this
  by his own power. He was of the same dust--he whom I loved so much and who
  spoke of these things through the afflatus of thy inspiration: "I can," he
  said, "do all things through him who strengtheneth me." Strengthen me, that I
  too may be able. Give what thou commandest, and command what thou wilt. This
  man [Paul] confesses that he received the gift of grace and that, when he
  glories, he glories in the Lord. I have heard yet another voice praying that he
  might receive. "Take from me," he said, "the greediness of the belly."[361] And from this it appears, O my holy God, that thou dost
  give it, when what thou commandest to be done is done.
 46. Thou hast taught me, good Father, that "to the pure all things are pure"[362]; but "it is evil for that man who gives offense in
  eating"[363]; and that "every creature of thine is good,
  and nothing is to be refused if it is received with thanksgiving"[364]; and that "meat does not commend us to God"[365]; and that "no man should judge us in meat or in
  drink."[366] "Let not him who eats despise him who eats
  not, and let him that does not eat judge not him who does eat."[367] These things I have learned, thanks and praise be to
  thee, O my God and Master, who knockest at my ears and enlightenest my heart.
  Deliver me from all temptation!
 It is not the uncleanness of meat that I fear, but the uncleanness of an
  incontinent appetite. I know that permission was granted Noah to eat every kind
  of flesh that was good for food; that Elijah was fed with flesh; that John,
  blessed with a wonderful abstinence, was not polluted by the living creatures
  (that is, the locusts) on which he fed. And I also know that Esau was deceived
  by his hungering after lentils and that David blamed himself for desiring
  water, and that our King was tempted not by flesh but by bread. And, thus, the
  people in the wilderness truly deserved their reproof, not because they desired
  meat, but because in their desire for food they murmured against the Lord.
 47. Set down, then, in the midst of these temptations, I strive daily against
  my appetite for food and drink. For it is not the kind of appetite I am able to
  deal with by cutting it off once for all, and thereafter not touching it, as I
  was able to do with fornication. The bridle of the throat, therefore, must be
  held in the mean between slackness and tightness. And who, O Lord, is he who is
  not in some degree carried away beyond the bounds of necessity? Whoever he is,
  he is great; let him magnify thy name. But I am not such a one, "for I am a
  sinful man."[368] Yet I too magnify thy name, for he who
  hath "overcome the world"[369] intercedeth with thee for
  my sins, numbering me among the weak members of his body; for thy eyes did see
  what was imperfect in him, and in thy book all shall be written down.[370]  
 CHAPTER XXXII
 48. I am not much troubled by the allurement of odors. When they are absent, I
  do not seek them; when they are present, I do not refuse them; and I am always
  prepared to go without them. At any rate, I appear thus to myself; it is quite
  possible that I am deceived. For there is a lamentable darkness in which my
  capabilities are concealed, so that when my mind inquires into itself
  concerning its own powers, it does not readily venture to believe itself,
  because what already is in it is largely concealed unless experience brings it
  to light. Thus no man ought to feel secure in this life, the whole of which is
  called an ordeal, ordered so that the man who could be made better from having
  been worse may not also from having been better become worse. Our sole hope,
  our sole confidence, our only assured promise, is thy mercy. 
 CHAPTER XXXIII
 49. The delights of the ear drew and held me much more powerfully, but thou
  didst unbind and liberate me. In those melodies which thy words inspire when
  sung with a sweet and trained voice, I still find repose; yet not so as to
  cling to them, but always so as to be able to free myself as I wish. But it is
  because of the words which are their life that they gain entry into me and
  strive for a place of proper honor in my heart; and I can hardly assign them a
  fitting one. Sometimes, I seem to myself to give them more respect than is
  fitting, when I see that our minds are more devoutly and earnestly inflamed in
  piety by the holy words when they are sung than when they are not. And I
  recognize that all the diverse affections of our spirits have their appropriate
  measures in the voice and song, to which they are stimulated by I know not what
  secret correlation. But the pleasures of my flesh--to which the mind ought
  never to be surrendered nor by them enervated--often beguile me while physical
  sense does not attend on reason, to follow her patiently, but having once
  gained entry to help the reason, it strives to run on before her and be her
  leader. Thus in these things I sin unknowingly, but I come to know it
  afterward.
 50. On the other hand, when I avoid very earnestly this kind of deception, I
  err out of too great austerity. Sometimes I go to the point of wishing that all
  the melodies of the pleasant songs to which David's Psalter is adapted should
  be banished both from my ears and from those of the Church itself. In this
  mood, the safer way seemed to me the one I remember was once related to me
  concerning Athanasius, bishop of Alexandria, who required the readers of the
  psalm to use so slight an inflection of the voice that it was more like
  speaking than singing.
 However, when I call to mind the tears I shed at the songs of thy Church at the
  outset of my recovered faith, and how even now I am moved, not by the singing
  but by what is sung (when they are sung with a clear and skillfully modulated
  voice), I then come to acknowledge the great utility of this custom. Thus I
  vacillate between dangerous pleasure and healthful exercise. I am
  inclined--though I pronounce no irrevocable opinion on the subject--to approve
  of the use of singing in the church, so that by the delights of the ear the
  weaker minds may be stimulated to a devotional mood.[371] Yet when it happens that I am more moved by the singing than by what is sung, I
  confess myself to have sinned wickedly, and then I would rather not have heard
  the singing. See now what a condition I am in! Weep with me, and weep for me,
  those of you who can so control your inward feelings that good results always
  come forth. As for you who do not act this way at all, such things do not
  concern you. But do thou, O Lord, my God, give ear; look and see, and have
  mercy upon me; and heal me--thou, in whose sight I am become an enigma to
  myself; this itself is my weakness. 
 CHAPTER XXXIV
 51. There remain the delights of these eyes of my flesh, about which I must
  make my confession in the hearing of the ears of thy temple, brotherly and
  pious ears. Thus I will finish the list of the temptations of carnal appetite
  which still assail me--groaning and desiring as I am to be clothed upon with my
  house from heaven.[372]
 The eyes delight in fair and varied forms, and bright and pleasing colors. Let
  these not take possession of my soul! Rather let God possess it, he who didst
  make all these things very good indeed. He is still my good, and not these. The
  pleasures of sight affect me all the time I am awake. There is no rest from
  them given me, as there is from the voices of melody, which I can occasionally
  find in silence. For daylight, that queen of the colors, floods all that we
  look upon everywhere I go during the day. It flits about me in manifold forms
  and soothes me even when I am busy about other things, not noticing it. And it
  presents itself so forcibly that if it is suddenly withdrawn it is looked for
  with longing, and if it is long absent the mind is saddened.
 52. O Light, which Tobit saw even with his eyes closed in blindness, when he
  taught his son the way of life--and went before him himself in the steps of
  love and never went astray[373]; or that Light which Isaac
  saw when his fleshly "eyes were dim, so that he could not see"[374] because of old age, and it was permitted him
  unknowingly to bless his sons, but in the blessing of them to know them; or
  that Light which Jacob saw, when he too, blind in old age yet with an
  enlightened heart, threw light on the nation of men yet to come--presignified
  in the persons of his own sons--and laid his hands mystically crossed upon his
  grandchildren by Joseph (not as their father, who saw them from without, but as
  though he were within them), and distinguished them aright[375]: this is the true Light; it is one, and all are one who
  see and love it.
 But that corporeal light, of which I was speaking, seasons the life of the
  world for her blind lovers with a tempting and fatal sweetness. Those who know
  how to praise thee for it, "O God, Creator of Us All," take it up in thy
  hymn,[376] and are not taken over by it in their sleep.
  Such a man I desire to be. I resist the seductions of my eyes, lest my feet be
  entangled as I go forward in thy way; and I raise my invisible eyes to thee,
  that thou wouldst be pleased to "pluck my feet out of the net."[377] Thou dost continually pluck them out, for they are
  easily ensnared. Thou ceasest not to pluck them out, but I constantly remain
  fast in the snares set all around me. However, thou who "keepest Israel shall
  neither slumber nor sleep."[378]
 53. What numberless things there are: products of the various arts and
  manufactures in our clothes, shoes, vessels, and all such things; besides such
  things as pictures and statuary--and all these far beyond the necessary and
  moderate use of them or their significance for the life of piety--which men
  have added for the delight of the eye, copying the outward forms of the things
  they make; but inwardly forsaking Him by whom they were made and destroying
  what they themselves have been made to be!
 And I, O my God and my Joy, I also raise a hymn to thee for all these things,
  and offer a sacrifice of praise to my Sanctifier, because those beautiful forms
  which pass through the medium of the human soul into the artist's hands come
  from that beauty which is above our minds, which my soul sighs for day and
  night. But the craftsmen and devotees of these outward beauties discover the
  norm by which they judge them from that higher beauty, but not the measure of
  their use. Still, even if they do not see it, it is there nevertheless, to
  guard them from wandering astray, and to keep their strength for thee, and not
  dissipate it in delights that pass into boredom. And for myself, though I can
  see and understand this, I am still entangled in my own course with such
  beauty, but thou wilt rescue me, O Lord, thou wilt rescue me, "for thy
  loving-kindness is before my eyes."[379] For I am
  captivated in my weakness but thou in thy mercy dost rescue me: sometimes
  without my knowing it, because I had only lightly fallen; at other times, the
  rescue is painful because I was stuck fast.  
 CHAPTER XXXV
 54. Besides this there is yet another form of temptation still more complex in
  its peril. For in addition to the fleshly appetite which strives for the
  gratification of all senses and pleasures--in which its slaves perish because
  they separate themselves from thee--there is also a certain vain and curious
  longing in the soul, rooted in the same bodily senses, which is cloaked under
  the name of knowledge and learning; not having pleasure in the flesh, but
  striving for new experiences through the flesh. This longing--since its origin
  is our appetite for learning, and since the sight is the chief of our senses in
  the acquisition of knowledge--is called in the divine language "the lust of the
  eyes."[380] For seeing is a function of the eyes; yet we
  also use this word for the other senses as well, when we exercise them in the
  search for knowledge. We do not say, "Listen how it glows," "Smell how it
  glistens," "Taste how it shines," or "Feel how it flashes," since all of these
  are said to be seen. And we do not simply say, "See how it shines,"
  which only the eyes can perceive; but we also say, "See how it sounds, see how
  it smells, see how it tastes, see how hard it is." Thus, as we said before, the
  whole round of sensory experience is called "the lust of the eyes" because the
  function of seeing, in which the eyes have the principal role, is applied by
  analogy to the other senses when they are seeking after any kind of
  knowledge.
 55. From this, then, one can the more clearly distinguish whether it is
  pleasure or curiosity that is being pursued by the senses. For pleasure pursues
  objects that are beautiful, melodious, fragrant, savory, soft. But curiosity,
  seeking new experiences, will even seek out the contrary of these, not with the
  purpose of experiencing the discomfort that often accompanies them, but out of
  a passion for experimenting and knowledge.
 For what pleasure is there in the sight of a lacerated corpse, which makes you
  shudder? And yet if there is one lying close by we flock to it, as if to be
  made sad and pale. People fear lest they should see such a thing even in sleep,
  just as they would if, when awake, someone compelled them to go and see it or
  if some rumor of its beauty had attracted them.
 This is also the case with the other senses; it would be tedious to pursue a
  complete analysis of it. This malady of curiosity is the reason for all those
  strange sights exhibited in the theater. It is also the reason why we proceed
  to search out the secret powers of nature--those which have nothing to do with
  our destiny--which do not profit us to know about, and concerning which men
  desire to know only for the sake of knowing. And it is with this same motive of
  perverted curiosity for knowledge that we consult the magical arts. Even in
  religion itself, this prompting drives us to make trial of God when signs and
  wonders are eagerly asked of him--not desired for any saving end, but only to
  make trial of him.
 56. In such a wilderness so vast, crammed with snares and dangers, behold how
  many of them I have lopped off and cast from my heart, as thou, O God of my
  salvation, hast enabled me to do. And yet, when would I dare to say, since so
  many things of this sort still buzz around our daily lives--when would I dare
  to say that no such motive prompts my seeing or creates a vain curiosity in me?
  It is true that now the theaters never attract me, nor do I now care to inquire
  about the courses of the stars, and my soul has never sought answers from the
  departed spirits. All sacrilegious oaths I abhor. And yet, O Lord my God, to
  whom I owe all humble and singlehearted service, with what subtle suggestion
  the enemy still influences me to require some sign from thee! But by our King,
  and by Jerusalem, our pure and chaste homeland, I beseech thee that where any
  consenting to such thoughts is now far from me, so may it always be farther and
  farther. And when I entreat thee for the salvation of any man, the end I aim at
  is something more than the entreating: let it be that as thou dost what thou
  wilt, thou dost also give me the grace willingly to follow thy lead.
 57. Now, really, in how many of the most minute and trivial things my curiosity
  is still daily tempted, and who can keep the tally on how often I succumb? How
  often, when people are telling idle tales, we begin by tolerating them lest we
  should give offense to the sensitive; and then gradually we come to listen
  willingly! I do not nowadays go to the circus to see a dog chase a rabbit, but
  if by chance I pass such a race in the fields, it quite easily distracts me
  even from some serious thought and draws me after it--not that I turn aside
  with my horse, but with the inclination of my mind. And unless, by showing me
  my weakness, thou dost speedily warn me to rise above such a sight to thee by a
  deliberate act of thought--or else to despise the whole thing and pass it
  by--then I become absorbed in the sight, vain creature that I am.
 How is it that when I am sitting at home a lizard catching flies, or a spider
  entangling them as they fly into her webs, oftentimes arrests me? Is the
  feeling of curiosity not the same just because these are such tiny creatures?
  From them I proceed to praise thee, the wonderful Creator and Disposer of all
  things; but it is not this that first attracts my attention. It is one thing to
  get up quickly and another thing not to fall--and of both such things my life
  is full and my only hope is in thy exceeding great mercy. For when this heart
  of ours is made the depot of such things and is overrun by the throng of these
  abounding vanities, then our prayers are often interrupted and disturbed by
  them. Even while we are in thy presence and direct the voice of our hearts to
  thy ears, such a great business as this is broken off by the inroads of I know
  not what idle thoughts. 
 CHAPTER XXXVI
 58. Shall we, then, also reckon this vain curiosity among the things that are
  to be but lightly esteemed? Shall anything restore us to hope except thy
  complete mercy since thou hast begun to change us? Thou knowest to what extent
  thou hast already changed me, for first of all thou didst heal me of the lust
  for vindicating myself, so that thou mightest then forgive all my remaining
  iniquities and heal all my diseases, and "redeem my life from corruption and
  crown me with loving-kindness and tender mercies, and satisfy my desires with
  good things."[381] It was thou who didst restrain my pride
  with thy fear, and bowed my neck to thy "yoke."[382] And
  now I bear the yoke and it is "light" to me, because thou didst promise it to
  be so, and hast made it to be so. And so in truth it was, though I knew it not
  when I feared to take it up.
 59. But, O Lord--thou who alone reignest without pride, because thou alone art
  the true Lord, who hast no Lord--has this third kind of temptation left me, or
  can it leave me during this life: the desire to be feared and loved of men,
  with no other view than that I may find in it a joy that is no joy? It is,
  rather, a wretched life and an unseemly ostentation. It is a special reason why
  we do not love thee, nor devotedly fear thee. Therefore "thou resistest the
  proud but givest grace to the humble."[383] Thou
  thunderest down on the ambitious designs of the world, and "the foundations of
  the hills" tremble.[384]
 And yet certain offices in human society require the officeholder to be loved
  and feared of men, and through this the adversary of our true blessedness
  presses hard upon us, scattering everywhere his snares of "well done, well
  done"; so that while we are eagerly picking them up, we may be caught unawares
  and split off our joy from thy truth and fix it on the deceits of men. In this
  way we come to take pleasure in being loved and feared, not for thy sake but in
  thy stead. By such means as this, the adversary makes men like himself, that he
  may have them as his own, not in the harmony of love, but in the fellowship of
  punishment--the one who aspired to exalt his throne in the north,[385] that in the darkness and the cold men might have to
  serve him, mimicking thee in perverse and distorted ways.
 But see, O Lord, we are thy little flock. Possess us, stretch thy wings above
  us, and let us take refuge under them. Be thou our glory; let us be loved for
  thy sake, and let thy word be feared in us. Those who desire to be commended by
  the men whom thou condemnest will not be defended by men when thou judgest, nor
  will they be delivered when thou dost condemn them. But when--not as a sinner
  is praised in the wicked desires of his soul nor when the unrighteous man is
  blessed in his unrighteousness--a man is praised for some gift that thou hast
  given him, and he is more gratified at the praise for himself than because he
  possesses the gift for which he is praised, such a one is praised while thou
  dost condemn him. In such a case the one who praised is truly better than the
  one who was praised. For the gift of God in man was pleasing to the one, while
  the other was better pleased with the gift of man than with the gift of God.  
 CHAPTER XXXVII
 60. By these temptations we are daily tried, O Lord; we are tried unceasingly.
  Our daily "furnace" is the human tongue.[386] And also in
  this respect thou commandest us to be continent. Give what thou commandest and
  command what thou wilt. In this matter, thou knowest the groans of my heart and
  the rivers of my eyes, for I am not able to know for certain how far I am clean
  of this plague; and I stand in great fear of my "secret faults,"[387] which thy eyes perceive, though mine do not. For in
  respect of the pleasures of my flesh and of idle curiosity, I see how far I
  have been able to hold my mind in check when I abstain from them either by
  voluntary act of the will or because they simply are not at hand; for then I
  can inquire of myself how much more or less frustrating it is to me not to have
  them. This is also true about riches, which are sought for in order that they
  may minister to one of these three "lusts," or two, or the whole complex of
  them. The mind is able to see clearly if, when it has them, it despises them so
  that they may be cast aside and it may prove itself.
 But if we desire to test our power of doing without praise, must we then live
  wickedly or lead a life so atrocious and abandoned that everyone who knows us
  will detest us? What greater madness than this can be either said or conceived?
  And yet if praise, both by custom and right, is the companion of a good life
  and of good works, we should as little forgo its companionship as the good life
  itself. But unless a thing is absent I do not know whether I should be
  contented or troubled at having to do without it.
 61. What is it, then, that I am confessing to thee, O Lord, concerning this
  sort of temptation? What else, than that I am delighted with praise, but more
  with the truth itself than with praise. For if I were to have any choice
  whether, if I were mad or utterly in the wrong, I would prefer to be praised by
  all men or, if I were steadily and fully confident in the truth, would prefer
  to be blamed by all, I see which I should choose. Yet I wish I were unwilling
  that the approval of others should add anything to my joy for any good I have.
  Yet I admit that it does increase it; and, more than that, dispraise diminishes
  it. Then, when I am disturbed over this wretchedness of mine, an excuse
  presents itself to me, the value of which thou knowest, O God, for it renders
  me uncertain. For since it is not only continence that thou hast enjoined on
  us--that is, what things to hold back our love from--but righteousness as
  well--that is, what to bestow our love upon--and hast wished us to love not
  only thee, but also our neighbor, it often turns out that when I am gratified
  by intelligent praise I seem to myself to be gratified by the competence or
  insight of my neighbor; or, on the other hand, I am sorry for the defect in him
  when I hear him dispraise either what he does not understand or what is good.
  For I am sometimes grieved at the praise I get, either when those things that
  displease me in myself are praised in me, or when lesser and trifling goods are
  valued more highly than they should be. But, again, how do I know whether I
  feel this way because I am unwilling that he who praises me should differ from
  me concerning myself not because I am moved with any consideration for him, but
  because the good things that please me in myself are more pleasing to me when
  they also please another? For in a way, I am not praised when my judgment of
  myself is not praised, since either those things which are displeasing to me
  are praised, or those things which are less pleasing to me are more praised. Am
  I not, then, quite uncertain of myself in this respect?
 62. Behold, O Truth, it is in thee that I see that I ought not to be moved at
  my own praises for my own sake, but for the sake of my neighbor's good. And
  whether this is actually my way, I truly do not know. On this score I know less
  of myself than thou dost. I beseech thee now, O my God, to reveal myself to me
  also, that I may confess to my brethren, who are to pray for me in those
  matters where I find myself weak.
 Let me once again examine myself the more diligently. If, in my own praise, I
  am moved with concern for my neighbor, why am I less moved if some other man is
  unjustly dispraised than when it happens to me? Why am I more irritated at that
  reproach which is cast on me than at one which is, with equal injustice, cast
  upon another in my presence? Am I ignorant of this also? Or is it still true
  that I am deceiving myself, and do not keep the truth before thee in my heart
  and tongue? Put such madness far from me, O Lord, lest my mouth be to me "the
  oil of sinners, to anoint my head."[388] 
 CHAPTER XXXVIII
 63. "I am needy and poor."[389] Still, I am better when in
  secret groanings I displease myself and seek thy mercy until what is lacking in
  me is renewed and made complete for that peace which the eye of the proud does
  not know. The reports that come from the mouth and from actions known to men
  have in them a most perilous temptation to the love of praise. This love builds
  up a certain complacency in one's own excellency, and then goes around
  collecting solicited compliments. It tempts me, even when I inwardly reprove
  myself for it, and this precisely because it is reproved. For a man may often
  glory vainly in the very scorn of vainglory--and in this case it is not any
  longer the scorn of vainglory in which he glories, for he does not truly
  despise it when he inwardly glories in it. 
 CHAPTER XXXIX
 64. Within us there is yet another evil arising from the same sort of
  temptation. By it they become empty who please themselves in themselves,
  although they do not please or displease or aim at pleasing others. But in
  pleasing themselves they displease thee very much, not merely taking pleasure
  in things that are not good as if they were good, but taking pleasure in thy
  good things as if they were their own; or even as if they were thine but still
  as if they had received them through their own merit; or even as if they had
  them through thy grace, still without this grace with their friends, but as if
  they envied that grace to others. In all these and similar perils and labors,
  thou perceivest the agitation of my heart, and I would rather feel my wounds
  being cured by thee than not inflicted by me on myself. 
 CHAPTER XL
 65. Where hast thou not accompanied me, O Truth, teaching me both what to avoid
  and what to desire, when I have submitted to thee what I could understand about
  matters here below, and have sought thy counsel about them?
 With my external senses I have viewed the world as I was able and have noticed
  the life which my body derives from me and from these senses of mine. From that
  stage I advanced inwardly into the recesses of my memory--the manifold chambers
  of my mind, marvelously full of unmeasured wealth. And I reflected on this and
  was afraid, and could understand none of these things without thee and found
  thee to be none of them. Nor did I myself discover these things--I who went
  over them all and labored to distinguish and to value everything according to
  its dignity, accepting some things upon the report of my senses and questioning
  about others which I thought to be related to my inner self, distinguishing and
  numbering the reporters themselves; and in that vast storehouse of my memory,
  investigating some things, depositing other things, taking out still others.
  Neither was I myself when I did this--that is, that ability of mine by which I
  did it--nor was it thou, for thou art that never-failing light from which I
  took counsel about them all; whether they were what they were, and what was
  their real value. In all this I heard thee teaching and commanding me. And this
  I often do--and this is a delight to me--and as far as I can get relief from my
  necessary duties, I resort to this kind of pleasure. But in all these things
  which I review when I consult thee, I still do not find a secure place for my
  soul save in thee, in whom my scattered members may be gathered together and
  nothing of me escape from thee. And sometimes thou introducest me to a most
  rare and inward feeling, an inexplicable sweetness. If this were to come to
  perfection in me I do not know to what point life might not then arrive. But
  still, by these wretched weights of mine, I relapse into these common things,
  and am sucked in by my old customs and am held. I sorrow much, yet I am still
  closely held. To this extent, then, the burden of habit presses us down. I can
  exist in this fashion but I do not wish to do so. In that other way I wish I
  were, but cannot be--in both ways I am wretched.  
 CHAPTER XLI
 66. And now I have thus considered the infirmities of my sins, under the
  headings of the three major "lusts," and I have called thy right hand to my
  aid. For with a wounded heart I have seen thy brightness, and having been
  beaten back I cried: "Who can attain to it? I am cut off from before thy
  eyes."[390] Thou art the Truth, who presidest over all
  things, but I, because of my greed, did not wish to lose thee. But still, along
  with thee, I wished also to possess a lie--just as no one wishes to lie in such
  a way as to be ignorant of what is true. By this I lost thee, for thou wilt not
  condescend to be enjoyed along with a lie. 
 CHAPTER XLII
 67. Whom could I find to reconcile me to thee? Should I have approached the
  angels? What kind of prayer? What kind of rites? Many who were striving to
  return to thee and were not able of themselves have, I am told, tried this and
  have fallen into a longing for curious visions and deserved to be deceived.
  Being exalted, they sought thee in their pride of learning, and they thrust
  themselves forward rather than beating their breasts.[391] And so by a likeness of heart, they drew to themselves the princes of the
  air,[392] their conspirators and companions in pride, by
  whom they were deceived by the power of magic. Thus they sought a mediator by
  whom they might be cleansed, but there was none. For the mediator they sought
  was the devil, disguising himself as an angel of light.[393] And he allured their proud flesh the more because he
  had no fleshly body.
 They were mortal and sinful, but thou, O Lord, to whom they arrogantly sought
  to be reconciled, art immortal and sinless. But a mediator between God and man
  ought to have something in him like God and something in him like man, lest in
  being like man he should be far from God, or if only like God he should be far
  from man, and so should not be a mediator. That deceitful mediator, then, by
  whom, by thy secret judgment, human pride deserves to be deceived, had one
  thing in common with man, that is, his sin. In another respect, he would seem
  to have something in common with God, for not being clothed with the mortality
  of the flesh, he could boast that he was immortal. But since "the wages of sin
  is death,"[394] what he really has in common with men is
  that, together with them, he is condemned to death. 
 CHAPTER XLIII
 68. But the true Mediator, whom thou in thy secret mercy hast revealed to the
  humble, and hast sent to them so that through his example they also might learn
  the same humility--that "Mediator between God and man, the man Christ Jesus,"[395] appeared between mortal sinners and the immortal Just
  One. He was mortal as men are mortal; he was righteous as God is righteous; and
  because the reward of righteousness is life and peace, he could, through his
  righteousness united with God, cancel the death of justified sinners, which he
  was willing to have in common with them. Hence he was manifested to holy men of
  old, to the end that they might be saved through faith in his Passion to come,
  even as we through faith in his Passion which is past. As man he was Mediator,
  but as the Word he was not something in between the two; because he was equal
  to God, and God with God, and, with the Holy Spirit, one God.
 69. How hast thou loved us, O good Father, who didst not spare thy only Son,
  but didst deliver him up for us wicked ones![396] How hast
  thou loved us, for whom he who did not count it robbery to be equal with thee
  "became obedient unto death, even the death of the cross"[397]! He alone was "free among the dead."[398] He alone had power to lay down his life and power to
  take it up again, and for us he became to thee both Victor and Victim; and
  Victor because he was the Victim. For us, he was to thee both Priest and
  Sacrifice, and Priest because he was the Sacrifice. Out of slaves, he maketh us
  thy sons, because he was born of thee and did serve us. Rightly, then, is my
  hope fixed strongly on him, that thou wilt "heal all my diseases"[399] through him, who sitteth at thy right hand and maketh
  intercession for us.[400] Otherwise I should utterly
  despair. For my infirmities are many and great; indeed, they are very many and
  very great. But thy medicine is still greater. Otherwise, we might think that
  thy word was removed from union with man, and despair of ourselves, if it had
  not been that he was "made flesh and dwelt among us."[401]
 70. Terrified by my sins and the load of my misery, I had resolved in my heart
  and considered flight into the wilderness. But thou didst forbid me, and thou
  didst strengthen me, saying that "since Christ died for all, they who live
  should not henceforth live unto themselves, but unto him who died for them."[402] Behold, O Lord, I cast all my care on thee, that I may
  live and "behold wondrous things out of thy law."[403] Thou knowest my incompetence and my infirmities; teach me and heal me. Thy only
  Son--he "in whom are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge"[404]--hath redeemed me with his blood. Let not the proud
  speak evil of me, because I keep my ransom before my mind, and eat and drink
  and share my food and drink. For, being poor, I desire to be satisfied from
  him, together with those who eat and are satisfied: "and they shall praise the
  Lord that seek Him."[405]
  
BOOK ELEVEN
The eternal Creator and the Creation in time. Augustine ties
  together his memory of his past life, his present experience, and his ardent
  desire to comprehend the mystery of creation. This leads him to the questions
  of the mode and time of creation. He ponders the mode of creation and shows
  that it was de nihilo and involved no alteration in the being of God. He
    then considers the question of the beginning of the world and time and shows
    that time and creation are cotemporal. But what is time? To this Augustine
    devotes a brilliant analysis of the subjectivity of time and the relation of
    all temporal process to the abiding eternity of God. From this, he prepares to
    turn to a detailed interpretation of Gen. 1:1, 2.
 CHAPTER I
 1. Is it possible, O Lord, that, since thou art in eternity, thou art ignorant
  of what I am saying to thee? Or, dost thou see in time an event at the time it
  occurs? If not, then why am I recounting such a tale of things to thee?
  Certainly not in order to acquaint thee with them through me; but, instead,
  that through them I may stir up my own love and the love of my readers toward
  thee, so that all may say, "Great is the Lord and greatly to be praised." I
  have said this before[406] and will say it again: "For
  love of thy love I do it." So also we pray--and yet Truth tells us, "Your
  Father knoweth what things you need before you ask him."[407] Consequently, we lay bare our feelings before thee,
  that, through our confessing to thee our plight and thy mercies toward us, thou
  mayest go on to free us altogether, as thou hast already begun; and that we may
  cease to be wretched in ourselves and blessed in thee--since thou hast called
  us to be poor in spirit, meek, mourners, hungering and athirst for
  righteousness, merciful and pure in heart.[408] Thus I
  have told thee many things, as I could find ability and will to do so, since it
  was thy will in the first place that I should confess to thee, O Lord my
  God--for "Thou art good and thy mercy endureth forever."[409] 
 CHAPTER II
 2. But how long would it take for the voice of my pen to tell enough of thy
  exhortations and of all thy terrors and comforts and leadings by which thou
  didst bring me to preach thy Word and to administer thy sacraments to thy
  people? And even if I could do this sufficiently, the drops of time[410] are very precious to me and I have for a long time been
  burning with the desire to meditate on thy law, and to confess in thy presence
  my knowledge and ignorance of it--from the first streaks of thy light in my
  mind and the remaining darkness, until my weakness shall be swallowed up in thy
  strength. And I do not wish to see those hours drained into anything else which
  I can find free from the necessary care of the body, the exercise of the mind,
  and the service we owe to our fellow men--and what we give even if we do not
  owe it.
 3. O Lord my God, hear my prayer and let thy mercy attend my longing. It does
  not burn for itself alone but longs as well to serve the cause of fraternal
  love. Thou seest in my heart that this is so. Let me offer the service of my
  mind and my tongue--and give me what I may in turn offer back to thee. For "I
  am needy and poor"; thou art rich to all who call upon thee--thou who, in thy
  freedom from care, carest for us. Trim away from my lips, inwardly and
  outwardly, all rashness and lying. Let thy Scriptures be my chaste delight. Let
  me not be deceived in them, nor deceive others from them. O Lord, hear and
  pity! O Lord my God, light of the blind, strength of the weak--and also the
  light of those who see and the strength of the strong--hearken to my soul and
  hear it crying from the depths.[411] Unless thy ears
  attend us even in the depths, where should we go? To whom should we cry?
 "Thine is the day and the night is thine as well."[412] At
  thy bidding the moments fly by. Grant me in them, then, an interval for my
  meditations on the hidden things of thy law, nor close the door of thy law
  against us who knock. Thou hast not willed that the deep secrets of all those
  pages should have been written in vain. Those forests are not without their
  stags which keep retired within them, ranging and walking and feeding, lying
  down and ruminating.[413] Perfect me, O Lord, and reveal
  their secrets to me. Behold, thy voice is my joy; thy voice surpasses in
  abundance of delights. Give me what I love, for I do love it. And this too is
  thy gift. Abandon not thy gifts and despise not thy "grass" which thirsts for
  thee.[414] Let me confess to thee everything that I shall
  have found in thy books and "let me hear the voice of thy praise."[415] Let me drink from thee and "consider the wondrous
  things out of thy law"[416]--from the very beginning, when
  thou madest heaven and earth, and thenceforward to the everlasting reign of thy
  Holy City with thee.
 4. O Lord, have mercy on me and hear my petition. For my prayer is not for
  earthly things, neither gold nor silver and precious stones, nor gorgeous
  apparel, nor honors and power, nor fleshly pleasures, nor of bodily necessities
  in this life of our pilgrimage: all of these things are "added" to those who
  seek thy Kingdom and thy righteousness.[417]
 Observe, O God, from whence comes my desire. The unrighteous have told me of
  delights but not such as those in thy law, O Lord. Behold, this is the spring
  of my desire. See, O Father, look and see--and approve! Let it be pleasing in
  thy mercy's sight that I should find favor with thee--that the secret things of
  thy Word may be opened to me when I knock. I beg this of thee by our Lord Jesus
  Christ, thy Son, the Man of thy right hand, the Son of Man; whom thou madest
  strong for thy purpose as Mediator between thee and us; through whom thou didst
  seek us when we were not seeking thee, but didst seek us so that we might seek
  thee; thy Word, through whom thou madest all things, and me among them; thy
  only Son, through whom thou hast called thy faithful people to adoption, and me
  among them. I beseech it of thee through him who sitteth at thy right hand and
  maketh intercession for us, "in whom are hid all treasures of wisdom and
  knowledge."[418] It is he I seek in thy books. Moses wrote
  of him. He tells us so himself; the Truth tells us so.  
 CHAPTER III
 5. Let me hear and understand how in the beginning thou madest heaven and
  earth.[419] Moses wrote of this; he wrote and passed
  on--moving from thee to thee--and he is now no longer before me. If he were, I
  would lay hold on him and ask him and entreat him solemnly that in thy name he
  would open out these things to me, and I would lend my bodily ears to the
  sounds that came forth out of his mouth. If, however, he spoke in the Hebrew
  language, the sounds would beat on my senses in vain, and nothing would touch
  my mind; but if he spoke in Latin, I would understand what he said. But how
  should I then know whether what he said was true? If I knew even this much,
  would it be that I knew it from him? Indeed, within me, deep inside the
  chambers of my thought, Truth itself--neither Hebrew, nor Greek, nor Latin, nor
  barbarian, without any organs of voice and tongue, without the sound of
  syllables--would say, "He speaks the truth," and I should be assured by this.
  Then I would confidently say to that man of thine, "You speak the truth."[420] However, since I cannot inquire of Moses, I beseech
  thee, O Truth, from whose fullness he spoke truth; I beseech thee, my God,
  forgive my sins, and as thou gavest thy servant the gift to speak these things,
  grant me also the gift to understand them. 
 CHAPTER IV
 6. Look around; there are the heaven and the earth. They cry aloud that they
  were made, for they change and vary. Whatever there is that has not been made,
  and yet has being, has nothing in it that was not there before. This having
  something not already existent is what it means to be changed and varied.
  Heaven and earth thus speak plainly that they did not make themselves: "We are,
  because we have been made; we did not exist before we came to be so that we
  could have made ourselves!" And the voice with which they speak is simply their
  visible presence. It was thou, O Lord, who madest these things. Thou art
  beautiful; thus they are beautiful. Thou art good, thus they are good. Thou
  art; thus they are. But they are not as beautiful, nor as good, nor as truly
  real as thou their Creator art. Compared with thee, they are neither beautiful
  nor good, nor do they even exist. These things we know, thanks be to thee. Yet
  our knowledge is ignorance when it is compared with thy knowledge. 
 CHAPTER V
 7. But how didst thou make the heaven and the earth, and what was the
  tool of such a mighty work as thine? For it was not like a human worker
  fashioning body from body, according to the fancy of his mind, able somehow or
  other to impose on it a form which the mind perceived in itself by its inner
  eye (yet how should even he be able to do this, if thou hadst not made that
  mind?). He imposes the form on something already existing and having some sort
  of being, such as clay, or stone or wood or gold or such like (and where would
  these things come from if thou hadst not furnished them?). For thou madest his
  body for the artisan, and thou madest the mind which directs the limbs; thou
  madest the matter from which he makes anything; thou didst create the capacity
  by which he understands his art and sees within his mind what he may do with
  the things before him; thou gavest him his bodily sense by which, as if he had
  an interpreter, he may communicate from mind to matter what he proposes to do
  and report back to his mind what has been done, that the mind may consult with
  the Truth which presideth over it as to whether what is done is well done.
 All these things praise thee, the Creator of them all. But how didst thou make
  them? How, O God, didst thou make the heaven and earth? For truly, neither in
  heaven nor on earth didst thou make heaven and earth--nor in the air nor in the
  waters, since all of these also belong to the heaven and the earth. Nowhere in
  the whole world didst thou make the whole world, because there was no place
  where it could be made before it was made. And thou didst not hold anything in
  thy hand from which to fashion the heaven and the earth,[421] for where couldst thou have gotten what thou hadst not
  made in order to make something with it? Is there, indeed, anything at all
  except because thou art? Thus thou didst speak and they were made,[422] and by thy Word thou didst make them all. 
 CHAPTER VI
 8. But how didst thou speak? Was it in the same manner in which the voice came
  from the cloud saying, "This is my beloved Son"[423]? For
  that voice sounded forth and died away; it began and ended. The syllables
  sounded and passed away, the second after the first, the third after the
  second, and thence in order, till the very last after all the rest; and silence
  after the last. From this it is clear and plain that it was the action of a
  creature, itself in time, which sounded that voice, obeying thy eternal will.
  And what these words were which were formed at that time the outer ear conveyed
  to the conscious mind, whose inner ear lay attentively open to thy eternal
  Word. But it compared those words which sounded in time with thy eternal word
  sounding in silence and said: "This is different; quite different! These words
  are far below me; they are not even real, for they fly away and pass, but the
  Word of my God remains above me forever." If, then, in words that sound and
  fade away thou didst say that heaven and earth should be made, and thus madest heaven and earth, then there was already some kind of corporeal
  creature before heaven and earth by whose motions in time that voice
  might have had its occurrence in time. But there was nothing corporeal before
  the heaven and the earth; or if there was, then it is certain that already,
  without a time-bound voice, thou hadst created whatever it was out of which
  thou didst make the time-bound voice by which thou didst say, "Let the heaven
  and the earth be made!" For whatever it was out of which such a voice was made
  simply did not exist at all until it was made by thee. Was it decreed by thy
  Word that a body might be made from which such words might come?  
 CHAPTER VII
 9. Thou dost call us, then, to understand the Word--the God who is God with
  thee--which is spoken eternally and by which all things are spoken eternally.
  For what was first spoken was not finished, and then something else spoken
  until the whole series was spoken; but all things, at the same time and
  forever. For, otherwise, we should have time and change and not a true
  eternity, nor a true immortality.
 This I know, O my God, and I give thanks. I know, I confess to thee, O Lord,
  and whoever is not ungrateful for certain truths knows and blesses thee along
  with me. We know, O Lord, this much we know: that in the same proportion as
  anything is not what it was, and is what it was not, in that very same
  proportion it passes away or comes to be. But there is nothing in thy Word that
  passes away or returns to its place; for it is truly immortal and eternal. And,
  therefore, unto the Word coeternal with thee, at the same time and always thou
  sayest all that thou sayest. And whatever thou sayest shall be made is made,
  and thou makest nothing otherwise than by speaking. Still, not all the things
  that thou dost make by speaking are made at the same time and always. 
 CHAPTER VIII
 10. Why is this, I ask of thee, O Lord my God? I see it after a fashion, but I
  do not know how to express it, unless I say that everything that begins to be
  and then ceases to be begins and ceases when it is known in thy eternal Reason
  that it ought to begin or cease--in thy eternal Reason where nothing begins or
  ceases. And this is thy Word, which is also "the Beginning," because it also
  speaks to us.[424] Thus, in the gospel, he spoke through
  the flesh; and this sounded in the outward ears of men so that it might be
  believed and sought for within, and so that it might be found in the eternal
  Truth, in which the good and only Master teacheth all his disciples.[425] There, O Lord, I hear thy voice, the voice of one
  speaking to me, since he who teacheth us speaketh to us. But he that doth not
  teach us doth not really speak to us even when he speaketh. Yet who is it that
  teacheth us unless it be the Truth immutable? For even when we are instructed
  by means of the mutable creation, we are thereby led to the Truth immutable.
  There we learn truly as we stand and hear him, and we rejoice greatly "because
  of the bridegroom's voice,"[426] restoring us to the
  source whence our being comes. And therefore, unless the Beginning remained
  immutable, there would then not be a place to which we might return when we had
  wandered away. But when we return from error, it is through our gaining
  knowledge that we return. In order for us to gain knowledge he teacheth us,
  since he is the Beginning, and speaketh to us. 
 CHAPTER IX
 11. In this Beginning, O God, thou hast made heaven and earth--through thy
  Word, thy Son, thy Power, thy Wisdom, thy Truth: all wondrously speaking and
  wondrously creating. Who shall comprehend such things and who shall tell of it?
  What is it that shineth through me and striketh my heart without injury, so
  that I both shudder and burn? I shudder because I am unlike it; I burn because
  I am like it. It is Wisdom itself that shineth through me, clearing away my
  fog, which so readily overwhelms me so that I faint in it, in the darkness and
  burden of my punishment. For my strength is brought down in neediness, so that
  I cannot endure even my blessings until thou, O Lord, who hast been gracious to
  all my iniquities, also healest all my infirmities--for it is thou who "shalt
  redeem my life from corruption, and crown me with loving-kindness and tender
  mercy, and shalt satisfy my desire with good things so that my youth shall be
  renewed like the eagle's."[427] For by this hope we are
  saved, and through patience we await thy promises. Let him that is able hear
  thee speaking to his inner mind. I will cry out with confidence because of thy
  own oracle, "How wonderful are thy works, O Lord; in wisdom thou hast made them
  all."[428] And this Wisdom is the Beginning, and in that
  Beginning thou hast made heaven and earth. 
 CHAPTER X
 12. Now, are not those still full of their old carnal nature[429] who ask us: "What was God doing before he made
  heaven and earth? For if he was idle," they say, "and doing nothing, then why
  did he not continue in that state forever--doing nothing, as he had always
  done? If any new motion has arisen in God, and a new will to form a creature,
  which he had never before formed, how can that be a true eternity in which an
  act of will occurs that was not there before? For the will of God is not a
  created thing, but comes before the creation--and this is true because nothing
  could be created unless the will of the Creator came before it. The will of
  God, therefore, pertains to his very Essence. Yet if anything has arisen in the
  Essence of God that was not there before, then that Essence cannot truly be
  called eternal. But if it was the eternal will of God that the creation should
  come to be, why, then, is not the creation itself also from eternity?"[430] 
 CHAPTER XI
 13. Those who say these things do not yet understand thee, O Wisdom of God, O
  Light of souls. They do not yet understand how the things are made that are
  made by and in thee. They endeavor to comprehend eternal things, but their
  heart still flies about in the past and future motions of created things, and
  is still unstable. Who shall hold it and fix it so that it may come to rest for
  a little; and then, by degrees, glimpse the glory of that eternity which abides
  forever; and then, comparing eternity with the temporal process in which
  nothing abides, they may see that they are incommensurable? They would see that
  a long time does not become long, except from the many separate events that
  occur in its passage, which cannot be simultaneous. In the Eternal, on the
  other hand, nothing passes away, but the whole is simultaneously present. But
  no temporal process is wholly simultaneous. Therefore, let it[431] see that all time past is forced to move on by the
  incoming future; that all the future follows from the past; and that all, past
  and future, is created and issues out of that which is forever present. Who
  will hold the heart of man that it may stand still and see how the eternity
  which always stands still is itself neither future nor past but expresses
  itself in the times that are future and past? Can my hand do this, or can the
  hand of my mouth bring about so difficult a thing even by persuasion?  
 CHAPTER XII
 14. How, then, shall I respond to him who asks, "What was God doing before he made heaven and earth?" I do not answer, as a certain one is
  reported to have done facetiously (shrugging off the force of the question).
  "He was preparing hell," he said, "for those who pry too deep." It is one thing
  to see the answer; it is another to laugh at the questioner--and for myself I
  do not answer these things thus. More willingly would I have answered, "I do
  not know what I do not know," than cause one who asked a deep question to be
  ridiculed--and by such tactics gain praise for a worthless answer.
 Rather, I say that thou, our God, art the Creator of every creature. And if in
  the term "heaven and earth" every creature is included, I make bold to say
  further: "Before God made heaven and earth, he did not make anything at all.
  For if he did, what did he make unless it were a creature?" I do indeed wish
  that I knew all that I desire to know to my profit as surely as I know that no
  creature was made before any creature was made. 
 CHAPTER XIII
 15. But if the roving thought of someone should wander over the images of past
  time, and wonder that thou, the Almighty God, the All-creating and
  All-sustaining, the Architect of heaven and earth, didst for ages unnumbered
  abstain from so great a work before thou didst actually do it, let him awake
  and consider that he wonders at illusions. For in what temporal medium could
  the unnumbered ages that thou didst not make pass by, since thou art the Author
  and Creator of all the ages? Or what periods of time would those be that were
  not made by thee? Or how could they have already passed away if they had not
  already been? Since, therefore, thou art the Creator of all times, if there was
  any time before thou madest heaven and earth, why is it said that thou
  wast abstaining from working? For thou madest that very time itself, and
  periods could not pass by before thou madest the whole temporal
  procession. But if there was no time before heaven and earth, how, then,
  can it be asked, "What wast thou doing then?" For there was no "then" when
  there was no time.
 16. Nor dost thou precede any given period of time by another period of time.
  Else thou wouldst not precede all periods of time. In the eminence of thy
  ever-present eternity, thou precedest all times past, and extendest beyond all
  future times, for they are still to come--and when they have come, they will be
  past. But "Thou art always the Selfsame and thy years shall have no end."[432] Thy years neither go nor come; but ours both go and
  come in order that all separate moments may come to pass. All thy years stand
  together as one, since they are abiding. Nor do thy years past exclude the
  years to come because thy years do not pass away. All these years of ours shall
  be with thee, when all of them shall have ceased to be. Thy years are but a
  day, and thy day is not recurrent, but always today. Thy "today" yields not to
  tomorrow and does not follow yesterday. Thy "today" is eternity. Therefore,
  thou didst generate the Coeternal, to whom thou didst say, "This day I have
  begotten thee."[433] Thou madest all time and before all
  times thou art, and there was never a time when there was no time. 
 CHAPTER XIV
 17. There was no time, therefore, when thou hadst not made anything, because
  thou hadst made time itself. And there are no times that are coeternal with
  thee, because thou dost abide forever; but if times should abide, they would
  not be times.
 For what is time? Who can easily and briefly explain it? Who can even
  comprehend it in thought or put the answer into words? Yet is it not true that
  in conversation we refer to nothing more familiarly or knowingly than time? And
  surely we understand it when we speak of it; we understand it also when we hear
  another speak of it.
 What, then, is time? If no one asks me, I know what it is. If I wish to explain
  it to him who asks me, I do not know. Yet I say with confidence that I know
  that if nothing passed away, there would be no past time; and if nothing were
  still coming, there would be no future time; and if there were nothing at all,
  there would be no present time.
 But, then, how is it that there are the two times, past and future, when even
  the past is now no longer and the future is now not yet? But if the present
  were always present, and did not pass into past time, it obviously would not be
  time but eternity. If, then, time present--if it be time--comes into existence
  only because it passes into time past, how can we say that even this is, since
  the cause of its being is that it will cease to be? Thus, can we not truly say
  that time is only as it tends toward nonbeing? 
 CHAPTER XV
 18. And yet we speak of a long time and a short time; but never speak this way
  except of time past and future. We call a hundred years ago, for example, a
  long time past. In like manner, we should call a hundred years hence a long
  time to come. But we call ten days ago a short time past; and ten days hence a
  short time to come. But in what sense is something long or short that is
  nonexistent? For the past is not now, and the future is not yet. Therefore, let
  us not say, "It is long"; instead, let us say of the past, "It was long," and of the future, "It will be long." And yet, O Lord,
  my Light, shall not thy truth make mockery of man even here? For that long time
  past: was it long when it was already past, or when it was still present? For
  it might have been long when there was a period that could be long, but when it
  was past, it no longer was. In that case, that which was not at all could not
  be long. Let us not, therefore, say, "Time past was long," for we shall not
  discover what it was that was long because, since it is past, it no longer
  exists. Rather, let us say that "time present was long, because when it
  was present it was long." For then it had not yet passed on so as not to
  be, and therefore it still was in a state that could be called long. But after
  it passed, it ceased to be long simply because it ceased to be.
 19. Let us, therefore, O human soul, see whether present time can be long, for
  it has been given you to feel and measure the periods of time. How, then, will
  you answer me?
 Is a hundred years when present a long time? But, first, see whether a hundred
  years can be present at once. For if the first year in the century is current,
  then it is present time, and the other ninety and nine are still future.
  Therefore, they are not yet. But, then, if the second year is current, one year
  is already past, the second present, and all the rest are future. And thus, if
  we fix on any middle year of this century as present, those before it are past,
  those after it are future. Therefore, a hundred years cannot be present all at
  once.
 Let us see, then, whether the year that is now current can be present. For if
  its first month is current, then the rest are future; if the second, the first
  is already past, and the remainder are not yet. Therefore, the current year is
  not present all at once. And if it is not present as a whole, then the year is
  not present. For it takes twelve months to make the year, from which each
  individual month which is current is itself present one at a time, but the rest
  are either past or future.
 20. Thus it comes out that time present, which we found was the only time that
  could be called "long," has been cut down to the space of scarcely a single
  day. But let us examine even that, for one day is never present as a whole. For
  it is made up of twenty-four hours, divided between night and day. The first of
  these hours has the rest of them as future, and the last of them has the rest
  as past; but any of those between has those that preceded it as past and those
  that succeed it as future. And that one hour itself passes away in fleeting
  fractions. The part of it that has fled is past; what remains is still future.
  If any fraction of time be conceived that cannot now be divided even into the
  most minute momentary point, this alone is what we may call time present. But
  this flies so rapidly from future to past that it cannot be extended by any
  delay. For if it is extended, it is then divided into past and future. But the
  present has no extension[434] whatever.
 Where, therefore, is that time which we may call "long"? Is it future? Actually
  we do not say of the future, "It is long," for it has not yet come to be, so as
  to be long. Instead, we say, "It will be long." When will it be? For
  since it is future, it will not be long, for what may be long is not yet. It
  will be long only when it passes from the future which is not as yet, and will
  have begun to be present, so that there can be something that may be long. But
  in that case, time present cries aloud, in the words we have already heard,
  that it cannot be "long."  
 CHAPTER XVI
 21. And yet, O Lord, we do perceive intervals of time, and we compare them with
  each other, and we say that some are longer and others are shorter. We even
  measure how much longer or shorter this time may be than that time. And we say
  that this time is twice as long, or three times as long, while this other time
  is only just as long as that other. But we measure the passage of time when we
  measure the intervals of perception. But who can measure times past which now
  are no longer, or times future which are not yet--unless perhaps someone will
  dare to say that what does not exist can be measured? Therefore, while time is
  passing, it can be perceived and measured; but when it is past, it cannot,
  since it is not. 
 CHAPTER XVII
 22. I am seeking the truth, O Father; I am not affirming it. O my God, direct
  and rule me.
 Who is there who will tell me that there are not three times--as we learned
  when boys and as we have also taught boys--time past, time present, and time
  future? Who can say that there is only time present because the other two do
  not exist? Or do they also exist; but when, from the future, time becomes
  present, it proceeds from some secret place; and when, from times present, it
  becomes past, it recedes into some secret place? For where have those men who
  have foretold the future seen the things foretold, if then they were not yet
  existing? For what does not exist cannot be seen. And those who tell of things
  past could not speak of them as if they were true, if they did not see them in
  their minds. These things could in no way be discerned if they did not exist.
  There are therefore times present and times past. 
 CHAPTER XVIII
 23. Give me leave, O Lord, to seek still further. O my Hope, let not my purpose
  be confounded. For if there are times past and future, I wish to know where
  they are. But if I have not yet succeeded in this, I still know that wherever
  they are, they are not there as future or past, but as present. For if they are
  there as future, they are there as "not yet"; if they are there as past, they
  are there as "no longer." Wherever they are and whatever they are they exist
  therefore only as present. Although we tell of past things as true, they are
  drawn out of the memory--not the things themselves, which have already passed,
  but words constructed from the images of the perceptions which were formed in
  the mind, like footprints in their passage through the senses. My childhood,
  for instance, which is no longer, still exists in time past, which does not now
  exist. But when I call to mind its image and speak of it, I see it in the
  present because it is still in my memory. Whether there is a similar
  explanation for the foretelling of future events--that is, of the images of
  things which are not yet seen as if they were already existing--I confess, O my
  God, I do not know. But this I certainly do know: that we generally think ahead
  about our future actions, and this premeditation is in time present; but that
  the action which we premeditate is not yet, because it is still future. When we
  shall have started the action and have begun to do what we were premeditating,
  then that action will be in time present, because then it is no longer in time
  future.
 24. Whatever may be the manner of this secret foreseeing of future things,
  nothing can be seen except what exists. But what exists now is not future, but
  present. When, therefore, they say that future events are seen, it is not the
  events themselves, for they do not exist as yet (that is, they are still in
  time future), but perhaps, instead, their causes and their signs are seen,
  which already do exist. Therefore, to those already beholding these causes and
  signs, they are not future, but present, and from them future things are
  predicted because they are conceived in the mind. These conceptions, however,
  exist now, and those who predict those things see these conceptions
  before them in time present.
 Let me take an example from the vast multitude and variety of such things. I
  see the dawn; I predict that the sun is about to rise. What I see is in time
  present, what I predict is in time future--not that the sun is future, for it
  already exists; but its rising is future, because it is not yet. Yet I could
  not predict even its rising, unless I had an image of it in my mind; as,
  indeed, I do even now as I speak. But that dawn which I see in the sky is not
  the rising of the sun (though it does precede it), nor is it a conception in my
  mind. These two[435] are seen in time present, in order
  that the event which is in time future may be predicted.
 Future events, therefore, are not yet. And if they are not yet, they do not
  exist. And if they do not exist, they cannot be seen at all, but they can be
  predicted from things present, which now are and are seen. 
 CHAPTER XIX
 25. Now, therefore, O Ruler of thy creatures, what is the mode by which thou
  teachest souls those things which are still future? For thou hast taught thy
  prophets. How dost thou, to whom nothing is future, teach future things--or
  rather teach things present from the signs of things future? For what does not
  exist certainly cannot be taught. This way of thine is too far from my sight;
  it is too great for me, I cannot attain to it.[436] But I
  shall be enabled by thee, when thou wilt grant it, O sweet Light of my secret
  eyes. 
 CHAPTER XX
 26. But even now it is manifest and clear that there are neither times future
  nor times past. Thus it is not properly said that there are three times, past,
  present, and future. Perhaps it might be said rightly that there are three
  times: a time present of things past; a time present of things present; and a
  time present of things future. For these three do coexist somehow in the soul,
  for otherwise I could not see them. The time present of things past is memory;
  the time present of things present is direct experience; the time present of
  things future is expectation.[437] If we are allowed to
  speak of these things so, I see three times, and I grant that there are three.
  Let it still be said, then, as our misapplied custom has it: "There are three
  times, past, present, and future." I shall not be troubled by it, nor argue,
  nor object--always provided that what is said is understood, so that neither
  the future nor the past is said to exist now. There are but few things about
  which we speak properly--and many more about which we speak improperly--though
  we understand one another's meaning.  
 CHAPTER XXI
 27. I have said, then, that we measure periods of time as they pass so that we
  can say that this time is twice as long as that one or that this is just as
  long as that, and so on for the other fractions of time which we can count by
  measuring.
 So, then, as I was saying, we measure periods of time as they pass. And if
  anyone asks me, "How do you know this?", I can answer: "I know because we
  measure. We could not measure things that do not exist, and things past and
  future do not exist." But how do we measure present time since it has no
  extension? It is measured while it passes, but when it has passed it is not
  measured; for then there is nothing that could be measured. But whence, and
  how, and whither does it pass while it is being measured? Whence, but from the
  future? Which way, save through the present? Whither, but into the past?
  Therefore, from what is not yet, through what has no length, it passes into
  what is now no longer. But what do we measure, unless it is a time of some
  length? For we cannot speak of single, and double, and triple, and equal, and
  all the other ways in which we speak of time, except in terms of the length of
  the periods of time. But in what "length," then, do we measure passing time? Is
  it in the future, from which it passes over? But what does not yet exist cannot
  be measured. Or, is it in the present, through which it passes? But what has no
  length we cannot measure. Or is it in the past into which it passes? But what
  is no longer we cannot measure. 
 CHAPTER XXII
 28. My soul burns ardently to understand this most intricate enigma. O Lord my
  God, O good Father, I beseech thee through Christ, do not close off these
  things, both the familiar and the obscure, from my desire. Do not bar it from
  entering into them; but let their light dawn by thy enlightening mercy, O Lord.
  Of whom shall I inquire about these things? And to whom shall I confess my
  ignorance of them with greater profit than to thee, to whom these studies of
  mine (ardently longing to understand thy Scriptures) are not a bore? Give me
  what I love, for I do love it; and this thou hast given me. O Father, who truly
  knowest how to give good gifts to thy children, give this to me. Grant it,
  since I have undertaken to understand it, and hard labor is my lot until thou
  openest it. I beseech thee, through Christ and in his name, the Holy of Holies,
  let no man interrupt me. "For I have believed, and therefore do I speak."[438] This is my hope; for this I live: that I may
  contemplate the joys of my Lord.[439] Behold, thou hast
  made my days grow old, and they pass away--and how I do not know.
 We speak of this time and that time, and these times and those times: "How long
  ago since he said this?" "How long ago since he did this?" "How long ago since
  I saw that?" "This syllable is twice as long as that single short syllable."
  These words we say and hear, and we are understood and we understand. They are
  quite commonplace and ordinary, and still the meaning of these very same things
  lies deeply hid and its discovery is still to come. 
 CHAPTER XXIII
 29. I once heard a learned man say that the motions of the sun, moon, and stars
  constituted time; and I did not agree. For why should not the motions of all
  bodies constitute time? What if the lights of heaven should cease, and a
  potter's wheel still turn round: would there be no time by which we might
  measure those rotations and say either that it turned at equal intervals, or,
  if it moved now more slowly and now more quickly, that some rotations were
  longer and others shorter? And while we were saying this, would we not also be
  speaking in time? Or would there not be in our words some syllables that were
  long and others short, because the first took a longer time to sound, and the
  others a shorter time? O God, grant men to see in a small thing the notions
  that are common[440] to all things, both great and small.
  Both the stars and the lights of heaven are "for signs and seasons, and for
  days and years."[441] This is doubtless the case, but just
  as I should not say that the circuit of that wooden wheel was a day, neither
  would that learned man say that there was, therefore, no time.
 30. I thirst to know the power and the nature of time, by which we measure the
  motions of bodies, and say, for example, that this motion is twice as long as
  that. For I ask, since the word "day" refers not only to the length of time
  that the sun is above the earth (which separates day from night), but also
  refers to the sun's entire circuit from east all the way around to east--on
  account of which we can say, "So many days have passed" (the nights being
  included when we say, "So many days," and their lengths not counted
  separately)--since, then, the day is ended by the motion of the sun and by his
  passage from east to east, I ask whether the motion itself is the day, or
  whether the day is the period in which that motion is completed; or both? For
  if the sun's passage is the day, then there would be a day even if the sun
  should finish his course in as short a period as an hour. If the motion itself
  is the day, then it would not be a day if from one sunrise to another there
  were a period no longer than an hour. But the sun would have to go round
  twenty-four times to make just one day. If it is both, then that could not be
  called a day if the sun ran his entire course in the period of an hour; nor
  would it be a day if, while the sun stood still, as much time passed as the sun
  usually covered during his whole course, from morning to morning. I shall,
  therefore, not ask any more what it is that is called a day, but rather what
  time is, for it is by time that we measure the circuit of the sun, and would be
  able to say that it was finished in half the period of time that it customarily
  takes if it were completed in a period of only twelve hours. If, then, we
  compare these periods, we could call one of them a single and the other a
  double period, as if the sun might run his course from east to east sometimes
  in a single period and sometimes in a double period.
 Let no man tell me, therefore, that the motions of the heavenly bodies
  constitute time. For when the sun stood still at the prayer of a certain man in
  order that he might gain his victory in battle, the sun stood still but time
  went on. For in as long a span of time as was sufficient the battle was fought
  and ended.[442]
 I see, then, that time is a certain kind of extension. But do I see it, or do I
  only seem to? Thou, O Light and Truth, wilt show me. 
 CHAPTER XXIV
 31. Dost thou command that I should agree if anyone says that time is "the
  motion of a body"? Thou dost not so command. For I hear that no body is moved
  but in time; this thou tellest me. But that the motion of a body itself is time
  I do not hear; thou dost not say so. For when a body is moved, I measure by
  time how long it was moving from the time when it began to be moved until it
  stopped. And if I did not see when it began to be moved, and if it continued to
  move so that I could not see when it stopped, I could not measure the movement,
  except from the time when I began to see it until I stopped. But if I look at
  it for a long time, I can affirm only that the time is long but not how long it
  may be. This is because when we say, "How long?", we are speaking comparatively
  as: "This is as long as that," or, "This is twice as long as that"; or other
  such similar ratios. But if we were able to observe the point in space where
  and from which the body, which is moved, comes and the point to which it is
  moved; or if we can observe its parts moving as in a wheel, we can say how long
  the movement of the body took or the movement of its parts from this place to
  that. Since, therefore, the motion of a body is one thing, and the norm by
  which we measure how long it takes is another thing, we cannot see which of
  these two is to be called time. For, although a body is sometimes moved and
  sometimes stands still, we measure not only its motion but also its rest as
  well; and both by time! Thus we say, "It stood still as long as it moved," or,
  "It stood still twice or three times as long as it moved"--or any other ratio
  which our measuring has either determined or imagined, either roughly or
  precisely, according to our custom. Therefore, time is not the motion of a body.  
 CHAPTER XXV
 32. And I confess to thee, O Lord, that I am still ignorant as to what time is.
  And again I confess to thee, O Lord, that I know that I am speaking all these
  things in time, and that I have already spoken of time a long time, and that
  "very long" is not long except when measured by the duration of time. How,
  then, do I know this, when I do not know what time is? Or, is it possible that
  I do not know how I can express what I do know? Alas for me! I do not even know
  the extent of my own ignorance. Behold, O my God, in thy presence I do not lie.
  As my heart is, so I speak. Thou shalt light my candle; thou, O Lord my God,
  wilt enlighten my darkness.[443] 
 CHAPTER XXVI
 33. Does not my soul most truly confess to thee that I do measure intervals of
  time? But what is it that I thus measure, O my God, and how is it that I do not
  know what I measure? I measure the motion of a body by time, but the time
  itself I do not measure. But, truly, could I measure the motion of a body--how
  long it takes, how long it is in motion from this place to that--unless I could
  measure the time in which it is moving?
 How, then, do I measure this time itself? Do we measure a longer time by a
  shorter time, as we measure the length of a crossbeam in terms of cubits?[444] Thus, we can say that the length of a long syllable is
  measured by the length of a short syllable and thus say that the long syllable
  is double. So also we measure the length of poems by the length of the lines,
  and the length of the line by the length of the feet, and the length of the
  feet by the length of the syllable, and the length of the long syllables by the
  length of the short ones. We do not measure by pages--for in that way we would
  measure space rather than time--but when we speak the words as they pass by we
  say: "It is a long stanza, because it is made up of so many verses; they are
  long verses because they consist of so many feet; they are long feet because
  they extend over so many syllables; this is a long syllable because it is twice
  the length of a short one."
 But no certain measure of time is obtained this way; since it is possible that
  if a shorter verse is pronounced slowly, it may take up more time than a longer
  one if it is pronounced hurriedly. The same would hold for a stanza, or a foot,
  or a syllable. From this it appears to me that time is nothing other than
  extendedness;[445] but extendedness of what I do not know.
  This is a marvel to me. The extendedness may be of the mind itself. For what is
  it I measure, I ask thee, O my God, when I say either, roughly, "This time is
  longer than that," or, more precisely, "This is twice as long as that."
  I know that I am measuring time. But I am not measuring the future, for it is
  not yet; and I am not measuring the present because it is extended by no
  length; and I am not measuring the past because it no longer is. What is it,
  therefore, that I am measuring? Is it time in its passage, but not time past
  [praetereuntia tempora, non praeterita]? This is what I have been saying. 
 CHAPTER XXVII
 34. Press on, O my mind, and attend with all your power. God is our Helper: "it
  is he that hath made us and not we ourselves."[446] Give
  heed where the truth begins to dawn.[447] Suppose now that
  a bodily voice begins to sound, and continues to sound--on and on--and then
  ceases. Now there is silence. The voice is past, and there is no longer a
  sound. It was future before it sounded, and could not be measured because it
  was not yet; and now it cannot be measured because it is no longer. Therefore,
  while it was sounding, it might have been measured because then there was
  something that could be measured. But even then it did not stand still, for it
  was in motion and was passing away. Could it, on that account, be any more
  readily measured? For while it was passing away, it was being extended into
  some interval of time in which it might be measured, since the present has no
  length. Supposing, though, that it might have been measured--then also suppose
  that another voice had begun to sound and is still sounding without any
  interruption to break its continued flow. We can measure it only while it is
  sounding, for when it has ceased to sound it will be already past and there
  will not be anything there that can be measured. Let us measure it exactly; and
  let us say how much it is. But while it is sounding, it cannot be measured
  except from the instant when it began to sound, down to the final moment when
  it left off. For we measure the time interval itself from some beginning point
  to some end. This is why a voice that has not yet ended cannot be measured, so
  that one could say how long or how briefly it will continue. Nor can it be said
  to be equal to another voice or single or double in comparison to it or
  anything like this. But when it is ended, it is no longer. How, therefore, may
  it be measured? And yet we measure times; not those which are not yet, nor
  those which no longer are, nor those which are stretched out by some delay, nor
  those which have no limit. Therefore, we measure neither times future nor times
  past, nor times present, nor times passing by; and yet we do measure times.
 35. Deus Creator omnium[448]: this verse of eight
  syllables alternates between short and long syllables. The four short
  ones--that is, the first, third, fifth, and seventh--are single in relation to
  the four long ones--that is, the second, fourth, sixth, and eighth. Each of the
  long ones is double the length of each of the short ones. I affirm this and
  report it, and common sense perceives that this indeed is the case. By common
  sense, then, I measure a long syllable by a short one, and I find that it is
  twice as long. But when one sounds after another, if the first be short and the
  latter long, how can I hold the short one and how can I apply it to the long
  one as a measure, so that I can discover that the long one is twice as long,
  when, in fact, the long one does not begin to sound until the short one leaves
  off sounding? That same long syllable I do not measure as present, since I
  cannot measure it until it is ended; but its ending is its passing away.
 What is it, then, that I can measure? Where is the short syllable by which I
  measure? Where is the long one that I am measuring? Both have sounded, have
  flown away, have passed on, and are no longer. And still I measure, and I
  confidently answer--as far as a trained ear can be trusted--that this syllable
  is single and that syllable double. And I could not do this unless they both
  had passed and were ended. Therefore I do not measure them, for they do not
  exist any more. But I measure something in my memory which remains fixed.
 36. It is in you, O mind of mine, that I measure the periods of time. Do not
  shout me down that it exists [objectively]; do not overwhelm yourself with the
  turbulent flood of your impressions. In you, as I have said, I measure the
  periods of time. I measure as time present the impression that things make on
  you as they pass by and what remains after they have passed by--I do not
  measure the things themselves which have passed by and left their impression on
  you. This is what I measure when I measure periods of time. Either, then, these
  are the periods of time or else I do not measure time at all.
 What are we doing when we measure silence, and say that this silence has lasted
  as long as that voice lasts? Do we not project our thought to the measure of a
  sound, as if it were then sounding, so that we can say something concerning the
  intervals of silence in a given span of time? For, even when both the voice and
  the tongue are still, we review--in thought--poems and verses, and discourse of
  various kinds or various measures of motions, and we specify their time
  spans--how long this is in relation to that--just as if we were speaking them
  aloud. If anyone wishes to utter a prolonged sound, and if, in forethought, he
  has decided how long it should be, that man has already in silence gone through
  a span of time, and committed his sound to memory. Thus he begins to speak and
  his voice sounds until it reaches the predetermined end. It has truly sounded
  and will go on sounding. But what is already finished has already sounded and
  what remains will still sound. Thus it passes on, until the present intention
  carries the future over into the past. The past increases by the diminution of
  the future until by the consumption of all the future all is past.[449]  
 CHAPTER XXVIII
 37. But how is the future diminished or consumed when it does not yet exist? Or
  how does the past, which exists no longer, increase, unless it is that in the
  mind in which all this happens there are three functions? For the mind expects,
  it attends, and it remembers; so that what it expects passes into what it
  remembers by way of what it attends to. Who denies that future things do not
  exist as yet? But still there is already in the mind the expectation of things
  still future. And who denies that past things now exist no longer? Still there
  is in the mind the memory of things past. Who denies that time present has no
  length, since it passes away in a moment? Yet, our attention has a continuity
  and it is through this that what is present may proceed to become absent.
  Therefore, future time, which is nonexistent, is not long; but "a long future"
  is "a long expectation of the future." Nor is time past, which is now no
  longer, long; a "long past" is "a long memory of the past."
 38. I am about to repeat a psalm that I know. Before I begin, my attention
  encompasses the whole, but once I have begun, as much of it as becomes past
  while I speak is still stretched out in my memory. The span of my action is
  divided between my memory, which contains what I have repeated, and my
  expectation, which contains what I am about to repeat. Yet my attention is
  continually present with me, and through it what was future is carried over so
  that it becomes past. The more this is done and repeated, the more the memory
  is enlarged--and expectation is shortened--until the whole expectation is
  exhausted. Then the whole action is ended and passed into memory. And what
  takes place in the entire psalm takes place also in each individual part of it
  and in each individual syllable. This also holds in the even longer action of
  which that psalm is only a portion. The same holds in the whole life of man, of
  which all the actions of men are parts. The same holds in the whole age of the
  sons of men, of which all the lives of men are parts. 
 CHAPTER XXIX
 39. But "since thy loving-kindness is better than life itself,"[450] observe how my life is but a stretching out, and how
  thy right hand has upheld me in my Lord, the Son of Man, the Mediator between
  thee, the One, and us, the many--in so many ways and by so many means. Thus
  through him I may lay hold upon him in whom I am also laid hold upon; and I may
  be gathered up from my old way of life to follow that One and to forget that
  which is behind, no longer stretched out but now pulled together
  again--stretching forth not to what shall be and shall pass away but to those
  things that are before me. Not distractedly now, but intently, I follow
  on for the prize of my heavenly calling,[451] where I may
  hear the sound of thy praise and contemplate thy delights, which neither come
  to be nor pass away.
 But now my years are spent in mourning.[452] And thou, O
  Lord, art my comfort, my eternal Father. But I have been torn between the
  times, the order of which I do not know, and my thoughts, even the inmost and
  deepest places of my soul, are mangled by various commotions until I shall flow
  together into thee, purged and molten in the fire of thy love. 
 CHAPTER XXX
 40. And I will be immovable and fixed in thee, and thy truth will be my mold.
  And I shall not have to endure the questions of those men who, as if in a
  morbid disease, thirst for more than they can hold and say, "What did God make
  before he made heaven and earth?" or, "How did it come into his mind to make
  something when he had never before made anything?" Grant them, O Lord, to
  consider well what they are saying; and grant them to see that where there is
  no time they cannot say "never." When, therefore, he is said "never to have
  made" something--what is this but to say that it was made in no time at all?
  Let them therefore see that there could be no time without a created world, and
  let them cease to speak vanity of this kind. Let them also be stretched out to
  those things which are before them, and understand that thou, the eternal
  Creator of all times, art before all times and that no times are coeternal with
  thee; nor is any creature, even if there is a creature "above time." 
 CHAPTER XXXI 
 41. O Lord my God, what a chasm there is in thy deep secret! How far short of
  it have the consequences of my sins cast me? Heal my eyes, that I may enjoy thy
  light. Surely, if there is a mind that so greatly abounds in knowledge and
  foreknowledge, to which all things past and future are as well known as one
  psalm is well known to me, that mind would be an exceeding marvel and
  altogether astonishing. For whatever is past and whatever is yet to come would
  be no more concealed from him than the past and future of that psalm were
  hidden from me when I was chanting it: how much of it had been sung from the
  beginning and what and how much still remained till the end. But far be it from
  thee, O Creator of the universe, and Creator of our souls and bodies--far be it
  from thee that thou shouldst merely know all things past and future. Far, far
  more wonderfully, and far more mysteriously thou knowest them. For it is not as
  the feelings of one singing familiar songs, or hearing a familiar song in
  which, because of his expectation of words still to come and his remembrance of
  those that are past, his feelings are varied and his senses are divided. This
  is not the way that anything happens to thee, who art unchangeably eternal,
  that is, the truly eternal Creator of minds. As in the beginning thou knewest
  both the heaven and the earth without any change in thy knowledge, so thou
  didst make heaven and earth in their beginnings without any division in thy
  action.[453] Let him who understands this confess to thee;
  and let him who does not understand also confess to thee! Oh, exalted as thou
  art, still the humble in heart are thy dwelling place! For thou liftest them
  who are cast down and they fall not for whom thou art the Most High.[454]
  
  
BOOK TWELVE
The mode of creation and the truth of Scripture. Augustine
  explores the relation of the visible and formed matter of heaven and earth to
  the prior matrix from which it was formed. This leads to an intricate analysis
  of "unformed matter" and the primal "possibility" from which God created,
  itself created de nihilo. He finds a reference to this in the
    misconstrued Scriptural phrase "the heaven of heavens." Realizing that his
    interpretation of Gen. 1:1, 2, is not self-evidently the only possibility,
    Augustine turns to an elaborate discussion of the multiplicity of perspectives
    in hermeneutics and, in the course of this, reviews the various possibilities
    of true interpretation of his Scripture text. He emphasizes the importance of
    tolerance where there are plural options, and confidence where basic Christian
    faith is concerned.
 CHAPTER I
 1. My heart is deeply stirred, O Lord, when in this poor life of mine the words
  of thy Holy Scripture strike upon it. This is why the poverty of the human
  intellect expresses itself in an abundance of language. Inquiry is more
  loquacious than discovery. Demanding takes longer than obtaining; and the hand
  that knocks is more active than the hand that receives. But we have the
  promise, and who shall break it? "If God be for us, who can be against us?"[455] "Ask, and you shall receive; seek, and you shall find;
  knock, and it shall be opened unto you; for everyone that asks receives, and he
  who seeks finds, and to him that knocks, it shall be opened."[456] These are thy own promises, and who need fear to be
  deceived when truth promises? 
 CHAPTER II
 2. In lowliness my tongue confesses to thy exaltation, for thou madest heaven
  and earth. This heaven which I see, and this earth on which I walk--from which
  came this "earth" that I carry about me--thou didst make.
 But where is that heaven of heavens, O Lord, of which we hear in the words of
  the psalm, "The heaven of heavens is the Lord's, but the earth he hath given to
  the children of men"?[457] Where is the heaven that we
  cannot see, in relation to which all that we can see is earth? For this whole
  corporeal creation has been beautifully formed--though not everywhere in its
  entirety--and our earth is the lowest of these levels. Still, compared with
  that heaven of heavens, even the heaven of our own earth is only earth. Indeed,
  it is not absurd to call each of those two great bodies[458] "earth" in comparison with that ineffable heaven which
  is the Lord's, and not for the sons of men. 
 CHAPTER III 
 3. And truly this earth was invisible and unformed,[459] and there was an inexpressibly profound abyss[460] above
  which there was no light since it had no form. Thou didst command it written
  that "darkness was on the face of the deep."[461] What
  else is darkness except the absence of light? For if there had been light,
  where would it have been except by being over all, showing itself rising aloft
  and giving light? Therefore, where there was no light as yet, why was it that
  darkness was present, unless it was that light was absent? Darkness, then, was
  heavy upon it, because the light from above was absent; just as there is
  silence where there is no sound. And what is it to have silence anywhere but
  simply not to have sound? Hast thou not, O Lord, taught this soul which
  confesses to thee? Hast thou not thus taught me, O Lord, that before thou didst
  form and separate this formless matter there was nothing: neither color,
  nor figure, nor body, nor spirit? Yet it was not absolutely nothing; it was a
  certain formlessness without any shape. 
 CHAPTER IV
 4. What, then, should that formlessness be called so that somehow it might be
  indicated to those of sluggish mind, unless we use some word in common speech?
  But what can be found anywhere in the world nearer to a total formlessness than
  the earth and the abyss? Because of their being on the lowest level, they are
  less beautiful than are the other and higher parts, all translucent and
  shining. Therefore, why may I not consider the formlessness of matter--which
  thou didst create without shapely form, from which to make this shapely
  world--as fittingly indicated to men by the phrase, "The earth invisible and
  unformed"? 
 CHAPTER V
 5. When our thought seeks something for our sense to fasten to [in this concept
  of unformed matter], and when it says to itself, "It is not an intelligible
  form, such as life or justice, since it is the material for bodies; and it is
  not a former perception, for there is nothing in the invisible and unformed
  which can be seen and felt"--while human thought says such things to itself, it
  may be attempting either to know by being ignorant or by knowing how not to
  know. 
 CHAPTER VI
 6. But if, O Lord, I am to confess to thee, by my mouth and my pen, the whole
  of what thou hast taught me concerning this unformed matter, I must say first
  of all that when I first heard of such matter and did not understand it--and
  those who told me of it could not understand it either--I conceived of it as
  having countless and varied forms. Thus, I did not think about it rightly. My
  mind in its agitation used to turn up all sorts of foul and horrible "forms";
  but still they were "forms." And still I called it formless, not because it was
  unformed, but because it had what seemed to me a kind of form that my mind
  turned away from, as bizarre and incongruous, before which my human weakness
  was confused. And even what I did conceive of as unformed was so, not because
  it was deprived of all form, but only as it compared with more beautiful forms.
  Right reason, then, persuaded me that I ought to remove altogether all vestiges
  of form whatever if I wished to conceive matter that was wholly unformed; and
  this I could not do. For I could more readily imagine that what was deprived of
  all form simply did not exist than I could conceive of anything between form
  and nothing--something which was neither formed nor nothing, something that was
  unformed and nearly nothing.
 Thus my mind ceased to question my spirit--filled as it was with the images of
  formed bodies, changing and varying them according to its will. And so I
  applied myself to the bodies themselves and looked more deeply into their
  mutability, by which they cease to be what they had been and begin to be what
  they were not. This transition from form to form I had regarded as involving
  something like a formless condition, though not actual nothingness.[462]
 But I desired to know, not to guess. And, if my voice and my pen were to
  confess to thee all the various knots thou hast untied for me about this
  question, who among my readers could endure to grasp the whole of the account?
  Still, despite this, my heart will not cease to give honor to thee or to sing
  thy praises concerning those things which it is not able to express.[463]
 For the mutability of mutable things carries with it the possibility of all
  those forms into which mutable things can be changed. But this mutability--what
  is it? Is it soul? Is it body? Is it the external appearance of soul or body?
  Could it be said, "Nothing was something," and "That which is, is not"? If this
  were possible, I would say that this was it, and in some such manner it must
  have been in order to receive these visible and composite forms.[464]  
 CHAPTER VII
 7. Whence and how was this, unless it came from thee, from whom all things are,
  in so far as they are? But the farther something is from thee, the more unlike
  thee it is--and this is not a matter of distance or place.
 Thus it was that thou, O Lord, who art not one thing in one place and another
  thing in another place but the Selfsame, and the Selfsame, and the
  Selfsame--"Holy, Holy, Holy, Lord God Almighty"[465]--thus
  it was that in the beginning, and through thy Wisdom which is from thee and
  born of thy substance, thou didst create something and that out of nothing.[466] For thou didst create the heaven and the earth--not out
  of thyself, for then they would be equal to thy only Son and thereby to thee.
  And there is no sense in which it would be right that anything should be equal
  to thee that was not of thee. But what else besides thee was there out of which
  thou mightest create these things, O God, one Trinity, and trine Unity?[467] And, therefore, it was out of nothing at all that thou
  didst create the heaven and earth--something great and something small--for
  thou art Almighty and Good, and able to make all things good: even the great
  heaven and the small earth. Thou wast, and there was nothing else from which
  thou didst create heaven and earth: these two things, one near thee, the other
  near to nothing; the one to which only thou art superior, the other to which
  nothing else is inferior. 
 CHAPTER VIII
 8. That heaven of heavens was thine, O Lord, but the earth which thou didst
  give to the sons of men to be seen and touched was not then in the same form as
  that in which we now see it and touch it. For then it was invisible and
  unformed and there was an abyss over which there was no light. The darkness was
  truly over the abyss, that is, more than just in the abyss. For
  this abyss of waters which now is visible has even in its depths a certain
  light appropriate to its nature, perceptible in some fashion to fishes and the
  things that creep about on the bottom of it. But then the entire abyss was
  almost nothing, since it was still altogether unformed. Yet even there, there
  was something that had the possibility of being formed. For thou, O Lord, hadst
  made the world out of unformed matter, and this thou didst make out of nothing
  and didst make it into almost nothing. From it thou hast then made these great
  things which we, the sons of men, marvel at. For this corporeal heaven is truly
  marvelous, this firmament between the water and the waters which thou didst
  make on the second day after the creation of light, saying, "Let it be done,"
  and it was done.[468] This firmament thou didst call
  heaven, that is, the heaven of this earth and sea which thou madest on the
  third day, giving a visible shape to the unformed matter which thou hadst made
  before all the days. For even before any day thou hadst already made a heaven,
  but that was the heaven of this heaven: for in the beginning thou hadst made
  heaven and earth.
 But this earth itself which thou hadst made was unformed matter; it was
  invisible and unformed, and darkness was over the abyss. Out of this invisible
  and unformed earth, out of this formlessness which is almost nothing, thou
  didst then make all these things of which the changeable world consists--and
  yet does not fully consist in itself[469]--for its very
  changeableness appears in this, that its times and seasons can be observed and
  numbered. The periods of time are measured by the changes of things, while the
  forms, whose matter is the invisible earth of which we have spoken, are varied
  and altered. 
 CHAPTER IX
 9. And therefore the Spirit, the Teacher of thy servant,[470] when he mentions that "in the beginning thou madest
  heaven and earth," says nothing about times and is silent as to the days. For,
  clearly, that heaven of heavens which thou didst create in the beginning is in
  some way an intellectual creature, although in no way coeternal with thee, O
  Trinity. Yet it is nonetheless a partaker in thy eternity. Because of the
  sweetness of its most happy contemplation of thee, it is greatly restrained in
  its own mutability and cleaves to thee without any lapse from the time in which
  it was created, surpassing all the rolling change of time. But this
  shapelessness--this earth invisible and unformed--was not numbered among the
  days itself. For where there is no shape or order there is nothing that either
  comes or goes, and where this does not occur there certainly are no days, nor
  any vicissitude of duration. 
 CHAPTER X
 10. O Truth, O Light of my heart, let not my own darkness speak to me! I had
  fallen into that darkness and was darkened thereby. But in it, even in its
  depths, I came to love thee. I went astray and still I remembered thee. I heard
  thy voice behind me, bidding me return, though I could scarcely hear it for the
  tumults of my boisterous passions. And now, behold, I am returning, burning and
  thirsting after thy fountain. Let no one hinder me; here will I drink and so
  have life. Let me not be my own life; for of myself I have lived badly. I was
  death to myself; in thee I have revived. Speak to me; converse with me. I have
  believed thy books, and their words are very deep.  
 CHAPTER XI
 11. Thou hast told me already, O Lord, with a strong voice in my inner ear,
  that thou art eternal and alone hast immortality. Thou art not changed by any
  shape or motion, and thy will is not altered by temporal process, because no
  will that changes is immortal. This is clear to me, in thy sight; let it become
  clearer and clearer, I beseech thee. In that light let me abide soberly under
  thy wings.
 Thou hast also told me, O Lord, with a strong voice in my inner ear, that thou
  hast created all natures and all substances, which are not what thou art
  thyself; and yet they do exist. Only that which is nothing at all is not from
  thee, and that motion of the will away from thee, who art, toward something
  that exists only in a lesser degree--such a motion is an offense and a sin. No
  one's sin either hurts thee or disturbs the order of thy rule, either first or
  last. All this, in thy sight, is clear to me. Let it become clearer and
  clearer, I beseech thee, and in that light let me abide soberly under thy
  wings.
 12. Likewise, thou hast told me, with a strong voice in my inner ear, that this
  creation--whose delight thou alone art--is not coeternal with thee. With a most
  persevering purity it draws its support from thee and nowhere and never betrays
  its own mutability, for thou art ever present with it; and it cleaves to thee
  with its entire affection, having no future to expect and no past that it
  remembers; it is varied by no change and is extended by no time.
 O blessed one--if such there be--clinging to thy blessedness! It is blest in
  thee, its everlasting Inhabitant and its Light. I cannot find a term that I
  would judge more fitting for "the heaven of the heavens of the Lord" than "Thy
  house"--which contemplates thy delights without any declination toward anything
  else and which, with a pure mind in most harmonious stability, joins all
  together in the peace of those saintly spirits who are citizens of thy city in
  those heavens that are above this visible heaven.
 13. From this let the soul that has wandered far away from thee understand--if
  now it thirsts for thee; if now its tears have become its bread, while daily
  they say to it, "Where is your God?"[471]; if now it
  requests of thee just one thing and seeks after this: that it may dwell in thy
  house all the days of its life (and what is its life but thee? And what are thy
  days but thy eternity, like thy years which do not fail, since thou art the
  Selfsame?)--from this, I say, let the soul understand (as far as it can) how
  far above all times thou art in thy eternity; and how thy house has never
  wandered away from thee; and, although it is not coeternal with thee, it
  continually and unfailingly clings to thee and suffers no vicissitudes of time.
  This, in thy sight, is clear to me; may it become clearer and clearer to me, I
  beseech thee, and in this light may I abide soberly under thy wings.
 14. Now I do not know what kind of formlessness there is in these mutations of
  these last and lowest creatures. Yet who will tell me, unless it is someone
  who, in the emptiness of his own heart, wanders about and begins to be dizzy in
  his own fancies? Who except such a one would tell me whether, if all form were
  diminished and consumed, formlessness alone would remain, through which a thing
  was changed and turned from one species into another, so that sheer
  formlessness would then be characterized by temporal change? And surely this
  could not be, because without motion there is no time, and where there is no
  form there is no change. 
 CHAPTER XII
 15. These things I have considered as thou hast given me ability, O my God, as
  thou hast excited me to knock, and as thou hast opened to me when I knock. Two
  things I find which thou hast made, not within intervals of time, although
  neither is coeternal with thee. One of them is so formed that, without any
  wavering in its contemplation, without any interval of change--mutable but not
  changed--it may fully enjoy thy eternity and immutability. The other is so
  formless that it could not change from one form to another (either of motion or
  of rest), and so time has no hold upon it. But thou didst not leave this
  formless, for, before any "day" in the beginning, thou didst create heaven and
  earth--these are the two things of which I spoke.
 But "the earth was invisible and unformed, and darkness was over the abyss." By
  these words its formlessness is indicated to us--so that by degrees they may be
  led forward who cannot wholly conceive of the privation of all form without
  arriving at nothing. From this formlessness a second heaven might be created
  and a second earth--visible and well formed, with the ordered beauty of the
  waters, and whatever else is recorded as created (though not without days) in
  the formation of this world. And all this because such things are so ordered
  that in them the changes of time may take place through the ordered processes
  of motion and form. 
 CHAPTER XIII
 16. Meanwhile this is what I understand, O my God, when I hear thy Scripture
  saying, "In the beginning God made the heaven and the earth, but the earth was
  invisible and unformed, and darkness was over the abyss." It does not say on
  what day thou didst create these things. Thus, for the time being I understand
  that "heaven of heavens" to mean the intelligible heaven, where to understand
  is to know all at once--not "in part," not "darkly," not "through a glass"--but
  as a simultaneous whole, in full sight, "face to face."[472] It is not this thing now and then another thing, but
  (as we said) knowledge all at once without any temporal change. And by the
  invisible and unformed earth, I understand that which suffers no temporal
  vicissitude. Temporal change customarily means having one thing now and another
  later; but where there is no form there can be no distinction between this or
  that. It is, then, by means of these two--one thing well formed in the
  beginning and another thing wholly unformed, the one heaven (that is, the
  heaven of heavens) and the other one earth (but the earth invisible and
  unformed)--it is by means of these two notions that I am able to understand why
  thy Scripture said, without mention of days, "In the beginning God created the
  heaven and the earth." For it immediately indicated which earth it was speaking
  about. When, on the second day, the firmament is recorded as having been
  created and called heaven, this suggests to us which heaven it was that he was
  speaking about earlier, without specifying a day.  
 CHAPTER XIV
 17. Marvelous is the depth of thy oracles. Their surface is before us, inviting
  the little ones; and yet wonderful is their depth, O my God, marvelous is their
  depth! It is a fearful thing to look into them: an awe of honor and a tremor of
  love. Their enemies I hate vehemently. Oh, if thou wouldst slay them with thy
  two-edged sword, so that they should not be enemies! For I would prefer that
  they should be slain to themselves, that they might live to thee. But see,
  there are others who are not critics but praisers of the book of Genesis; they
  say: "The Spirit of God who wrote these things by his servant Moses did not
  wish these words to be understood like this. He did not wish to have it
  understood as you say, but as we say." To them, O God of us all, thyself being
  the judge, I give answer. 
 CHAPTER XV
 18. "Will you say that these things are false which Truth tells me, with a loud
  voice in my inner ear, about the very eternity of the Creator: that his essence
  is changed in no respect by time and that his will is not distinct from his
  essence? Thus, he doth not will one thing now and another thing later, but he
  willeth once and for all everything that he willeth--not again and again; and
  not now this and now that. Nor does he will afterward what he did not will
  before, nor does he cease to will what he had willed before. Such a will would
  be mutable and no mutable thing is eternal. But our God is eternal.
 "Again, he tells me in my inner ear that the expectation of future things is
  turned to sight when they have come to pass. And this same sight is turned into
  memory when they have passed. Moreover, all thought that varies thus is
  mutable, and nothing mutable is eternal. But our God is eternal." These things
  I sum up and put together, and I conclude that my God, the eternal God, hath
  not made any creature by any new will, and his knowledge does not admit
  anything transitory.
 19. "What, then, will you say to this, you objectors? Are these things false?"
  "No," they say. "What then? Is it false that every entity already formed and
  all matter capable of receiving form is from him alone who is supremely good,
  because he is supreme?" "We do not deny this, either," they say. "What then? Do
  you deny this: that there is a certain sublime created order which cleaves with
  such a chaste love to the true and truly eternal God that, although it is not
  coeternal with him, yet it does not separate itself from him, and does not flow
  away into any mutation of change or process but abides in true contemplation of
  him alone?" If thou, O God, dost show thyself to him who loves thee as thou
  hast commanded--and art sufficient for him--then, such a one will neither turn
  himself away from thee nor turn away toward himself. This is "the house of
  God." It is not an earthly house and it is not made from any celestial matter;
  but it is a spiritual house, and it partakes in thy eternity because it is
  without blemish forever. For thou hast made it steadfast forever and ever; thou
  hast given it a law which will not be removed. Still, it is not coeternal with
  thee, O God, since it is not without beginning--it was created.
 20. For, although we can find no time before it (for wisdom was created before
  all things),[473] this is certainly not that Wisdom which
  is absolutely coeternal and equal with thee, our God, its Father, the Wisdom
  through whom all things were created and in whom, in the beginning, thou didst
  create the heaven and earth. This is truly the created Wisdom, namely, the
  intelligible nature which, in its contemplation of light, is light. For this is
  also called wisdom, even if it is a created wisdom. But the difference between
  the Light that lightens and that which is enlightened is as great as is the
  difference between the Wisdom that creates and that which is created. So also
  is the difference between the Righteousness that justifies and the
  righteousness that is made by justification. For we also are called thy
  righteousness, for a certain servant of thine says, "That we might be made the
  righteousness of God in him."[474] Therefore, there is a
  certain created wisdom that was created before all things: the rational and
  intelligible mind of that chaste city of thine. It is our mother which is above
  and is free[475] and "eternal in the heavens"[476]--but in what heavens except those which praise thee,
  the "heaven of heavens"? This also is the "heaven of heavens" which is the
  Lord's--although we find no time before it, since what has been created before
  all things also precedes the creation of time. Still, the eternity of the
  Creator himself is before it, from whom it took its beginning as created,
  though not in time (since time as yet was not), even though time belongs to its
  created nature.
 21. Thus it is that the intelligible heaven came to be from thee, our God, but
  in such a way that it is quite another being than thou art; it is not the
  Selfsame. Yet we find that time is not only not before it, but not even in it, thus making it able to behold thy face forever and not ever be
  turned aside. Thus, it is varied by no change at all. But there is still in it
  that mutability in virtue of which it could become dark and cold, if it did
  not, by cleaving to thee with a supernal love, shine and glow from thee like a
  perpetual noon. O house full of light and splendor! "I have loved your beauty
  and the place of the habitation of the glory of my Lord,"[477] your builder and possessor. In my wandering let me sigh
  for you; this I ask of him who made you, that he should also possess me in you,
  seeing that he hath also made me. "I have gone astray like a lost sheep[478]; yet upon the shoulders of my Shepherd, who is your
  builder, I have hoped that I may be brought back to you."[479]
 22. "What will you say to me now, you objectors to whom I spoke, who still
  believe that Moses was the holy servant of God, and that his books were the
  oracles of the Holy Spirit? Is it not in this `house of God'--not coeternal
  with God, yet in its own mode `eternal in the heavens'--that you vainly seek
  for temporal change? You will not find it there. It rises above all extension
  and every revolving temporal period, and it rises to what is forever good and
  cleaves fast to God."
 "It is so," they reply. "What, then, about those things which my heart cried
  out to my God, when it heard, within, the voice of his praise? What, then, do
  you contend is false in them? Is it because matter was unformed, and since
  there was no form there was no order? But where there was no order there could
  have been no temporal change. Yet even this `almost nothing,' since it was not
  altogether nothing, was truly from him from whom everything that exists is in
  whatever state it is." "This also," they say, "we do not deny."  
 CHAPTER XVI
 23. Now, I would like to discuss a little further, in thy presence, O my God,
  with those who admit that all these things are true that thy Truth has
  indicated to my mind. Let those who deny these things bark and drown their own
  voices with as much clamor as they please. I will endeavor to persuade them to
  be quiet and to permit thy word to reach them. But if they are unwilling, and
  if they repel me, I ask of thee, O my God, that thou shouldst not be silent to
  me.[480] Speak truly in my heart; if only thou wouldst
  speak thus, I would send them away, blowing up the dust and raising it in their
  own eyes. As for myself I will enter into my closet[481] and there sing to thee the songs of love, groaning with groanings that are
  unutterable now in my pilgrimage,[482] and remembering
  Jerusalem with my heart uplifted to Jerusalem my country, Jerusalem my mother[483]; and to thee thyself, the Ruler of the source of Light,
  its Father, Guardian, Husband; its chaste and strong delight, its solid joy and
  all its goods ineffable--and all of this at the same time, since thou art the
  one supreme and true Good! And I will not be turned away until thou hast
  brought back together all that I am from this dispersion and deformity to the
  peace of that dearest mother, where the first fruits of my spirit are to be
  found and from which all these things are promised me which thou dost conform
  and confirm forever, O my God, my Mercy. But as for those who do not say that
  all these things which are true are false, who still honor thy Scripture set
  before us by the holy Moses, who join us in placing it on the summit of
  authority for us to follow, and yet who oppose us in some particulars, I say
  this: "Be thou, O God, the judge between my confessions and their gainsaying." 
 CHAPTER XVII
 24. For they say: "Even if these things are true, still Moses did not refer to
  these two things when he said, by divine revelation, `In the beginning God
  created the heaven and the earth.' By the term `heaven' he did not mean that
  spiritual or intelligible created order which always beholds the face of God.
  And by the term `earth' he was not referring to unformed matter."
 "What then do these terms mean?"
 They reply, "That man [Moses] meant what we mean; this is what he was saying in
  those terms." "What is that?"
 "By the terms of heaven and earth," they say, "he wished first to indicate
  universally and briefly this whole visible world; then after this, by an
  enumeration of the days, he could point out, one by one, all the things that it
  has pleased the Holy Spirit to reveal in this way. For the people to whom he
  spoke were rude and carnal, so that he judged it prudent that only those works
  of God which were visible should be mentioned to them."
 But they do agree that the phrases, "The earth was invisible and unformed," and
  "The darkened abyss," may not inappropriately be understood to refer to this
  unformed matter--and that out of this, as it is subsequently related, all the
  visible things which are known to all were made and set in order during those
  specified "days."
 25. But now, what if another one should say, "This same formlessness and chaos
  of matter was first mentioned by the name of heaven and earth because, out of
  it, this visible world--with all its entities which clearly appear in it and
  which we are accustomed to be called by the name of heaven and earth--was
  created and perfected"? And what if still another should say: "The invisible
  and visible nature is quite fittingly called heaven and earth. Thus, the whole
  creation which God has made in his wisdom--that is, in the beginning--was
  included under these two terms. Yet, since all things have been made, not from
  the essence of God, but from nothing; and because they are not the same reality
  that God is; and because there is in them all a certain mutability, whether
  they abide as the eternal house of God abides or whether they are changed as
  the soul and body of man are changed--then the common matter of all things
  invisible and visible (still formless but capable of receiving form) from which
  heaven and earth were to be created (that is, the creature already fashioned,
  invisible as well as visible)--all this was spoken of in the same terms by
  which the invisible and unformed earth and the darkness over the abyss would be
  called. There was this difference, however: that the invisible and unformed
  earth is to be understood as having corporeal matter before it had any manner
  of form; but the darkness over the abyss was spiritual matter, before
  its unlimited fluidity was harnessed, and before it was enlightened by
  Wisdom."
 26. And if anyone wished, he might also say, "The entities already perfected
  and formed, invisible and visible, are not signified by the terms `heaven and
  earth,' when it reads, `In the beginning God created the heaven and the earth';
  instead, the unformed beginning of things, the matter capable of receiving form
  and being made was called by these terms--because the chaos was contained in it
  and was not yet distinguished by qualities and forms, which have now been
  arranged in their own orders and are called heaven and earth: the former a
  spiritual creation, the latter a physical creation." 
 CHAPTER XVIII
 27. When all these things have been said and considered, I am unwilling to
  contend about words, for such contention is profitable for nothing but the
  subverting of the hearer.[484] But the law is profitable
  for edification if a man use it lawfully: for the end of the law "is love out
  of a pure heart, and a good conscience, and faith unfeigned."[485] And our Master knew it well, for it was on these two
  commandments that he hung all the Law and the Prophets. And how would it harm
  me, O my God, thou Light of my eyes in secret, if while I am ardently
  confessing these things--since many different things may be understood from
  these words, all of which may be true--what harm would be done if I should
  interpret the meaning of the sacred writer differently from the way some other
  man interprets? Indeed, all of us who read are trying to trace out and
  understand what our author wished to convey; and since we believe that he
  speaks truly we dare not suppose that he has spoken anything that we either
  know or suppose to be false. Therefore, since every person tries to understand
  in the Holy Scripture what the writer understood, what harm is done if a man
  understands what thou, the Light of all truth-speaking minds, showest him to be
  true, although the author he reads did not understand this aspect of the truth
  even though he did understand the truth in a different meaning?[486]  
 CHAPTER XIX[487]
 28. For it is certainly true, O Lord, that thou didst create the heaven and the
  earth. It is also true that "the beginning" is thy wisdom in which thou didst
  create all things. It is likewise true that this visible world has its own
  great division (the heaven and the earth) and these two terms include all
  entities that have been made and created. It is further true that everything
  mutable confronts our minds with a certain lack of form, whereby it receives
  form, or whereby it is capable of taking form. It is true, yet again, that what
  cleaves to the changeless form so closely that even though it is mutable it is
  not changed is not subject to temporal process. It is true that the
  formlessness which is almost nothing cannot have temporal change in it. It is
  true that that from which something is made can, in a manner of speaking, be
  called by the same name as the thing that is made from it. Thus that
  formlessness of which heaven and earth were made might be called "heaven and
  earth." It is true that of all things having form nothing is nearer to the
  unformed than the earth and the abyss. It is true that not only every created
  and formed thing but also everything capable of creation and of form were
  created by Thee, from whom all things are.[488] It is
  true, finally, that everything that is formed from what is formless was
  formless before it was formed. 
 CHAPTER XX 
 29. From all these truths, which are not doubted by those to whom thou hast
  granted insight in such things in their inner eye and who believe unshakably
  that thy servant Moses spoke in the spirit of truth--from all these truths,
  then, one man takes the sense of "In the beginning God created the heaven and
  the earth" to mean, "In his Word, coeternal with himself, God made both the
  intelligible and the tangible, the spiritual and the corporeal creation."
  Another takes it in a different sense, that "In the beginning God created the
  heaven and the earth" means, "In his Word, coeternal with himself, God made the
  universal mass of this corporeal world, with all the observable and known
  entities that it contains." Still another finds a different meaning, that "In
  the beginning God created the heaven and the earth" means, "In his Word,
  coeternal with himself, God made the unformed matter of the spiritual and
  corporeal creation." Another can take the sense that "In the beginning God
  created the heaven and the earth" means, "In his Word, coeternal with himself,
  God made the unformed matter of the physical creation, in which heaven and
  earth were as yet indistinguished; but now that they have come to be separated
  and formed, we can now perceive them both in the mighty mass of this world."[489] Another takes still a further meaning, that "In the
  beginning God created heaven and earth" means, "In the very beginning of
  creating and working, God made that unformed matter which contained,
  undifferentiated, heaven and earth, from which both of them were formed, and
  both now stand out and are observable with all the things that are in them." 
 CHAPTER XXI
 30. Again, regarding the interpretation of the following words, one man selects
  for himself, from all the various truths, the interpretation that "the earth
  was invisible and unformed and darkness was over the abyss" means, "That
  corporeal entity which God made was as yet the formless matter of physical
  things without order and without light." Another takes it in a different sense,
  that "But the earth was invisible and unformed, and darkness was over the
  abyss" means, "This totality called heaven and earth was as yet unformed and
  lightless matter, out of which the corporeal heaven and the corporeal earth
  were to be made, with all the things in them that are known to our physical
  senses." Another takes it still differently and says that "But the earth was
  invisible and unformed, and darkness was over the abyss" means, "This totality
  called heaven and earth was as yet an unformed and lightless matter, from which
  were to be made that intelligible heaven (which is also called `the heaven of
  heavens') and the earth (which refers to the whole physical entity, under which
  term may be included this corporeal heaven)--that is, He made the intelligible
  heaven from which every invisible and visible creature would be created." He
  takes it in yet another sense who says that "But the earth was invisible and
  unformed, and darkness was over the abyss" means, "The Scripture does not refer
  to that formlessness by the term `heaven and earth'; that formlessness itself
  already existed. This it called the invisible `earth' and the unformed and
  lightless `abyss,' from which--as it had said before--God made the heaven and
  the earth (namely, the spiritual and the corporeal creation)." Still another
  says that "But the earth was invisible and formless, and darkness was over the
  abyss" means, "There was already an unformed matter from which, as the
  Scripture had already said, God made heaven and earth, namely, the entire
  corporeal mass of the world, divided into two very great parts, one superior,
  the other inferior, with all those familiar and known creatures that are in
  them." 
 CHAPTER XXII
 31. Now suppose that someone tried to argue against these last two opinions as
  follows: "If you will not admit that this formlessness of matter appears to be
  called by the term `heaven and earth,' then there was something that God had
  not made out of which he did make heaven and earth. And Scripture has not told
  us that God made this matter, unless we understand that it is implied in
  the term `heaven and earth' (or the term `earth' alone) when it is said, `In
  the beginning God created the heaven and earth.' Thus, in what follows--'the
  earth was invisible and unformed'--even though it pleased Moses thus to refer
  to unformed matter, yet we can only understand by it that which God himself
  hath made, as it stands written in the previous verse, `God made heaven and
  earth.'" Those who maintain either one or the other of these two opinions which
  we have set out above will answer to such objections: "We do not deny at all
  that this unformed matter was created by God, from whom all things are, and are
  very good--because we hold that what is created and endowed with form is a
  higher good; and we also hold that what is made capable of being created and
  endowed with form, though it is a lesser good, is still a good. But the
  Scripture has not said specifically that God made this formlessness--any more
  than it has said it specifically of many other things, such as the orders of
  `cherubim' and `seraphim' and those others of which the apostle distinctly
  speaks: `thrones,' `dominions,' `principalities,' `powers'[490]--yet it is clear that God made all of these. If in the
  phrase `He made heaven and earth' all things are included, what are we to say
  about the waters upon which the Spirit of God moved? For if they are understood
  as included in the term `earth,' then how can unformed matter be meant by the
  term `earth' when we see the waters so beautifully formed? Or, if it be taken
  thus, why, then, is it written that out of the same formlessness the firmament
  was made and called heaven, and yet is it not specifically written that the
  waters were made? For these waters, which we perceive flowing in so beautiful a
  fashion, are not formless and invisible. But if they received that beauty at
  the time God said of them, `Let the waters which are under the firmament be
  gathered together,'[491] thus indicating that their
  gathering together was the same thing as their reception of form, what, then,
  is to be said about the waters that are above the firmament? Because if
  they are unformed, they do not deserve to have a seat so honorable, and yet it
  is not written by what specific word they were formed. If, then, Genesis is
  silent about anything that God hath made, which neither sound faith nor
  unerring understanding doubts that God hath made, let not any sober teaching
  dare to say that these waters were coeternal with God because we find them
  mentioned in the book of Genesis and do not find it mentioned when they were
  created. If Truth instructs us, why may we not interpret that unformed matter
  which the Scripture calls the earth--invisible and unformed--and the lightless
  abyss as having been made by God from nothing; and thus understand that they
  are not coeternal with him, although the narrative fails to tell us precisely
  when they were made?"  
 CHAPTER XXIII
 32. I have heard and considered these theories as well as my weak apprehension
  allows, and I confess my weakness to Thee, O Lord, though already thou knowest
  it. Thus I see that two sorts of disagreements may arise when anything is
  related by signs, even by trustworthy reporters. There is one disagreement
  about the truth of the things involved; the other concerns the meaning of the
  one who reports them. It is one thing to inquire as to what is true about the
  formation of the Creation. It is another thing, however, to ask what that
  excellent servant of thy faith, Moses, would have wished for the reader and
  hearer to understand from these words. As for the first question, let all those
  depart from me who imagine that Moses spoke things that are false. But let me
  be united with them in thee, O Lord, and delight myself in thee with those who
  feed on thy truth in the bond of love. Let us approach together the words of
  thy book and make diligent inquiry in them for thy meaning through the meaning
  of thy servant by whose pen thou hast given them to us. 
 CHAPTER XXIV
 33. But in the midst of so many truths which occur to the interpreters of these
  words (understood as they can be in different ways), which one of us can
  discover that single interpretation which warrants our saying confidently that
  Moses thought thus and that in this narrative he wishes this to
  be understood, as confidently as he would say that this is true, whether
  Moses thought the one or the other. For see, O my God, I am thy servant, and I
  have vowed in this book an offering of confession to thee,[492] and I beseech thee that by thy mercy I may pay my vow
  to thee. Now, see, could I assert that Moses meant nothing else than this [i.e., my interpretation] when he wrote, "In the beginning God
  created the heaven and the earth," as confidently as I can assert that thou in
  thy immutable Word hast created all things, invisible and visible? No, I cannot
  do this because it is not as clear to me that this was in his mind when
  he wrote these things, as I see it to be certain in thy truth. For his thoughts
  might be set upon the very beginning of the creation when he said, "In the
  beginning"; and he might have wished it understood that, in this passage,
  "heaven and earth" refers to no formed and perfect entity, whether spiritual or
  corporeal, but each of them only newly begun and still formless. Whichever of
  these possibilities has been mentioned I can see that it might have been said
  truly. But which of them he did actually intend to express in these words I do
  not clearly see. However, whether it was one of these or some other meaning
  which I have not mentioned that this great man saw in his mind when he used
  these words I have no doubt whatever that he saw it truly and expressed it
  suitably. 
 CHAPTER XXV
 34. Let no man fret me now by saying, "Moses did not mean what you say,
  but what I say." Now if he asks me, "How do you know that Moses meant
  what you deduce from his words?", I ought to respond calmly and reply as I have
  already done, or even more fully if he happens to be untrained. But when he
  says, "Moses did not mean what you say, but what I say," and then
  does not deny what either of us says but allows that both are
  true--then, O my God, life of the poor, in whose breast there is no
  contradiction, pour thy soothing balm into my heart that I may patiently bear
  with people who talk like this! It is not because they are godly men and have
  seen in the heart of thy servant what they say, but rather they are proud men
  and have not considered Moses' meaning, but only love their own--not because it
  is true but because it is their own. Otherwise they could equally love another
  true opinion, as I love what they say when what they speak is true--not because
  it is theirs but because it is true, and therefore not theirs but true. And if
  they love an opinion because it is true, it becomes both theirs and mine, since
  it is the common property of all lovers of the truth.[493] But I neither accept nor approve of it when they contend that Moses did not
  mean what I say but what they say--and this because, even if it were so, such
  rashness is born not of knowledge, but of impudence. It comes not from vision
  but from vanity.
 And therefore, O Lord, thy judgments should be held in awe, because thy truth
  is neither mine nor his nor anyone else's; but it belongs to all of us whom
  thou hast openly called to have it in common; and thou hast warned us not to
  hold on to it as our own special property, for if we do we lose it. For if
  anyone arrogates to himself what thou hast bestowed on all to enjoy, and if he
  desires something for his own that belongs to all, he is forced away from what
  is common to all to what is, indeed, his very own--that is, from truth to
  falsehood. For he who tells a lie speaks of his own thought.[494]
 35. Hear, O God, best judge of all! O Truth itself, hear what I say to this
  disputant. Hear it, because I say it in thy presence and before my brethren who
  use the law rightly to the end of love. Hear and give heed to what I shall say
  to him, if it pleases thee.
 For I would return this brotherly and peaceful word to him: "If we both see
  that what you say is true, and if we both say that what I say is true, where is
  it, I ask you, that we see this? Certainly, I do not see it in you, and you do
  not see it in me, but both of us see it in the unchangeable truth itself, which
  is above our minds."[495] If, then, we do not disagree
  about the true light of the Lord our God, why do we disagree about the thoughts
  of our neighbor, which we cannot see as clearly as the immutable Truth is seen?
  If Moses himself had appeared to us and said, "This is what I meant," it would
  not be in order that we should see it but that we should believe him. Let us
  not, then, "go beyond what is written and be puffed up for the one against the
  other."[496] Let us, instead, "love the Lord our God with
  all our heart, with all our soul, and with all our mind, and our neighbor as
  ourself."[497] Unless we believe that whatever Moses meant
  in these books he meant to be ordered by these two precepts of love, we shall
  make God a liar, if we judge of the soul of his servant in any other way than
  as he has taught us. See now, how foolish it is, in the face of so great an
  abundance of true opinions which can be elicited from these words, rashly to
  affirm that Moses especially intended only one of these interpretations; and
  then, with destructive contention, to violate love itself, on behalf of which
  he had said all the things we are endeavoring to explain!  
 CHAPTER XXVI
 36. And yet, O my God, thou exaltation of my humility and rest of my toil, who
  hearest my confessions and forgivest my sins, since thou commandest me to love
  my neighbor as myself, I cannot believe that thou gavest thy most faithful
  servant Moses a lesser gift than I should wish and desire for myself from thee,
  if I had been born in his time, and if thou hadst placed me in the position
  where, by the use of my heart and my tongue, those books might be produced
  which so long after were to profit all nations throughout the whole world--from
  such a great pinnacle of authority--and were to surmount the words of all false
  and proud teachings. If I had been Moses--and we all come from the same mass,[498] and what is man that thou art mindful of him?[499]--if I had been Moses at the time that he was, and if I
  had been ordered by thee to write the book of Genesis, I would surely have
  wished for such a power of expression and such an art of arrangement to be
  given me, that those who cannot as yet understand how God createth would
  still not reject my words as surpassing their powers of understanding. And I
  would have wished that those who are already able to do this would find fully
  contained in the laconic speech of thy servant whatever truths they had arrived
  at in their own thought; and if, in the light of the Truth, some other man saw
  some further meaning, that too would be found congruent to my words. 
 CHAPTER XXVII
 37. For just as a spring dammed up is more plentiful and affords a larger
  supply of water for more streams over wider fields than any single stream led
  off from the same spring over a long course--so also is the narration of thy
  minister: it is intended to benefit many who are likely to discourse about it
  and, with an economy of language, it overflows into various streams of clear
  truth, from which each one may draw out for himself that particular truth which
  he can about these topics--this one that truth, that one another truth, by the
  broader survey of various interpretations. For some people, when they read or
  hear these words,[500] think that God, like some sort of
  man or like some sort of huge body, by some new and sudden decision, produced
  outside himself and at a certain distance two great bodies: one above, the
  other below, within which all created things were to be contained. And when
  they hear, "God said, `Let such and such be done,' and it was done," they think
  of words begun and ended, sounding in time and then passing away, followed by
  the coming into being of what was commanded. They think of other things of the
  same sort which their familiarity with the world suggests to them.
 In these people, who are still little children and whose weakness is borne up
  by this humble language as if on a mother's breast, their faith is built up
  healthfully and they come to possess and to hold as certain the conviction that
  God made all entities that their senses perceive all around them in such
  marvelous variety. And if one despises these words as if they were trivial, and
  with proud weakness stretches himself beyond his fostering cradle, he will,
  alas, fall away wretchedly. Have pity, O Lord God, lest those who pass by
  trample on the unfledged bird,[501] and send thy angel who
  may restore it to its nest, that it may live until it can fly. 
 CHAPTER XXVIII
 38. But others, to whom these words are no longer a nest but, rather, a shady
  thicket, spy the fruits concealed in them and fly around rejoicing and search
  among them and pluck them with cheerful chirpings: For when they read or hear
  these words, O God, they see that all times past and times future are
  transcended by thy eternal and stable permanence, and they see also that there
  is no temporal creature that is not of thy making. By thy will, since it is the
  same as thy being, thou hast created all things, not by any mutation of will
  and not by any will that previously was nonexistent--and not out of thyself,
  but in thy own likeness, thou didst make from nothing the form of all things.
  This was an unlikeness which was capable of being formed by thy likeness
  through its relation to thee, the One, as each thing has been given form
  appropriate to its kind according to its preordained capacity. Thus, all things
  were made very good, whether they remain around thee or whether, removed in
  time and place by various degrees, they cause or undergo the beautiful changes
  of natural process.
 They see these things and they rejoice in the light of thy truth to whatever
  degree they can.
 39. Again, one of these men[502] directs his attention to
  the verse, "In the beginning God made the heaven and the earth," and he beholds
  Wisdom as the true "beginning," because it also speaks to us. Another man
  directs his attention to the same words, and by "beginning" he understands
  simply the commencement of creation, and interprets it thus: "In the beginning
  he made," as if it were the same thing as to say, "At the first moment, God
  made . . ." And among those who interpret "In the beginning" to mean that in
  thy wisdom thou hast created the heaven and earth, one believes that the matter
  out of which heaven and earth were to be created is what is referred to by the
  phrase "heaven and earth." But another believes that these entities were
  already formed and distinct. Still another will understand it to refer to one
  formed entity--a spiritual one, designated by the term "heaven"--and to another
  unformed entity of corporeal matter, designated by the term "earth." But those
  who understand the phrase "heaven and earth" to mean the yet unformed matter
  from which the heaven and the earth were to be formed do not take it in a
  simple sense: one man regards it as that from which the intelligible and
  tangible creations are both produced; and another only as that from which the
  tangible, corporeal world is produced, containing in its vast bosom these
  visible and observable entities. Nor are they in simple accord who believe that
  "heaven and earth" refers to the created things already set in order and
  arranged. One believes that it refers to the invisible and visible world;
  another, only to the visible world, in which we admire the luminous heavens and
  the darkened earth and all the things that they contain.  
 CHAPTER XXIX
 40. But he who understands "In the beginning he made" as if it meant, "At first
  he made," can truly interpret the phrase "heaven and earth" as referring only
  to the "matter" of heaven and earth, namely, of the prior universal, which is
  the intelligible and corporeal creation. For if he would try to interpret the
  phrase as applying to the universe already formed, it then might rightly be
  asked of him, "If God first made this, what then did he do afterward?" And,
  after the universe, he will find nothing. But then he must, however
  unwillingly, face the question, How is this the first if there is nothing
  afterward? But when he said that God made matter first formless and then
  formed, he is not being absurd if he is able to discern what precedes by
  eternity, and what proceeds in time; what comes from choice, and what comes
  from origin. In eternity, God is before all things; in the temporal process,
  the flower is before the fruit; in the act of choice, the fruit is before the
  flower; in the case of origin, sound is before the tune. Of these four
  relations, the first and last that I have referred to are understood with much
  difficulty. The second and third are very easily understood. For it is an
  uncommon and lofty vision, O Lord, to behold thy eternity immutably making
  mutable things, and thereby standing always before them. Whose mind is acute
  enough to be able, without great labor, to discover how the sound comes before
  the tune? For a tune is a formed sound; and an unformed thing may exist, but a
  thing that does not exist cannot be formed. In the same way, matter is prior to
  what is made from it. It is not prior because it makes its product, for it is
  itself made; and its priority is not that of a time interval. For in time we do
  not first utter formless sounds without singing and then adapt or fashion them
  into the form of a song, as wood or silver from which a chest or vessel is
  made. Such materials precede in time the forms of the things which are made
  from them. But in singing this is not so. For when a song is sung, its sound is
  heard at the same time. There is not first a formless sound, which afterward is
  formed into a song; but just as soon as it has sounded it passes away, and you
  cannot find anything of it which you could gather up and shape. Therefore, the
  song is absorbed in its own sound and the "sound" of the song is its "matter."
  But the sound is formed in order that it may be a tune. This is why, as I was
  saying, the matter of the sound is prior to the form of the tune. It is not
  "before" in the sense that it has any power of making a sound or tune. Nor is
  the sound itself the composer of the tune; rather, the sound is sent forth from
  the body and is ordered by the soul of the singer, so that from it he may form
  a tune. Nor is the sound first in time, for it is given forth together with the
  tune. Nor is it first in choice, because a sound is no better than a tune,
  since a tune is not merely a sound but a beautiful sound. But it is first in
  origin, because the tune is not formed in order that it may become a sound, but
  the sound is formed in order that it may become a tune.
 From this example, let him who is able to understand see that the matter of
  things was first made and was called "heaven and earth" because out of it the
  heaven and earth were made. This primal formlessness was not made first in
  time, because the form of things gives rise to time; but now, in time, it is
  intuited together with its form. And yet nothing can be related of this
  unformed matter unless it is regarded as if it were the first in the time
  series though the last in value--because things formed are certainly superior
  to things unformed--and it is preceded by the eternity of the Creator, so that
  from nothing there might be made that from which something might be made. 
 CHAPTER XXX
 41. In this discord of true opinions let Truth itself bring concord, and may
  our God have mercy on us all, that we may use the law rightly to the end of the
  commandment which is pure love. Thus, if anyone asks me which of these opinions
  was the meaning of thy servant Moses, these would not be my confessions did I
  not confess to thee that I do not know. Yet I do know that those opinions are
  true--with the exception of the carnal ones--about which I have said what I
  thought was proper. Yet those little ones of good hope are not frightened by
  these words of thy Book, for they speak of high things in a lowly way and of a
  few basic things in many varied ways. But let all of us, whom I acknowledge to
  see and speak the truth in these words, love one another and also love thee,
  our God, O Fountain of Truth--as we will if we thirst not after vanity but for
  the Fountain of Truth. Indeed, let us so honor this servant of thine, the
  dispenser of this Scripture, full of thy Spirit, so that we will believe that
  when thou didst reveal thyself to him, and he wrote these things down, he
  intended through them what will chiefly minister both for the light of truth
  and to the increase of our fruitfulness. 
 CHAPTER XXXI
 42. Thus, when one man says, "Moses meant what I mean," and another says, "No,
  he meant what I do," I think that I speak more faithfully when I say, "Why
  could he not have meant both if both opinions are true?" And if there should be
  still a third truth or a fourth one, and if anyone should seek a truth quite
  different in those words, why would it not be right to believe that Moses saw
  all these different truths, since through him the one God has tempered the Holy
  Scriptures to the understanding of many different people, who should see truths
  in it even if they are different? Certainly--and I say this fearlessly and from
  my heart--if I were to write anything on such a supreme authority, I would
  prefer to write it so that, whatever of truth anyone might apprehend from the
  matter under discussion, my words should re-echo in the several minds rather
  than that they should set down one true opinion so clearly on one point that I
  should exclude the rest, even though they contained no falsehood that offended
  me. Therefore, I am unwilling, O my God, to be so headstrong as not to believe
  that this man [Moses] has received at least this much from thee. Surely when he
  was writing these words, he saw fully and understood all the truth we have been
  able to find in them, and also much besides that we have not been able to
  discern, or are not yet able to find out, though it is there in them still to
  be found. 
 CHAPTER XXXII
 43. Finally, O Lord--who art God and not flesh and blood--if any man sees
  anything less, can anything lie hid from "thy good Spirit" who shall "lead me
  into the land of uprightness,"[503] which thou thyself,
  through those words, wast revealing to future readers, even though he through
  whom they were spoken fixed on only one among the many interpretations that
  might have been found? And if this is so, let it be agreed that the meaning he
  saw is more exalted than the others. But to us, O Lord, either point out the
  same meaning or any other true one, as it pleases thee. Thus, whether thou
  makest known to us what thou madest known to that man of thine, or some other
  meaning by the agency of the same words, still do thou feed us and let error
  not deceive us. Behold, O Lord, my God, how much we have written concerning
  these few words--how much, indeed! What strength of mind, what length of time,
  would suffice for all thy books to be interpreted in this fashion?[504] Allow me, therefore, in these concluding words to
  confess more briefly to thee and select some one, true, certain, and good sense
  that thou shalt inspire, although many meanings offer themselves and many
  indeed are possible.[505] This is the faith of my
  confession, that if I could say what thy servant meant, that is truest and
  best, and for that I must strive. Yet if I do not succeed, may it be that I
  shall say at least what thy Truth wished to say to me through its words, just
  as it said what it wished to Moses.
  
BOOK THIRTEEN
The mysteries and allegories of the days of creation. Augustine
  undertakes to interpret Gen. 1:2-31 in a mystical and allegorical
    fashion so as to exhibit the profundities of God's power and wisdom and love.
    He is also interested in developing his theories of hermeneutics on his
    favorite topic: creation. He finds the Trinity in the account of creation and
    he ponders the work of the Spirit moving over the waters. In the firmament he
    finds the allegory of Holy Scripture and in the dry land and bitter sea he
    finds the division between the people of God and the conspiracy of the
    unfaithful. He develops the theme of man's being made in the image and likeness
    of God. He brings his survey to a climax and his confessions to an end with a
    meditation on the goodness of all creation and the promised rest and
    blessedness of the eternal Sabbath, on which God, who is eternal rest,
  "rested."
 CHAPTER I
 1. I call on thee, my God, my Mercy, who madest me and didst not forget me,
  though I was forgetful of thee. I call thee into my soul, which thou didst
  prepare for thy reception by the desire which thou inspirest in it. Do not
  forsake me when I call on thee, who didst anticipate me before I called and who
  didst repeatedly urge with manifold calling that I should hear thee afar off
  and be turned and call upon thee, who callest me. For thou, O Lord, hast
  blotted out all my evil deserts, not punishing me for what my hands have done;
  and thou hast anticipated all my good deserts so as to recompense me for what
  thy hands have done--the hands which made me. Before I was, thou wast, and I
  was not anything at all that thou shouldst grant me being. Yet, see how I exist
  by reason of thy goodness, which made provision for all that thou madest me to
  be and all that thou madest me from. For thou didst not stand in need of me,
  nor am I the kind of good entity which could be a help to thee, my Lord and my
  God. It is not that I may serve thee as if thou wert fatigued in working, or as
  if thy power would be the less if it lacked my assistance. Nor is the service I
  pay thee like the cultivation of a field, so that thou wouldst go untended if I
  did not tend thee.[506] Instead, it is that I may serve
  and worship thee to the end that I may have my well-being from thee, from whom
  comes my capacity for well-being. 
 CHAPTER II
 2. Indeed, it is from the fullness of thy goodness that thy creation exists at
  all: to the end that the created good might not fail to be, even though it can
  profit thee nothing, and is nothing of thee nor equal to thee--since its
  created existence comes from thee.
 For what did the heaven and earth, which thou didst make in the beginning, ever
  deserve from thee? Let them declare--these spiritual and corporeal entities,
  which thou madest in thy wisdom--let them declare what they merited at thy
  hands, so that the inchoate and the formless, whether spiritual or corporeal,
  would deserve to be held in being in spite of the fact that they tend toward
  disorder and extreme unlikeness to thee? An unformed spiritual entity is more
  excellent than a formed corporeal entity; and the corporeal, even when
  unformed, is more excellent than if it were simply nothing at all. Still, these
  formless entities are held in their state of being by thee, until they are
  recalled to thy unity and receive form and being from thee, the one sovereign
  Good. What have they deserved of thee, since they would not even be unformed
  entities except from thee?
 3. What has corporeal matter deserved of thee--even in its invisible and
  unformed state--since it would not exist even in this state if thou hadst not
  made it? And, if it did not exist, it could not merit its existence from
  thee.
 Or, what has that formless spiritual creation deserved of thee--that it should
  flow lightlessly like the abyss--since it is so unlike thee and would not exist
  at all if it had not been turned by the Word which made it that same Word, and,
  illumined by that Word, had been "made light"[507] although not as thy equal but only as an image of that Form [of Light] which is
  equal to thee? For, in the case of a body, its being is not the same thing as
  its being beautiful; else it could not then be a deformed body. Likewise, in
  the case of a created spirit, living is not the same state as living wisely;
  else it could then be immutably wise. But the true good of every created thing
  is always to cleave fast to thee, lest, in turning away from thee, it lose the
  light it had received in being turned by thee, and so relapse into a life like
  that of the dark abyss.
 As for ourselves, who are a spiritual creation by virtue of our souls, when we
  turned away from thee, O Light, we were in that former life of darkness; and we
  toil amid the shadows of our darkness until--through thy only Son--we become
  thy righteousness,[508] like the mountains of God. For we,
  like the great abyss,[509] have been the objects of thy
  judgments. 
 CHAPTER III
 4. Now what thou saidst in the beginning of the creation--"Let there be light:
  and there was light"--I interpret, not unfitly, as referring to the spiritual
  creation, because it already had a kind of life which thou couldst illuminate.
  But, since it had not merited from thee that it should be a life capable of
  enlightenment, so neither, when it already began to exist, did it merit from
  thee that it should be enlightened. For neither could its formlessness please
  thee until it became light--and it became light, not from the bare fact of
  existing, but by the act of turning its face to the light which enlightened it,
  and by cleaving to it. Thus it owed the fact that it lived, and lived happily,
  to nothing whatsoever but thy grace, since it had been turned, by a change for
  the better, toward that which cannot be changed for either better or worse.
  Thou alone art, because thou alone art without complication. For thee it is not
  one thing to live and another thing to live in blessedness; for thou art
  thyself thy own blessedness.  
 CHAPTER IV
 5. What, therefore, would there have been lacking in thy good, which thou
  thyself art, even if these things had never been made or had remained unformed?
  Thou didst not create them out of any lack but out of the plenitude of thy
  goodness, ordering them and turning them toward form,[510] but not because thy joy had to be perfected by them. For thou art perfect, and
  their imperfection is displeasing. Therefore were they perfected by thee and
  became pleasing to thee--but not as if thou wert before that imperfect and had
  to be perfected in their perfection. For thy good Spirit which moved over the
  face of the waters[511] was not borne up by them as if he
  rested on them. For those in whom thy good Spirit is said to rest he actually
  causes to rest in himself. But thy incorruptible and immutable will--in itself
  all-sufficient for itself--moved over that life which thou hadst made: in which
  living is not at all the same thing as living happily, since that life still
  lives even as it flows in its own darkness. But it remains to be turned to him
  by whom it was made and to live more and more like "the fountain of life," and
  in his light "to see light,"[512] and to be perfected, and
  enlightened, and made blessed. 
 CHAPTER V 
 6. See now,[513] how the Trinity appears to me in an
  enigma. And thou art the Trinity, O my God, since thou, O Father--in the
  beginning of our wisdom, that is, in thy wisdom born of thee, equal and
  coeternal with thee, that is, thy Son--created the heaven and the earth. Many
  things we have said about the heaven of heavens, and about the earth invisible
  and unformed, and about the shadowy abyss--speaking of the aimless flux of its
  being spiritually deformed unless it is turned to him from whom it has its life
  (such as it is) and by his Light comes to be a life suffused with beauty. Thus
  it would be a [lower] heaven of that [higher] heaven, which afterward was made
  between water and water.[514]
 And now I came to recognize, in the name of God, the Father who made all these
  things, and in the term "the Beginning" to recognize the Son, through whom he
  made all these things; and since I did believe that my God was the Trinity, I
  sought still further in his holy Word, and, behold, "Thy Spirit moved over the
  waters." Thus, see the Trinity, O my God: Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, the
  Creator of all creation! 
 CHAPTER VI
 7. But why, O truth-speaking Light? To thee I lift up my heart--let it not
  teach me vain notions. Disperse its shadows and tell me, I beseech thee, by
  that Love which is our mother; tell me, I beseech thee, the reason why--after
  the reference to heaven and to the invisible and unformed earth, and darkness
  over the abyss--thy Scripture should then at long last refer to thy Spirit? Was
  it because it was appropriate that he should first be shown to us as "moving
  over"; and this could not have been said unless something had already been
  mentioned over which thy Spirit could be understood as "moving"? For he did not
  "move over" the Father and the Son, and he could not properly be said to be
  "moving over" if he were "moving over" nothing. Thus, what it was he was
  "moving over" had to be mentioned first and he whom it was not proper to
  mention otherwise than as "moving over" could then be mentioned. But why was it
  not fitting that he should have been introduced in some other way than in this
  context of "moving over''? 
 CHAPTER VII
 8. Now let him who is able follow thy apostle with his understanding when he
  says, "Thy love is shed abroad in our hearts by the Holy Spirit, who is given
  to us"[515] and who teacheth us about spiritual gifts[516] and showeth us a more excellent way of love; and who
  bows his knee unto thee for us, that we may come to the surpassing knowledge of
  the love of Christ.[517] Thus, from the beginning, he who
  is above all was "moving over" the waters.
 To whom shall I tell this? How can I speak of the weight of concupiscence which
  drags us downward into the deep abyss, and of the love which lifts us up by thy
  Spirit who moved over the waters? To whom shall I tell this? How shall I tell
  it? For concupiscence and love are not certain "places" into which we are
  plunged and out of which we are lifted again. What could be more like, and yet
  what more unlike? They are both feelings; they are both loves. The uncleanness
  of our own spirit flows downward with the love of worldly care; and the
  sanctity of thy Spirit raises us upward by the love of release from
  anxiety--that we may lift our hearts to thee where thy Spirit is "moving over
  the waters." Thus, we shall have come to that supreme rest where our souls
  shall have passed through the waters which give no standing ground.[518] 
 CHAPTER VIII
 9. The angels fell, and the soul of man fell; thus they indicate to us the deep
  darkness of the abyss, which would have still contained the whole spiritual
  creation if thou hadst not said, in the beginning, "Let there be light: and
  there was light"--and if every obedient mind in thy heavenly city had not
  adhered to thee and had not reposed in thy Spirit, which moved immutable over
  all things mutable. Otherwise, even the heaven of heavens itself would have
  been a dark shadow, instead of being, as it is now, light in the Lord.[519] For even in the restless misery of the fallen spirits,
  who exhibit their own darkness when they are stripped of the garments of thy
  light, thou showest clearly how noble thou didst make the rational creation,
  for whose rest and beatitude nothing suffices save thee thyself. And certainly
  it is not itself sufficient for its beatitude. For it is thou, O our God, who
  wilt enlighten our darkness; from thee shall come our garments of light; and
  then our darkness shall be as the noonday. Give thyself to me, O my God,
  restore thyself to me! See, I love thee; and if it be too little, let me love
  thee still more strongly. I cannot measure my love so that I may come to know
  how much there is still lacking in me before my life can run to thy embrace and
  not be turned away until it is hidden in "the covert of thy presence."[520] Only this I know, that my existence is my woe except in
  thee--not only in my outward life, but also within my inmost self--and all
  abundance I have which is not my God is poverty.  
 CHAPTER IX
 10. But was neither the Father nor the Son "moving over the waters"? If we
  understand this as a motion in space, as a body moves, then not even the Holy
  Spirit "moved." But if we understand the changeless supereminence of the divine
  Being above every changeable thing, then Father, Son, and Holy Spirit "moved
  over the waters."
 Why, then, is this said of thy Spirit alone? Why is it said of him only--as if
  he had been in a "place" that is not a place--about whom alone it is written,
  "He is thy gift"? It is in thy gift that we rest. It is there that we enjoy
  thee. Our rest is our "place." Love lifts us up toward that place, and thy good
  Spirit lifts our lowliness from the gates of death.[521] Our peace rests in the goodness of will. The body tends toward its own place by
  its own gravity. A weight does not tend downward only, but moves to its own
  place. Fire tends upward; a stone tends downward. They are propelled by their
  own mass; they seek their own places. Oil poured under the water rises above
  the water; water poured on oil sinks under the oil. They are moved by their own
  mass; they seek their own places. If they are out of order, they are restless;
  when their order is restored, they are at rest. My weight is my love. By it I
  am carried wherever I am carried. By thy gift,[522] we are
  enkindled and are carried upward. We burn inwardly and move forward. We ascend
  thy ladder which is in our heart, and we sing a canticle of degrees[523]; we glow inwardly with thy fire--with thy good fire[524]--and we go forward because we go up to the peace of
  Jerusalem[525]; for I was glad when they said to me, "Let
  us go into the house of the Lord."[526] There thy good
  pleasure will settle us so that we will desire nothing more than to dwell there
  forever.[527] 
 CHAPTER X
 11. Happy would be that creature who, though it was in itself other than thou,
  still had known no other state than this from the time it was made, so that it
  was never without thy gift which moves over everything mutable--who had been
  borne up by the call in which thou saidst, "Let there be light: and there was
  light."[528] For in us there is a distinction between the
  time when we were darkness and the time when we were made light. But we are not
  told what would have been the case with that creature if the light had not been
  made. It is spoken of as though there had been something of flux and darkness
  in it beforehand so that the cause by which it was made to be otherwise might
  be evident. This is to say, by being turned to the unfailing Light it might
  become light. Let him who is able understand this; and let him who is not ask
  of thee. Why trouble me, as if I could "enlighten every man that comes into the
  world"[529]? 
 CHAPTER XI
 12. Who can understand the omnipotent Trinity? And yet who does not speak about
  it, if indeed it is of it that he speaks? Rare is the soul who, when he speaks
  of it, also knows of what he speaks. And men contend and strive, but no man
  sees the vision of it without peace.
 I could wish that men would consider three things which are within themselves.
  These three things are quite different from the Trinity, but I mention them in
  order that men may exercise their minds and test themselves and come to realize
  how different from it they are.[530]
 The three things I speak of are: to be, to know, and to will. For I am, and I
  know, and I will. I am a knowing and a willing being; I know that I am and that
  I will; and I will to be and to know. In these three functions, therefore, let
  him who can see how integral a life is; for there is one life, one mind, one
  essence. Finally, the distinction does not separate the things, and yet it is a
  distinction. Surely a man has this distinction before his mind; let him look
  into himself and see, and tell me. But when he discovers and can say anything
  about any one of these, let him not think that he has thereby discovered what
  is immutable above them all, which is immutably and knows immutably and wills immutably. But whether there is a Trinity there
  because these three functions exist in the one God, or whether all three are in
  each Person so that they are each threefold, or whether both these notions are
  true and, in some mysterious manner, the Infinite is in itself its own Selfsame
  object--at once one and many, so that by itself it is and knows itself and
  suffices to itself without change, so that the Selfsame is the abundant
  magnitude of its Unity--who can readily conceive? Who can in any fashion
  express it plainly? Who can in any way rashly make a pronouncement about it? 
 CHAPTER XII
 13. Go forward in your confession, O my faith; say to the Lord your God, "Holy,
  holy, holy, O Lord my God, in thy name we have been baptized, in the name of
  the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit." In thy name we baptize, in the name of the
  Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit. For among us also God in his Christ made
  "heaven and earth," namely, the spiritual and carnal members of his Church. And
  true it is that before it received "the form of doctrine," our "earth"[531] was "invisible and unformed," and we were covered with
  the darkness of our ignorance; for thou dost correct man for his iniquity,[532] and "thy judgments are a great abyss."[533] But because thy Spirit was moving over these waters,
  thy mercy did not forsake our wretchedness, and thou saidst, "Let there be
  light; repent, for the kingdom of heaven is at hand."[534] Repent, and let there be light. Because our soul was troubled within us, we
  remembered thee, O Lord, from the land of Jordan, and from the mountain[535]--and as we became displeased with our darkness we
  turned to thee, "and there was light." And behold, we were heretofore in
  darkness, but now we are light in the Lord.[536]  
 CHAPTER XIII
 14. But even so, we still live by faith and not by sight, for we are saved by
  hope; but hope that is seen is not hope. Thus far deep calls unto deep, but now
  in "the noise of thy waterfalls."[537] And thus far he who
  said, "I could not speak to you as if you were spiritual ones, but only as if
  you were carnal"[538]--thus far even he does not count
  himself to have apprehended, but forgetting the things that are behind and
  reaching forth to the things that are before, he presses on to those things
  that are ahead,[539] and he groans under his burden and
  his soul thirsts after the living God as the stag pants for the water brooks,[540] and says, "When shall I come?"[541]--"desiring to be further clothed by his house which is
  from heaven."[542] And he called to this lower deep,
  saying, "Be not conformed to this world, but be transformed by the renewing of
  your mind."[543] And "be not children in understanding,
  although in malice be children," in order that "in understanding you may become
  perfect."[544] "O foolish Galatians, who has bewitched
  you?"[545] But this is not now only in his own voice but
  in thy voice, who sent thy Spirit from above through Him who both "ascended up
  on high"[546] and opened up the floodgates of his gifts,
  that the force of his streams might make glad the city of God.[547]
 For that city and for him sighs the Bridegroom's friend,[548] who has now the first fruits of the Spirit laid up with
  him, but who is still groaning within himself and waiting for adoption, that
  is, the redemption of his body.[549] To Him he sighs, for
  he is a member of the Bride[550]; for him he is jealous,
  not for himself, but because not in his own voice but in the voice of thy
  waterfalls he calls on that other deep, of which he is jealous and in fear; for
  he fears lest, as the serpent seduced Eve by his subtlety, his mind should be
  corrupted from the purity which is in our Bridegroom, thy only Son. What a
  light of beauty that will be when "we shall see him as he is"[551]!--and when these tears shall pass away which "have been
  my meat day and night, while they continually say unto me, `Where is your
  God?'"[552] 
 CHAPTER XIV
 15. And I myself say: "O my God, where art thou? See now, where art thou?" In
  thee I take my breath for a little while, when I pour out my soul beyond myself
  in the voice of joy and praise, in the voice of him that keeps holyday.[553] And still it is cast down because it relapses and
  becomes an abyss, or rather it feels that it still is an abyss. My faith speaks
  to my soul--the faith that thou dost kindle to light my path in the night: "Why
  are you cast down, O my soul, and why are you disquieted in me? Hope in God."[554] For his word is a lamp to your feet.[555] Hope and persevere until the night passes--that mother
  of the wicked; until the Lord's wrath subsides--that wrath whose children once
  we were, of whom we were beforehand in darkness, whose residue we still bear
  about us in our bodies, dead because of sin.[556] Hope and
  endure until the day breaks and the shadows flee away.[557] Hope in the Lord: in the morning I shall stand in his
  presence and keep watch[558]; I shall forever give praise
  to him. In the morning I shall stand and shall see my God, who is the health of
  my countenance,[559] who also will quicken our mortal
  bodies by the Spirit that dwells in us,[560] because in
  mercy he was moving over our lightless and restless inner deep. From this we
  have received an earnest, even now in this pilgrimage, that we are now in the
  light, since already we are saved by hope and are children of the light and
  children of the day--not children of the night, nor of the darkness,[561] which we have been hitherto. Between those children of
  the night and ourselves, in this still uncertain state of human knowledge, only
  thou canst rightly distinguish--thou who dost test the heart and who dost call
  the light day, and the darkness night.[562] For who can
  see us clearly but thee? What do we have that we have not received from thee,
  who madest from the same lump some vessels to noble, and others to ignoble,
  use[563]? 
 CHAPTER XV
 16. Now who but thee, our God, didst make for us that firmament of the
  authority of thy divine Scripture to be over us? For "the heaven shall be
  folded up like a scroll"[564]; but now it is stretched
  over us like a skin. Thy divine Scripture is of more sublime authority now that
  those mortal men through whom thou didst dispense it to us have departed this
  life. And thou knowest, O Lord, thou knowest how thou didst clothe men with
  skins when they became mortal because of sin.[565] In
  something of the same way, thou hast stretched out the firmament of thy Book as
  a skin--that is to say, thou hast spread thy harmonious words over us through
  the ministry of mortal men. For by their very death that solid firmament of
  authority in thy sayings, spoken forth by them, stretches high over all that
  now drift under it; whereas while they lived on earth their authority was not
  so widely extended. Then thou hadst not yet spread out the heaven like a skin;
  thou hadst not yet spread abroad everywhere the fame of their death.
 17. Let us see, O Lord, "the heavens, the work of thy fingers,"[566] and clear away from our eyes the fog with which thou
  hast covered them. In them[567] is that testimony of thine
  which gives wisdom even to the little ones. O my God, out of the mouth of babes
  and sucklings, perfect thy praise.[568] For we know no
  other books that so destroy man's pride, that so break down the adversary and
  the self-defender who resists thy reconciliation by an effort to justify his
  own sins. I do not know, O Lord, I do not know any other such pure words that
  so persuade me to confession and make my neck submissive to thy yoke, and
  invite me to serve thee for nothing else than thy own sake. Let me understand
  these things, O good Father. Grant this to me, since I am placed under them;
  for thou hast established these things for those placed under them.
 18. There are other waters that are above this firmament, and I believe that
  they are immortal and removed from earthly corruption. Let them praise thy
  name--this super-celestial society, thy angels, who have no need to look up at
  this firmament or to gain a knowledge of thy Word by reading it--let them
  praise thee. For they always behold thy face and read therein, without any
  syllables in time, what thy eternal will intends. They read, they choose, they
  love.[569] They are always reading, and what they read
  never passes away. For by choosing and by loving they read the very
  immutability of thy counsel. Their book is never closed, nor is the scroll
  folded up, because thou thyself art this to them, and art this to them
  eternally; because thou didst range them above this firmament which thou madest
  firm over the infirmities of the people below the heavens, where they might
  look up and learn thy mercy, which proclaims in time thee who madest all times.
  "For thy mercy, O Lord, is in the heavens, and thy faithfulness reaches to the
  clouds."[570] The clouds pass away, but the heavens
  remain. The preachers of thy Word pass away from this life into another; but
  thy Scripture is spread abroad over the people, even to the end of the world.
  Indeed, both heaven and earth shall pass away, but thy words shall never pass
  away.[571] The scroll shall be rolled together, and the
  "grass" over which it was spread shall, with all its goodliness, pass away; but
  thy Word remains forever[572]--thy Word which now appears
  to us in the dark image of the clouds and through the glass of heaven, and not
  as it really is. And even if we are the well-beloved of thy Son, it has not yet
  appeared what we shall be.[573] He hath seen us through
  the entanglement[574] of our flesh, and he is
  fair-speaking, and he hath enkindled us, and we run after his fragrance.[575] But "when he shall appear, then we shall be like him,
  for we shall see him as he is.''[576] As he is, O Lord, we
  shall see him--although that time is not yet.  
 CHAPTER XVI
 19. For just as thou art the utterly Real, thou alone dost fully know, since
  thou art immutably, and thou knowest immutably, and thou willest immutably. And
  thy Essence knows and wills immutably. Thy Knowledge is and wills immutably.
  Thy Will is and knows immutably. And it does not seem right to thee that the
  immutable Light should be known by the enlightened but mutable creature in the
  same way as it knows itself. Therefore, to thee my soul is as a land where no
  water is[577]; for, just as it cannot enlighten itself by
  itself, so it cannot satisfy itself by itself. Thus the fountain of life is
  with thee, and "in thy light shall we see light."[578] 
 CHAPTER XVII
 20. Who has gathered the "embittered ones"[579] into a
  single society? For they all have the same end, which is temporal and earthly
  happiness. This is their motive for doing everything, although they may
  fluctuate within an innumerable diversity of concerns. Who but thee, O Lord,
  gathered them together, thou who saidst, "Let the waters be gathered together
  into one place and let the dry land appear"--athirst for thee? For the sea also
  is thine, and thou madest it, and thy hands formed the dry land.[580] For it is not the bitterness of men's wills but the
  gathering together of the waters which is called "the sea"; yet thou dost curb
  the wicked lusts of men's souls and fix their bounds: how far they are allowed
  to advance, and where their waves will be broken against each other--and thus
  thou makest it "a sea," by the providence of thy governance of all things.
 21. But as for the souls that thirst after thee and who appear before
  thee--separated from "the society of the [bitter] sea" by reason of their
  different ends--thou waterest them by a secret and sweet spring, so that "the
  earth" may bring forth her fruit and--thou, O Lord, commanding it--our souls
  may bud forth in works of mercy after their kind.[581] Thus we shall love our neighbor in ministering to his bodily needs, for in this
  way the soul has seed in itself after its kind when in our own infirmity our
  compassion reaches out to the relief of the needy, helping them even as we
  would desire to be helped ourselves if we were in similar need. Thus we help,
  not only in easy problems (as is signified by "the herb yielding its seed") but
  also in the offering of our best strength in affording them the aid of
  protection (such as "the tree bearing its fruit"). This is to say, we seek to
  rescue him who is suffering injury from the hands of the powerful--furnishing
  him with the sheltering protection which comes from the strong arm of a
  righteous judgment.[582] 
 CHAPTER XVIII
 22. Thus, O Lord, thus I beseech thee: let it happen as thou hast prepared it,
  as thou givest joy and the capacity for joy. Let truth spring up out of the
  earth, and let righteousness look down from heaven,[583] and let there be lights in the firmament.[584]
 Let us break our bread with the hungry, let us bring the shelterless poor to
  our house; let us clothe the naked, and never despise those of our own flesh.[585] See from the fruits which spring forth from the earth
  how good it is. Thus let our temporal light break forth, and let us from even
  this lower level of fruitful action come to the joy of contemplation and hold
  on high the Word of Life. And let us at length appear like "lights in the
  world,"[586] cleaving to the firmament of thy Scripture.
 For in it thou makest it plain to us how we may distinguish between things
  intelligible and things tangible, as if between the day and the night--and to
  distinguish between souls who give themselves to things of the mind and others
  absorbed in things of sense. Thus it is that now thou art not alone in the
  secret of thy judgment as thou wast before the firmament was made, and before
  thou didst divide between the light and the darkness. But now also thy
  spiritual children, placed and ranked in this same firmament--thy grace being
  thus manifest throughout the world--may shed light upon the earth, and may
  divide between the day and night, and may be for the signs of the times[587]; because old things have passed away, and, lo, all
  things are become new[588]; and because our salvation is
  nearer than when we believed; and because "the night is far spent and the day
  is at hand"[589]; and because "thou crownest the year with
  blessing,"[590] sending the laborers into thy harvest, in
  which others have labored in the sowing and sending laborers also to make new
  sowings whose harvest shall not be until the end of time. Thus thou dost grant
  the prayers of him who seeks, and thou dost bless the years of the righteous
  man. But thou art always the Selfsame, and in thy years which fail not thou
  preparest a granary for our transient years. For by an eternal design thou
  spreadest the heavenly blessings on the earth in their proper seasons.
 23. For "to one there is given by thy Spirit the word of wisdom"[591] (which resembles the greater light--which is for those
  whose delight is in the clear light of truth--as the light which is given for
  the ruling of the day[592]). But to another the word of
  knowledge is given by the same Spirit (as it were, the "lesser light"); to
  another, faith; to another, the gift of healing; to another, the power of
  working miracles; to another, the gift of prophecy; to another, the discerning
  of spirits; to another, other kinds of tongues--and all these gifts may be
  compared to "the stars." For in them all the one and selfsame Spirit is at
  work, dividing to every man his own portion, as He wills, and making stars to
  appear in their bright splendor for the profit of souls. But the word of
  knowledge, scientia, in which is contained all the mysteries[593] which change in their seasons like the moon; and all
  the other promises of gifts, which when counted are like the stars--all of
  these fall short of that splendor of Wisdom in which the day rejoices and are
  only for the ruling of the night. Yet they are necessary for those to whom thy
  most prudent servant could not speak as to the spiritually mature, but only as
  if to carnal men--even though he could speak wisdom among the perfect.[594] Still the natural man--as a babe in Christ, and a
  drinker of milk, until he is strong enough for solid meat, and his eye is able
  to look into the sun--do not leave him in a lightless night. Instead, let him
  be satisfied with the light of the moon and the stars. In thy book thou dost
  discuss these things with us wisely, our God--in thy book, which is thy
  "firmament"--in order that we may be able to view all things in admiring
  contemplation, although thus far we must do so through signs and seasons and in
  days and years.  
 CHAPTER XIX
 24. But, first, "wash yourselves and make you clean; put away iniquity from
  your souls and from before my eyes"[595]--so that "the dry
  land" may appear. "Learn to do well, judge the fatherless, plead for the
  widow,"[596] that the earth may bring forth the green herb
  for food and fruit-bearing trees. "And come, let us reason together, saith the
  Lord"[597]--that there may be lights in the firmament of
  heaven and that they may shine upon the earth.
 There was that rich man who asked of the good Teacher what he should do to
  attain eternal life. Let the good Teacher (whom the rich man thought a man and
  nothing more) give him an answer--he is good for he is God. Let him answer him
  that, if he would enter into life, he must keep the commandments: let him put
  away from himself the bitterness of malice and wickedness; let him not kill,
  nor commit adultery, nor steal, nor bear false witness[598]--that "the dry land" may appear and bring forth the
  honoring of fathers and mothers and the love of neighbor. "All these," he
  replied, "I have kept." Where do so many thorns come from, if the earth is
  really fruitful? uproot the brier patch of avarice; "sell what you have, and be
  filled with fruit by giving to the poor, and you shall have treasure in heaven;
  and follow" the Lord if you would be perfect and joined with those in whose
  midst he speaketh wisdom--who know how to give rightly to the day and to the
  night--and you will also understand, so that for you also there may be lights
  in the firmament of heaven--which will not be there, however, unless your heart
  is there also. And your heart will not be there unless your treasure is
  there,[599] as you have heard from the good Teacher. But
  "the barren earth"[600] was grieved, and the briers choked
  the word.[601]
 25. But you, O elect people, set in the firmament of the world,[602] who have forsaken all that you may follow the Lord:
  follow him now, and confound the mighty! Follow him, O beautiful feet,[603] and shine in the firmament, that the heavens may
  declare his glory, dividing the light of the perfect ones[604]--though not yet so perfect as the angels--from the
  darkness of the little ones--who are nevertheless not utterly despised. Shine
  over all the earth, and let the day be lighted by the sun, utter the Word of
  wisdom to the day ("day unto day utters speech"[605]) and
  let the night, lighted by the moon, display the Word of knowledge to the night.
  The moon and the stars give light for the night; the night does not put them
  out, and they illumine in its proper mode. For lo, it is as if God were saying,
  "Let there be lights in the firmament of the heaven": and suddenly there came a
  sound from heaven, as if it were a rushing mighty wind, and there appeared
  cloven tongues of fire, and they sat on each of them.[606] And then they were made to be lights in the firmament of heaven, having the
  Word of life. Run to and fro everywhere, you holy fires, you lovely fires, for
  you are the light of the world and you are not to be hid under a peck
  measure.[607] He to whom you cleave is raised on high, and
  he hath raised you on high. Run to and fro; make yourselves known among all the
  nations! 
 CHAPTER XX
 26. Also let the sea conceive and bring forth your works, and let the waters
  bear the moving creatures that have life.[608] For by
  separating the precious from the vile you are made the mouth of God[609] by whom he said, "Let the waters bring forth." This
  does not refer to the living creatures which the earth brings forth, but to the
  creeping creatures that have life and the fowls that fly over the earth. For,
  by the ministry of thy holy ones, thy mysteries have made their way amid the
  buffeting billows of the world, to instruct the nations in thy name, in thy
  Baptism. And among these things many great and marvelous works have been
  wrought, which are analogous to the huge whales. The words of thy messengers
  have gone flying over the earth, high in the firmament of thy Book which is
  spread over them as the authority beneath which they are to fly wheresoever
  they go. For "there is no speech nor language where their voice is not heard,"
  because "their sound has gone out through all the earth, and their words to the
  end of the world"[610]--and this because thou, O Lord,
  hast multiplied these things by thy blessing.
 27. Am I speaking falsely? Am I mingling and confounding and not rightly
  distinguishing between the knowledge of these things in the firmament of heaven
  and those corporeal works in the swelling sea and beneath the firmament of
  heaven? For there are those things, the knowledge of which is solid and
  defined. It does not increase from generation to generation and thus they
  stand, as it were, as lights of wisdom and knowledge. But there are many and
  varied physical processes that manifest these selfsame principles. And thus one
  thing growing from another is multiplied by thy blessing, O God, who dost so
  refresh our easily wearied mortal senses that in our mental cognition a single
  thing may be figured and signified in many different ways by different bodily
  motions.
 "The waters" have brought forth these mysteries, but only at thy word. The
  needs of the people who were alien to the eternity of thy truth have called
  them forth, but only in thy gospel, since it was these "waters" which cast them
  up--the waters whose stagnant bitterness was the reason why they came forth
  through thy Word.
 28. Now all the things that thou hast made are fair, and yet, lo, thou who
  didst make all things art inexpressibly fairer. And if Adam had not fallen away
  from thee, that brackish sea--the human race--so deeply prying, so boisterously
  swelling, so restlessly moving, would never have flowed forth from his belly.
  Thus, there would have been no need for thy ministers to use corporeal and
  tangible signs in the midst of many "waters" in order to show forth their
  mystical deeds and words. For this is the way I interpret the phrases "creeping
  creatures" and "flying fowl." Still, men who have been instructed and initiated
  and made dependent on thy corporeal mysteries would not be able to profit from
  them if it were not that their soul has a higher life and unless, after the
  word of its admission, it did not look beyond toward its perfection.  
 CHAPTER XXI
 29. And thus, in thy Word, it was not the depth of the sea but "the earth,"[611] separated from the brackishness of the water, that
  brought forth, not "the creeping and the flying creature that has life," but
  "the living soul" itself![612]
 And now this soul no longer has need of baptism, as the heathen had, or as it
  did when it was covered with the waters--and there can be no other entrance
  into the Kingdom of Heaven, since thou hast appointed that baptism should be
  the entrance. Nor does it seek great, miraculous works by which to buttress
  faith. For such a soul does not refuse to believe unless it sees signs and
  marvels, now that "the faithful earth" is separated from "the waters" of the
  sea, which have been made bitter by infidelity. Thus, for them, "tongues are
  for a sign, not to those who believe but to those who do not believe."[613]
 And the earth which thou hast founded above the waters does not stand in need
  of those flying creatures which the waters brought forth at thy word. Send
  forth thy word into it by the agency of thy messengers. For we only tell of
  their works, but it is thou who dost the works in them, so that they may bring
  forth "a living soul" in the earth.
 The earth brings forth "the living soul" because "the earth" is the cause of
  such things being done by thy messengers, just as the sea was the cause of the
  production of the creeping creatures having life and the flying fowl under the
  firmament of heaven. "The earth" no longer needs them, although it feeds on the
  Fish which was taken out of the deep,[614] set out on that
  table which thou preparest in the presence of those who believe. To this end he
  was raised from the deep: that he might feed "the dry land." And "the fowl,"
  even though they were bred in the sea, will yet be multiplied on the earth. The
  preaching of the first evangelists was called forth by reason of man's
  infidelity, but the faithful also are exhorted and blessed by them in manifold
  ways, day by day. "The living soul" has its origin from "the earth," because
  only to the faithful is there any profit in restraining themselves from the
  love of this world, so that their soul may live to thee. This soul was dead
  while it was living in pleasures--in pleasures that bear death in them--whereas
  thou, O Lord, art the living delight of the pure heart.
 30. Now, therefore, let thy ministers do their work on "the earth"--not as they
  did formerly in "the waters" of infidelity, when they had to preach and speak
  by miracles and mysteries and mystical expressions, in which ignorance--the
  mother of wonder--gives them an attentive ear because of its fear of occult and
  strange things. For this is the entry into faith for the sons of Adam who are
  forgetful of thee, who hide themselves from thy face, and who have become a
  darkened abyss. Instead, let thy ministers work even as on "the dry land," safe
  from the whirlpools of the abyss. Let them be an example unto the faithful by
  living before them and stirring them up to imitation.
 For in such a setting, men will heed, not with the mere intent to hear, but
  also to act. Seek the Lord and your soul shall live[615] and "the earth" may bring forth "the living soul." Be not conformed to this
  world;[616] separate yourselves from it. The soul lives by
  avoiding those things which bring death if they are loved. Restrain yourselves
  from the unbridled wildness of pride, from the indolent passions of luxury, and
  from what is falsely called knowledge.[617] Thus may the
  wild beast be tamed, the cattle subdued, and the serpent made harmless. For, in
  allegory, these figures are the motions of our mind: that is to say, the
  haughtiness of pride, the delight of lust, and the poison of curiosity are
  motions of the dead soul--not so dead that it has lost all motion, but dead
  because it has deserted the fountain of life, and so has been taken up by this
  transitory world and conformed to it.
 31. But thy Word, O God, is a fountain of life eternal, and it does not pass
  away. Therefore, this desertion is restrained by thy Word when it says to us,
  "Be not conformed to this world," to the end that "the earth" may bring forth a
  "living soul" in the fountain of life--a soul disciplined by thy Word, by thy
  evangelists, by the following of the followers of thy Christ. For this is the
  meaning of "after his kind." A man tends to follow the example of his friend.
  Thus, he [Paul] says, "Become as I am, because I have become as you are."[618]
 Thus, in this "living soul" there shall be good beasts, acting meekly. For thou
  hast commanded this, saying: "Do your work in meekness and you shall be loved
  by all men."[619] And the cattle will be good, for if they
  eat much they shall not suffer from satiety; and if they do not eat at all they
  will suffer no lack. And the serpents will be good, not poisonous to do harm,
  but only cunning in their watchfulness--exploring only as much of this temporal
  nature as is necessary in order that the eternal nature may "be clearly seen,
  understood through the things that have been made."[620] For all these animals will obey reason when, having been restrained from their
  death-dealing ways, they live and become good. 
 CHAPTER XXII
 32. Thus, O Lord, our God, our Creator, when our affections have been turned
  from the love of the world, in which we died by living ill; and when we began
  to be "a living soul" by living well; and when the word, "Be not conformed to
  this world," which thou didst speak through thy apostle, has been fulfilled in
  us, then will follow what thou didst immediately add when thou saidst, "But be
  transformed by the renewing of your mind."[621] This will
  not now be "after their kind," as if we were following the neighbor who went
  before us, or as if we were living after the example of a better man--for thou
  didst not say, "Let man be made after his kind," but rather, "Let us make man
  in our own image and our own likeness,"[622] so that then
  we may be able to prove what thy will is.
 This is why thy minister--begetting children by the gospel so that he might not
  always have them babes whom he would have to feed with milk and nurse as
  children--this is why he said, "Be transformed by the renewing of your minds,
  that you may prove what is the good and acceptable and perfect will of God."[623] Therefore thou didst not say, "Let man be made," but
  rather, "Let us make man." And thou didst not say, "After his kind," but after
  "our image" and "likeness." Indeed, it is only when man has been renewed in his
  mind, and comes to behold and apprehend thy truth, that he does not need
  another man as his director, to show him how to imitate human examples.
  Instead, by thy guidance, he proves what is thy good and acceptable and perfect
  will. And thou dost teach him, now that he is able to understand, to see the
  trinity of the Unity and the unity of the Trinity.
 This is why the statement in the plural, "Let us make man," is also connected
  with the statement in the singular, "And God made man." Thus it is said in the
  plural, "After our likeness," and then in the singular, "After the image of
  God." Man is thus transformed in the knowledge of God, according to the image
  of Him who created him. And now, having been made spiritual, he judges all
  things--that is, all things that are appropriate to be judged--and he himself
  is judged of no man.[624]  
 CHAPTER XXIII
 33. Now this phrase, "he judges all things," means that man has dominion over
  the fish of the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over all cattle and wild
  beasts, and over all the earth, and over every creeping thing that creeps on
  the earth. And he does this by the power of reason in his mind by which he
  perceives "the things of the Spirit of God."[625] But,
  when man was put in this high office, he did not understand what was involved
  and thus was reduced to the level of the brute beasts, and made like them.[626]
 Therefore in thy Church, O our God, by the grace thou hast given us--since we
  are thy workmanship, created in good works (not only those who are in spiritual
  authority but also those who are spiritually subject to them)--thou madest man
  male and female. Here all are equal in thy spiritual grace where, as far as sex
  is concerned, there is neither male nor female, just as there is neither Jew
  nor Greek, nor bond nor free. Spiritual men, therefore, whether those who are
  in authority or those who are subject to authority, judge spiritually. They do
  not judge by the light of that spiritual knowledge which shines in the
  firmament, for it is inappropriate for them to judge by so sublime an
  authority. Nor does it behoove them to judge concerning thy Book itself,
  although there are some things in it which are not clear. Instead, we submit
  our understanding to it and believe with certainty that what is hidden from our
  sight is still rightly and truly spoken. In this way, even though a man is now
  spiritual and renewed by the knowledge of God according to the image of him who
  created him, he must be a doer of the law rather than its judge.[627] Neither does the spiritual man judge concerning that
  division between spiritual and carnal men which is known to thy eyes, O God,
  and which may not, as yet, be made manifest to us by their external works, so
  that we may know them by their fruits; yet thou, O God, knowest them already
  and thou hast divided and called them secretly, before the firmament was made.
  Nor does a man, even though he is spiritual, judge the disordered state of
  society in this world. For what business of his is it to judge those who are
  without, since he cannot know which of them may later on come into the
  sweetness of thy grace, and which of them may continue in the perpetual
  bitterness of their impiety?
 34. Man, then, even if he was made after thy own image, did not receive the
  power of dominion over the lights of heaven, nor over the secret heaven, nor
  over the day and the night which thou calledst forth before the creation of the
  heaven, nor over the gathering together of the waters which is the sea.
  Instead, he received dominion over the fish of the sea, and the fowls of the
  air; and over all cattle, and all the earth; and over all creeping things which
  creep on the earth.
 Indeed, he judges and approves what he finds right and disapproves what he
  finds amiss, whether in the celebration of those mysteries by which are
  initiated those whom thy mercy hast sought out in the midst of many waters; or
  in that sacrament in which is exhibited the Fish itself[628] which, being raised from the depths, the pious
  "earth"[629] feeds upon; or, in the signs and symbols of
  words, which are subject to the authority of thy Book--such signs as burst
  forth and sound from the mouth, as if it were "flying" under the firmament,
  interpreting, expounding, discoursing, disputing, blessing, invoking thee, so
  that the people may answer, "Amen."[630] The reason that
  all these words have to be pronounced vocally is because of the abyss of this
  world and the blindness of our flesh in which thoughts cannot be seen
  directly,[631] but have to be spoken aloud in our ears.
  Thus, although the flying fowl are multiplied on the earth, they still take
  their origins from the waters.
 The spiritual man also judges by approving what is right and reproving what he
  finds amiss in the works and morals of the faithful, such as in their
  almsgiving, which is signified by the phrase, "The earth bringing forth its
  fruit." And he judges of the "living soul," which is then made to live by the
  disciplining of her affections in chastity, in fasting, and in holy meditation.
  And he also judges concerning all those things which are perceived by the
  bodily senses. For it can be said that he should judge in all matters about
  which he also has the power of correction.  
 CHAPTER XXIV
 35. But what is this; what kind of mystery is this? Behold, O Lord, thou dost
  bless men in order that they may be "fruitful and multiply, and replenish the
  earth." In this art thou not making a sign to us that we may understand
  something [allegorically]? Why didst thou not also bless the light, which thou
  calledst "the day," nor the firmament of heaven, nor the lights, nor the stars,
  nor the earth, nor the sea? I might reply, O our God, that thou in creating us
  after thy own image--I might reply that thou didst will to bestow this gift of
  blessing upon man alone, if thou hadst not similarly blessed the fishes and the
  whales, so that they too should be fruitful and multiply and replenish the
  waters of the sea; and also the fowls, so that they should be multiplied on the
  earth. In like fashion, I might say that this blessing properly belonged only
  to such creatures as are propagated from their own kind, if I could find it
  given also as a blessing to trees, and plants, and the beasts of the earth. But
  this "increase and multiply" was not said to plants or trees or beasts or
  serpents--although all of these, along with fishes and birds and men, do
  actually increase by propagation and so preserve their species.
 36. What, then, shall I say, O Truth, O my Life: that it was idly and vainly
  said? Surely not this, O Father of piety; far be it from a servant of thy Word
  to say anything like this! But if I do not understand what thou meanest by that
  phrase, let those who are better than I--that is, those more intelligent than
  I--interpret it better, in the degree that thou hast given each of us the
  ability to understand.
 But let also my confession be pleasing in thy eyes, for I confess to thee that
  I believe, O Lord, that thou hast not spoken thus in vain. Nor will I be silent
  as to what my reading has suggested to me. For it is valid, and I do not see
  anything to prevent me from thus interpreting the figurative sayings in thy
  books. For I know that a thing that is understood in only one way in the mind
  may be expressed in many different ways by the body; and I know that a thing
  that has only one manner of expression through the body may be understood in
  the mind in many different ways. For consider this single example--the love of
  God and of our neighbor--by how many different mysteries and countless
  languages, and, in each language, by how many different ways of speaking, this
  is signified corporeally! In similar fashion, the "young fish" in "the waters"
  increase and multiply. On the other hand, whoever you are who reads this,
  observe and behold what Scripture declares, and how the voice pronounces it in only one way, "In the beginning God created heaven and earth."[632] Is this not understood in many different ways by
  different kinds of true interpretations which do not involve the deceit of
  error? Thus the offspring of men are fruitful and do multiply.[633]
 37. If, then, we consider the nature of things, in their strictly literal
  sense, and not allegorically, the phrase, "Be fruitful and multiply," applies
  to all things that are begotten by seed. But if we treat these words
  figuratively, as I judge that the Scripture intended them to be--since it
  cannot be for nothing that this blessing is attributed only to the offspring of
  marine life and man--then we discover that the characteristic of fecundity
  belongs also to the spiritual and physical creations (which are signified by
  "heaven and earth"), and also in righteous and unrighteous souls (which are
  signified by "light and darkness") and in the sacred writers through whom the
  law is uttered (who are signified by "the firmament established between the
  waters and the waters"); and in the earthly commonwealth still steeped in their
  bitterness (which is signified by "the sea"); and in the zeal of holy souls
  (signified by "the dry land"); and the works of mercy done in this present life
  (signified by "the seed-bearing herbs and fruit-bearing trees"); and in
  spiritual gifts which shine out for our edification (signified by "the lights
  of heaven"); and to human affections ruled by temperance (signified by "the
  living soul"). In all these instances we meet with multiplicity and fertility
  and increase; but the particular way in which "Be fruitful and multiply" can be
  exemplified differs widely. Thus a single category may include many things, and
  we cannot discover them except through their signs displayed corporeally and by
  the things being excogitated by the mind.
 We thus interpret the phrase, "The generation of the waters," as referring to
  the corporeally expressed signs [of fecundity], since they are made necessary
  by the degree of our involvement in the flesh. But the power of human
  generation refers to the process of mental conception; this we see in the
  fruitfulness of reason. Therefore, we believe that to both of these two kinds
  it has been said by thee, O Lord, "Be fruitful and multiply." In this blessing,
  I recognize that thou hast granted us the faculty and power not only to express
  what we understand by a single idea in many different ways but also to
  understand in many ways what we find expressed obscurely in a single statement.
  Thus the waters of the sea are replenished, and their waves are symbols of
  diverse meanings. And thus also the earth is also replenished with human
  offspring. Its dryness is the symbol of its thirst for truth, and of the fact
  that reason rules over it. 
 CHAPTER XXV
 38. I also desire to say, O my Lord God, what the following Scripture suggests
  to me. Indeed, I will speak without fear, for I will speak the truth, as thou
  inspirest me to know what thou dost will that I should say concerning these
  words. For I do not believe I can speak the truth by any other inspiration than
  thine, since thou art the Truth, and every man a liar.[634] Hence, he that speaks a lie, speaks out of himself.
  Therefore, if I am to speak the truth, I must speak of thy truth.
 Behold, thou hast given us for our food every seed-bearing herb on the face of
  the earth, and all trees that bear in themselves seed of their own kind; and
  not to us only, but to all the fowls of the air and the beasts of the field and
  all creeping things.[635] Still, thou hast not given these
  things to the fishes and great whales. We have said that by these fruits of the
  earth the works of mercy were signified and figured forth in an allegory: thus,
  from the fruitful earth, things are provided for the necessities of life. Such
  an "earth" was the godly Onesiphorus, to whose house thou gavest mercy because
  he often refreshed Paul and was not ashamed of his bonds.[636] This was also the way of the brethren from Macedonia,
  who bore such fruit and supplied to him what he lacked. But notice how he
  grieves for certain "trees," which did not give him the fruit that was due,
  when he said, "At my first answer no man stood with me, but all men forsook me:
  I pray God, that it be not laid up to their charge."[637] For we owe "fruits" to those who minister spiritual doctrine to us through
  their understanding of the divine mysteries. We owe these to them as men. We
  owe these fruits, also, to "the living souls" since they offer themselves as
  examples for us in their own continence. And, finally, we owe them likewise to
  "the flying creatures" because of their blessings which are multiplied on the
  earth, for "their sound has gone forth into all the earth."[638] 
  CHAPTER XXVI
 39. Those who find their joy in it are fed by these "fruits"; but those whose
  god is their belly find no joy in them. For in those who offer these fruits, it
  is not the fruit itself that matters, but the spirit in which they give them.
  Therefore, he who serves God and not his own belly may rejoice in them, and I
  plainly see why. I see it, and I rejoice with him greatly. For he [Paul] had
  received from the Philippians the things they had sent by Epaphroditus; yet I
  see why he rejoiced. He was fed by what he found his joy in; for, speaking
  truly, he says, "I rejoice in the Lord greatly, that now at the last your care
  of me has flourished again, in which you were once so careful, but it had
  become a weariness to you.[639] These Philippians, in
  their extended period of weariness in well-doing, had become weak and were, so
  to say, dried up; they were no longer bringing forth the fruits of good works.
  And now Paul rejoices in them--and not just for himself alone--because they
  were flourishing again in ministering to his needs. Therefore he adds: "I do
  not speak in respect of my want, for I have learned in whatsoever state I am
  therewith to be content. I know both how to be abased and how to abound;
  everywhere and in all things I am instructed both to be full and to be hungry,
  both to abound and to suffer need. I can do all things through Christ who
  strengtheneth me."[640]
 40. Where do you find joy in all things, O great Paul? What is the cause of
  your joy? On what do you feed, O man, renewed now in the knowledge of God after
  the image of him who created you, O living soul of such great continence--O
  tongue like a winged bird, speaking mysteries? What food is owed such
  creatures; what is it that feeds you? It is joy! For hear what follows:
  "Nevertheless, you have done well in that you have shared with me in my
  affliction."[641] This is what he finds his joy in; this
  is what he feeds on. They have done well, not merely because his need had been
  relieved--for he says to them, "You have opened my heart when I was in
  distress"--but because he knew both how to abound and how to suffer need, in
  thee who didst strengthen him. And so he said, "You [Philippians] know also
  that in the beginning of the gospel, when I departed from Macedonia, no church
  shared with me in regard to giving and receiving, except you only. For even in
  Thessalonica you sent time and time again, according to my need."[642] He now finds his joy in the fact that they have
  returned once again to these good works, and he is made glad that they are
  flourishing again, as a fruitful field when it recovers its fertility.
 41. Was it on account of his own needs alone that he said, "You have sent me
  gifts according to my needs?" Does he find joy in that? Certainly not for that
  alone. But how do we know this? We know it because he himself adds, "Not
  because I desire a gift, but because I desire fruit."[643]
 Now I have learned from thee, O my God, how to distinguish between the terms
  "gift" and "fruit." A "gift" is the thing itself, given by one who bestows
  life's necessities on another--such as money, food, drink, clothing, shelter,
  and aid. But "the fruit" is the good and right will of the giver. For the good
  Teacher not only said, "He that receives a prophet," but he added, "In the name
  of a prophet." And he did not say only, "He who receives a righteous man," but
  added, "In the name of a righteous man."[644] Thus,
  surely, the former shall receive the reward of a prophet; the latter, that of a
  righteous man. Nor did he say only, "Whoever shall give a cup of cold water to
  one of these little ones to drink," but added, "In the name of a disciple"; and
  concluded, "Truly I tell you he shall not lose his reward." The "gift" involves
  receiving a prophet, receiving a righteous man, handing a cup of cold water to
  a disciple: but the "fruit" is to do all this in the name of a prophet, in the
  name of a righteous man, in the name of a disciple. Elijah was fed by the widow
  with "fruit," for she knew that she was feeding a man of God and this is why
  she fed him. But he was fed by the raven with a "gift." The inner man of Elijah
  was not fed by this "gift," but only the outer man, which otherwise might have
  perished from the lack of such food. 
 CHAPTER XXVII
 42. Therefore I will speak before thee, O Lord, what is true, in order that the
  uninstructed[645] and the infidels, who require the
  mysteries of initiation and great works of miracles--which we believe are
  signified by the phrase, "Fishes and great whales"--may be helped in being
  gained [for the Church] when they endeavor to provide that thy servants are
  refreshed in body, or otherwise aided in this present life. For they do not
  really know why this should be done, and to what end. Thus the former do not
  feed the latter, and the latter do not feed the former; for neither do the
  former offer their "gifts" through a holy and right intent, nor do the others
  rejoice in the gifts of those who do not as yet see the "fruit." For it is on
  the "fruit" that the mind is fed, and by which it is gladdened. And, therefore,
  fishes and whales are not fed on such food as the earth alone brings forth when
  they have been separated and divided from the bitterness of "the waters" of the
  sea. 
 CHAPTER XXVIII
 43. And thou, O God, didst see everything that thou hadst made and, behold, it
  was very good.[646] We also see the whole creation and,
  behold, it is all very good. In each separate kind of thy work, when thou didst
  say, "Let them be made," and they were made, thou didst see that it was good. I
  have counted seven times where it is written that thou didst see what thou
  hadst made was "good." And there is the eighth time when thou didst see all things that thou hadst made and, behold, they were not only good but
  also very good; for they were now seen as a totality. Individually they
  were only good; but taken as a totality they were both good and very good.
  Beautiful bodies express this truth; for a body which consists of several
  parts, each of which is beautiful, is itself far more beautiful than any of its
  individual parts separately, by whose well-ordered union the whole is completed
  even though these parts are separately beautiful. 
  CHAPTER XXIX
 44. And I looked attentively to find whether it was seven or eight times that
  thou didst see thy works were good, when they were pleasing to thee, but I
  found that there was no "time" in thy seeing which would help me to understand
  in what sense thou hadst looked so many "times" at what thou hadst made. And I
  said: "O Lord, is not this thy Scripture true, since thou art true, and thy
  truth doth set it forth? Why, then, dost thou say to me that in thy seeing
  there are no times, while this Scripture tells me that what thou madest each
  day thou didst see to be good; and when I counted them I found how many
  `times'?" To these things, thou didst reply to me, for thou art my God, and
  thou dost speak to thy servant with a strong voice in his inner ear, my
  deafness, and crying: "O man, what my Scripture says, I say. But it speaks in
  terms of time, whereas time does not affect my Word--my Word which exists
  coeternally with myself. Thus the things you see through my Spirit, I see; just
  as what you say through my Spirit, I say. But while you see those things in
  time, I do not see them in time; and when you speak those things in time, I do
  not speak them in time." 
 CHAPTER XXX
 45. And I heard this, O Lord my God, and drank up a drop of sweetness from thy
  truth, and understood that there are some men to whom thy works are
  displeasing, who say that many of them thou didst make under the compulsion of
  necessity--such as the pattern of the heavens and the courses of the stars--and
  that thou didst not make them out of what was thine, but that they were already
  created elsewhere and from other sources. It was thus [they say] that thou
  didst collect and fashion and weave them together, as if from thy conquered
  enemies thou didst raise up the walls of the universe; so that, built into the
  ramparts of the building, they might not be able a second time to rebel against
  thee. And, even of other things, they say that thou didst neither make them nor
  arrange them--for example, all flesh and all the very small living creatures,
  and all things fastened to the earth by their roots. But [they say] a hostile
  mind and an alien nature--not created by thee and in every way contrary to
  thee--begot and framed all these things in the nether parts of the world.[647] They who speak thus are mad [insani], since they
  do not see thy works through thy Spirit, nor recognize thee in them. 
 CHAPTER XXXI
 46. But for those who see these things through thy Spirit, it is thou who seest
  them in them. When, therefore, they see that these things are good, it is thou
  who seest that they are good; and whatsoever things are pleasing because of
  thee, it is thou who dost give us pleasure in those things. Those things which
  please us through thy Spirit are pleasing to thee in us. "For what man knows
  the things of a man except the spirit of a man which is in him? Even so, no man
  knows the things of God, but the Spirit of God. Now we have not received the
  spirit of the world, but the Spirit of God, that we might know the things that
  are freely given to us from God."[648] And I am admonished
  to say: "Yes, truly. No man knows the things of God, but the Spirit of God: but
  how, then, do we also know what things are given us by God?" The answer is
  given me: "Because we know these things by his Spirit; for no one knows but the
  Spirit of God." But just as it is truly said to those who were to speak through
  the Spirit of God, "It is not you who speak," so it is also truly said to them
  who know through the Spirit of God, "It is not you yourselves who know," and
  just as rightly it may be said to those who perceive through the Spirit of God
  that a thing is good; it is not they who see, but God who seeth that it is
  good.
 It is, therefore, one thing to think like the men who judge something to be bad
  when it is good, as do those whom we have already mentioned. It is quite
  another thing that a man should see as good what is good--as is the case with
  many whom thy creation pleases because it is good, yet what pleases them in it
  is not thee, and so they would prefer to find their joy in thy creatures rather
  than to find their joy in thee. It is still another thing that when a man sees
  a thing to be good, God should see in him that it is good--that truly he may be
  loved in what he hath made, he who cannot be loved except through the Holy
  Spirit which he hath given us: "Because the love of God is shed abroad in our
  hearts by the Holy Spirit who is given to us."[649] It is
  by him that we see whatever we see to be good in any degree, since it is from
  him, who doth not exist in any particular degree but who simply is what he
  is.[650] 
 CHAPTER XXXII
 47. Thanks be to thee, O Lord! We see the heaven and the earth, either the
  corporeal part--higher and lower--or the spiritual and physical creation. And
  we see the light made and divided from the darkness for the adornment of these
  parts, from which the universal mass of the world or the universal creation is
  constituted. We see the firmament of heaven, either the original "body" of the
  world between the spiritual (higher) waters and the corporeal (lower) waters[651] or the expanse of air--which is also called
  "heaven"--through which the fowls of heaven wander, between the waters which
  move in clouds above them and which drop down in dew on clear nights, and those
  waters which are heavy and flow along the earth. We see the waters gathered
  together in the vast plains of the sea; and the dry land, first bare and then
  formed, so as to be visible and well-ordered; and the soil of herbs and trees.
  We see the light shining from above--the sun to serve the day, the moon and the
  stars to give cheer in the night; and we see by all these that the intervals of
  time are marked and noted. We see on every side the watery elements, fruitful
  with fishes, beasts, and birds--and we notice that the density of the
  atmosphere which supports the flights of birds is increased by the evaporation
  of the waters. We see the face of the earth, replete with earthly creatures;
  and man, created in thy image and likeness, in the very image and likeness of
  thee--that is, having the power of reason and understanding--by virtue of which
  he has been set over all irrational creatures. And just as there is in his soul
  one element which controls by its power of reflection and another which has
  been made subject so that it should obey, so also, physically, the woman was
  made for the man; for, although she had a like nature of rational intelligence
  in the mind, still in the sex of her body she should be similarly subject to
  the sex of her husband, as the appetite of action is subjected to the
  deliberation of the mind in order to conceive the rules of right action. These
  things we see, and each of them is good; and the whole is very good!  
 CHAPTER XXXIII
 48. Let thy works praise thee, that we may love thee; and let us love thee that
  thy works may praise thee--those works which have a beginning and an end in
  time--a rising and a setting, a growth and a decay, a form and a privation.
  Thus, they have their successions of morning and evening, partly hidden, partly
  plain. For they were made from nothing by thee, and not from thyself, and not
  from any matter that is not thine, or that was created beforehand. They were
  created from concreated matter--that is, matter that was created by thee at the
  same time that thou didst form its formlessness, without any interval of time.
  Yet, since the matter of heaven and earth is one thing and the form of heaven
  and earth is another thing, thou didst create matter out of absolutely nothing
  (de omnino nihilo), but the form of the world thou didst form from
  formless matter (de informi materia). But both were done at the same
  time, so that form followed matter with no delaying interval. 
 CHAPTER XXXIV
 49. We have also explored the question of what thou didst desire to figure
  forth, both in the creation and in the description of things in this particular
  order. And we have seen that things taken separately are good, and all things
  taken together are very good, both in heaven and earth. And we have seen that
  this was wrought through thy Word, thy only Son, the head and the body of the
  Church, and it signifies thy predestination before all times, without morning
  and evening. But when, in time, thou didst begin to unfold the things destined
  before time, so that thou mightest make hidden things manifest and mightest
  reorder our disorders--since our sins were over us and we had sunk into
  profound darkness away from thee, and thy good Spirit was moving over us to
  help us in due season--thou didst justify the ungodly and also didst divide
  them from the wicked; and thou madest the authority of thy Book a firmament
  between those above who would be amenable to thee and those beneath who would
  be subject to them. And thou didst gather the society of unbelievers[652] into a conspiracy, in order that the zeal of the
  faithful might become manifest and that they might bring forth works of mercy
  unto thee, giving their earthly riches to the poor to obtain heavenly riches.
  Then thou didst kindle the lights in the firmament, which are thy holy ones,
  who have the Word of Life and who shine with an exalted authority, warranted to
  them by their spiritual gifts. And then, for the instruction of the unbelieving
  nations, thou didst out of physical matter produce the mysteries and the
  visible miracles and the sounds of words in harmony with the firmament of thy
  Book, through which the faithful should be blessed. After this thou didst form
  "the living soul" of the faithful, through the ordering of their passions by
  the strength of continence. And then thou didst renew, after thy image and
  likeness, the mind which is faithful to thee alone, which needs to imitate no
  human authority. Thus, thou didst subordinate rational action to the higher
  excellence of intelligence, as the woman is subordinate to the man. Finally, in
  all thy ministries which were needed to perfect the faithful in this life, thou
  didst will that these same faithful ones should themselves bring forth good
  things, profitable for their temporal use and fruitful for the life to come. We
  see all these things, and they are very good, because thou seest them thus in
  us--thou who hast given us thy Spirit, by which we may see them so and love
  thee in them. 
 CHAPTER XXXV
 50. O Lord God, grant us thy peace--for thou hast given us all things. Grant us
  the peace of quietness, the peace of the Sabbath, the peace without an evening.
  All this most beautiful array of things, all so very good, will pass away when
  all their courses are finished--for in them there is both morning and
  evening.
 51. But the seventh day is without an evening, and it has no setting, for thou
  hast sanctified it with an everlasting duration. After all thy works of
  creation, which were very good, thou didst rest on the seventh day, although
  thou hadst created them all in unbroken rest--and this so that the voice of thy
  Book might speak to us with the prior assurance that after our works--and they
  also are very good because thou hast given them to us--we may find our rest in
  thee in the Sabbath of life eternal.[653] 
 CHAPTER XXXVII
 52. For then also thou shalt so rest in us as now thou workest in us; and,
  thus, that will be thy rest through us, as these are thy works through us. But
  thou, O Lord, workest evermore and art always at rest. Thou seest not in time,
  thou movest not in time, thou restest not in time. And yet thou makest all
  those things which are seen in time--indeed, the very times themselves--and
  everything that proceeds in and from time. 
 CHAPTER XXXVIII
 53. We can see all those things which thou hast made because they are--but they
  are because thou seest them.[654] And we see with our eyes
  that they are, and we see with our minds that they are good. But thou sawest
  them as made when thou sawest that they would be made.
 And now, in this present time, we have been moved to do well, now that our
  heart has been quickened by thy Spirit; but in the former time, having forsaken
  thee, we were moved to do evil.[655] But thou, O the one
  good God, hast never ceased to do good! And we have accomplished certain good
  works by thy good gifts, and even though they are not eternal, still we hope,
  after these things here, to find our rest in thy great sanctification. But thou
  art the Good, and needest no rest, and art always at rest, because thou thyself
  art thy own rest.
 What man will teach men to understand this? And what angel will teach the
  angels? Or what angels will teach men? We must ask it of thee; we must seek it
  in thee; we must knock for it at thy door. Only thus shall we receive; only
  thus shall we find; only thus shall thy door be opened.[656]
[1]He had no models before him, for such earlier writings as
the Meditations of Marcus Aurelius and the autobiographical sections in
Hilary of Poitiers and Cyprian of Carthage have only to be compared with the Confessions to see how different they are.
  
            Source:
            Newly translated and edited by
            ALBERT C. OUTLER, Ph.D., D.D.
             Professor of Theology
              Perkins School of Theology 
              Southern Methodist University 
              Dallas, Texas
            First published MCMLV 
             Library of Congress Catalog Card Number: 55-5021
            This book is in the public domain.
              Scanned by Harry Plantinga, [email protected], 1994. 
            This text is part of the Internet Medieval Sourcebook. The Sourcebook is a collection
              of public domain and copy-permitted texts related to medieval and Byzantine history.
              Unless otherwise indicated the specific electronic form of the document is copyright.
              Permission is granted for electronic copying, distribution in print form for educational
              purposes and personal use. If you do reduplicate the document, indicate the source. No
              permission is granted for commercial use. 
            Paul Halsall, 1997, May 2023